be_v speak_v of_o the_o first_o shall_v be_v of_o the_o giltines_n of_o sin_n or_o bond_n unto_o punishment_n the_o second_o of_o the_o subject_n of_o deformity_n and_o privation_n that_o be_v of_o the_o act_n itself_o of_o man_n will_n the_o three_o be_v which_o also_o be_v common_o receive_v that_o sin_n be_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n and_o whether_o under_o these_o three_o consideration_n it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o sin_n depend_v on_o god_n as_o for_o the_o first_o punishment_n of_o the_o bond_n of_o sin_n unto_o punishment_n we_o must_v understand_v that_o the_o deform_a and_o naughty_a act_n be_v in_o some_o respect_n the_o groundwork_n unto_o the_o punishment_n that_o be_v due_a for_o the_o reward_n of_o sin_n say_v the_o apostle_n be_v death_n 23._o rom._n 6_o 23._o and_o when_o we_o sin_n there_o grow_v a_o bond_n whereby_o we_o must_v suffer_v punishment_n for_o the_o wickedness_n commit_v that_o giltinesse_n be_v say_v to_o arise_v through_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n in_o consideration_n that_o he_o will_v yield_v to_o every_o one_o that_o which_o belong_v unto_o he_o but_o the_o bond_n arise_v not_o except_o that_o sin_n be_v or_o have_v be_v so_o as_o by_o sin_v we_o give_v a_o just_a occasion_n of_o the_o bond_n unto_o punishment_n wherefore_o if_o by_o sin_n we_o understand_v the_o giltines_n and_o the_o bond_n we_o doubt_v not_o but_o these_o thing_n be_v of_o god_n as_o of_o the_o efficient_a cause_n howbeit_o these_o thing_n ought_v not_o proper_o to_o be_v call_v sin_n see_v they_o belong_v unto_o justice_n yet_o sometime_o they_o be_v so_o call_v as_o when_o we_o say_v that_o god_n do_v remit_v blot_v out_o and_o forgive_v our_o sin_n for_o he_o bring_v not_o to_o pass_v that_o they_o be_v not_o nor_o have_v not_o be_v and_o undoubted_o there_o remain_v evil_a motion_n in_o we_o but_o the_o bond_n of_o suffer_a punishment_n for_o the_o wickedness_n commit_v be_v take_v away_o which_o as_o we_o have_v say_v belong_v unto_o justice_n and_o be_v a_o good_a thing_n 19_o secondlie_o let_v we_o consider_v of_o the_o subject_n itself_o cleave_v of_o the_o subject_n unto_o which_o the_o deformity_n of_o sin_n cleave_v unto_o which_o the_o deformity_n of_o sin_n do_v cleave_v and_o of_o this_o if_o we_o speak_v as_o the_o thing_n be_v we_o shall_v not_o be_v afraid_a to_o say_v that_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n see_v the_o action_n itself_o be_v a_o certain_a natural_a thing_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o respect_n that_o it_o have_v a_o be_v be_v bring_v forth_o not_o by_o creature_n alone_o but_o by_o god_n 3._o gen._n 1_o 3._o for_o all_o thing_n say_v the_o scripture_n be_v make_v by_o he_o this_o universal_a particle_n comprehend_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v by_o what_o mean_v so_o ever_o they_o be_v and_o how_o far_o forth_o so_o ever_o they_o be_v augustine_n augustine_n augustine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr moribus_fw-la monachorum_fw-la about_o the_o beginning_n say_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n beléeve_v that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o nature_n and_o substance_n what_o he_o understand_v by_o nature_n he_o declare_v a_o little_a before_o by_o these_o word_n nature_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o which_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v some_o certain_a thing_n in_o his_o kind_n wherefore_o as_o we_o now_o by_o a_o new_a name_n of_o that_o which_o be_v esse_fw-la to_o be_v do_v call_v essence_n which_o many_o time_n also_o we_o name_v substance_n so_o they_o in_o old_a time_n which_o have_v not_o those_o name_n substance_n the_o name_n of_o nature_n essence_n and_o substance_n in_o stead_n of_o essence_n and_o substance_n call_v it_o nature_n see_v therefore_o the_o motion_n of_o our_o mind_n be_v certain_a thing_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o after_o this_o manner_n they_o depend_v of_o god_n god_n assure_o work_v as_o the_o high_a cause_n the_o creature_n work_v together_o with_o he_o wherefore_o anshelmus_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr casu_fw-la diaboli_fw-la write_v that_o even_o the_o evil_a willing_a of_o the_o devil_n so_o farfoorth_o as_o it_o be_v to_o will_v depend_v on_o god_n and_o the_o thing_n itself_o be_v not_o wicked_a but_o in_o respect_n that_o he_o himself_o do_v naughtilie_o will_v it_o and_o that_o the_o same_o act_n be_v something_o hereby_o it_o appear_v because_o it_o be_v in_o the_o general_a word_n or_o predicament_n of_o action_n god_n every_o act_n and_o move_a be_v of_o god_n wherefore_o as_o it_o be_v something_o it_o be_v of_o god_n and_o be_v a_o creature_n yea_o and_o augustine_n in_o his_o nine_o book_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la and_o ten_o chapter_n say_v that_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o mind_n be_v better_o than_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o body_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o worthiness_n of_o the_o subject_n wherefore_o the_o form_n or_o beauty_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o mind_n be_v more_o excellent_a than_o as_o it_o be_v outward_o find_v in_o the_o body_n also_o the_o soul_n itself_o be_v a_o soul_n how_o ill_o soever_o it_o be_v be_v yet_o more_o noble_a than_o any_o body_n see_v therefore_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o mind_n whereunto_o afterward_o through_o our_o own_o fault_n there_o cleave_v privation_n so_o farfoorth_o as_o they_o be_v thing_n be_v not_o bring_v forth_o without_o god_n anshelmus_n in_o the_o place_n above_o cite_v say_v that_o god_n himself_o be_v the_o bringer_n forth_o of_o thing_n and_o that_o not_o alonelie_o of_o substantial_a thing_n but_o also_o of_o accidental_a universal_a and_o particular_a thing_n yea_o and_o of_o the_o evil_a motion_n of_o the_o will_v for_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v infinite_a wherefore_o there_o be_v nothing_o can_v be_v bring_v forth_o whatsoever_o it_o be_v but_o be_v under_o his_o action_n for_o if_o any_o thing_n can_v escape_v the_o same_o then_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v infinite_a then_o shall_v it_o not_o fill_v all_o thing_n neither_o may_v our_o will_n break_v out_o into_o act_n unless_o that_o high_a supreme_a will_n wrought_v together_o with_o us._n augustine_n in_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la religione_fw-la the_o 34._o chapter_n write_v thus_o that_o the_o very_o be_v itself_o be_v it_o never_o so_o little_a be_v good_a for_o the_o chief_a being_n be_v the_o chief_a good_a and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o say_v the_o chief_a beauty_n be_v the_o chief_a good_a the_o least_o beauty_n be_v the_o least_o good_a yet_o be_v it_o good_a so_o as_o if_o that_o action_n which_o we_o speak_v of_o do_v by_o any_o mean_v perteine_a to_o the_o be_v it_o be_v of_o some_o goodness_n wherefore_o if_o we_o dispute_v of_o sin_n we_o must_v distinguish_v it_o and_o we_o must_v see_v what_o be_v therein_o of_o the_o positive_a as_o they_o reason_n in_o the_o school_n and_o the_o first_o subject_n itself_o must_v be_v consider_v and_o on_o the_o other_o part_n to_o see_v what_o defect_n and_o privation_n cleave_v thereunto_o but_o in_o the_o very_a same_o privation_n since_o we_o see_v a_o defect_n the_o deficient_a cause_n thereof_o must_v be_v seek_v and_o not_o the_o efficient_a cause_n but_o that_o which_o be_v there_o find_v positive_a have_v need_n of_o a_o efficient_a cause_n and_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o efficient_a cause_n be_v god_n 20_o but_o here_o arise_v no_o small_a doubt_n there_o be_v certain_a sin_n negligence_n sin_n of_o omission_n or_o negligence_n call_v sin_n of_o omission_n or_o negligence_n and_o there_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v ground_v the_o very_a act_n and_o work_v of_o will_n whereunto_o either_o defect_n or_o privation_n shall_v cleave_v howbeit_o whatsoever_o be_v there_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v privation_n a_o man_n be_v say_v to_o omit_v his_o duty_n because_o he_o do_v not_o that_o which_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v as_o for_o example_n if_o a_o man_n love_v not_o his_o neighbour_n if_o one_o come_v not_o to_o the_o congregation_n to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o participate_v the_o sacrament_n here_o in_o this_o sin_n there_o seem_v only_o a_o privation_n to_o be_v without_o any_o certain_a act_n whereupon_o this_o shall_v be_v ground_v some_o answer_n that_o even_o in_o this_o place_n also_o we_o be_v to_o seek_v a_o nature_n or_o action_n a_o work_n or_o a_o thing_n that_o be_v the_o groundwork_n unto_o privation_n and_o they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o will_n which_o make_v defect_n for_o even_o that_o same_o sin_v will_n as_o it_o be_v a_o nature_n be_v keep_v in_o his_o order_n by_o god_n but_o not_o in_o respect_n that_o it_o sin_v this_o say_n may_v be_v bear_v withal_o but_o in_o search_v the_o matter_n more_o narrow_o it_o seem_v otherwise_o unto_o i_o and_o i_o see_v even_o in_o those_o sin_n of_o omission_n that_o there_o be_v a_o act_n for_o the_o same_o omit_v of_o our_o
in_o christ_n may_v abstain_v but_o augustine_n speak_v most_o large_o and_o by_o sin_n understand_v those_o also_o the_o which_o we_o be_v present_o in_o hand_n with_o without_o the_o which_o we_o can_v here_o lead_v our_o life_n and_o this_o latter_a solution_n be_v cite_v by_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n in_o his_o second_o book_n and_o 36._o distinction_n but_o they_o will_v object_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o do_v injury_n against_o baptism_n if_o we_o say_v that_o sin_n be_v not_o take_v away_o thereby_o but_o we_o can_v justly_o be_v accuse_v of_o this_o crime_n for_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o giltinesse_n or_o imputation_n of_o fault_n be_v take_v away_o by_o regeneration_n for_o although_o these_o vice_n remain_v as_o both_o the_o scripture_n declare_v and_o experience_n teach_v yet_o their_o bond_n of_o punishment_n and_o giltines_n be_v discharge_v wherefore_o augustine_n sundry_a time_n say_v away_o concupiscence_n remain_v but_o the_o giltines_n be_v take_v away_o that_o concupiscence_n indeed_o remain_v but_o the_o blame_n thereof_o be_v take_v away_o by_o christ_n and_o he_o add_v that_o sometime_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o act_n and_o work_v of_o sin_n pass_v away_o as_o we_o see_v it_o be_v in_o theft_n and_o in_o adultery_n but_o the_o giltinesse_n nevertheless_o abide_v and_o sometime_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o blame_n be_v take_v away_o but_o the_o fault_n remain_v which_o be_v plain_a to_o be_v see_v touch_v this_o lust_n whereof_o we_o speak_v in_o deed_n the_o same_o remain_v but_o yet_o we_o can_v there-thorough_a be_v accuse_v as_o guilty_a of_o eternal_a destruction_n if_o thou_o demand_v wherefore_o it_o be_v call_v sin_n see_v the_o blame_n be_v take_v away_o i_o answer_v because_o that_o in_o so_o much_o as_o it_o be_v not_o impute_v unto_o we_o it_o have_v not_o that_o of_o his_o own_o nature_n for_o touch_v his_o own_o nature_n as_o we_o have_v before_o teach_v it_o deserve_v death_n and_o damnation_n but_o this_o come_v by_o another_o mean_n namely_o by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n but_o every_o thing_n ought_v to_o be_v judge_v of_o nature_n every_o thing_n must_v be_v judge_v of_o according_a to_o his_o own_o nature_n as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o and_o according_a to_o his_o own_o nature_n wherefore_o see_v the_o proper_a nature_n of_o sin_n be_v to_o strive_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o thing_n we_o see_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o lust_n and_o in_o these_o first_o motion_n therefore_o they_o be_v to_o be_v call_v sin_n neither_o do_v we_o by_o this_o our_o declaration_n similitude_n the_o pelagian_o upbraid_v the_o catholic_n of_o foolishness_n a_o similitude_n fall_v into_o that_o foolishness_n wherewith_o the_o pelagian_o reproach_v augustine_n and_o other_o catholic_n as_o though_o they_o shall_v say_v that_o by_o regeneration_n be_v not_o blot_v out_o sin_n but_o only_o race_v for_o when_o as_o hair_n be_v shave_v yet_o there_o remain_v still_o under_o the_o skin_n the_o root_n whereby_o they_o grow_v up_o again_o for_o although_o we_o affirm_v that_o in_o man_n regenerate_v remain_v still_o lust_n and_o corrupt_a motion_n yet_o do_v we_o not_o deny_v but_o that_o god_n be_v perfect_o reconcile_v unto_o us._n wherefore_o although_o these_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v sin_n yet_o by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n they_o be_v so_o wipe_v out_o as_o they_o cease_v to_o be_v impute_v to_o we_o at_o all_o so_o then_o if_o we_o have_v respect_n to_o imputation_n there_o remain_v nothing_o of_o they_o 30_o last_o of_o all_o they_o object_n unto_o we_o that_o we_o do_v injury_n unto_o augustine_n in_o that_o we_o say_v he_o affirm_v that_o these_o be_v sin_n see_v he_o interprete_v himself_o that_o they_o be_v call_v sin_n improper_o similitude_n similitude_n for_o as_o a_o scripture_n or_o writing_n be_v call_v a_o hand_n because_o it_o be_v do_v with_o the_o hand_n so_o these_o thing_n be_v call_v sin_n because_o they_o come_v from_o original_a sin_n and_o as_o cold_a be_v call_v slothful_a because_o it_o make_v we_o slothful_a so_o these_o motion_n be_v call_v sin_n because_o they_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o sin_n but_o yet_o proper_o they_o be_v not_o sin_n so_o say_v they_o augustine_n do_v not_o only_o interpret_v himself_o why_o he_o call_v these_o sin_n but_o also_o have_v give_v we_o a_o way_n how_o we_o ought_v to_o understand_v paul_n when_o he_o call_v they_o sin_n hereunto_o we_o answer_v that_o if_o augustine_n sin_n the_o father_n mean_a that_o they_o be_v no_o actual_a sin_n or_o any_o other_o of_o the_o father_n deny_v that_o these_o be_v sin_n the_o same_o must_v be_v understand_v by_o way_n of_o comparison_n if_o they_o be_v confer_v with_o actual_a sin_n but_o not_o that_o the_o nature_n of_o sin_n can_v whole_o be_v take_v away_o from_o they_o which_o thing_n augustine_n in_o a_o other_o place_n most_o plain_o declare_v for_o against_o julianus_n in_o his_o sixth_o book_n and_o eight_o chapter_n for_o neither_o be_v it_o say_v he_o any_o equity_n when_o in_o one_o man_n either_o the_o superior_a part_n be_v after_o a_o vile_a sort_n servant_n unto_o the_o inferior_a part_n or_o the_o inferior_a part_n after_o a_o vile_a manner_n resist_v the_o superior_a part_n although_o they_o be_v not_o suffer_v to_o get_v the_o upper_a hand_n see_v he_o call_v this_o sin_n iniquity_n he_o plain_o teach_v that_o unto_o it_o be_v agreeable_a the_o nature_n of_o sin_n which_o we_o before_o describe_v and_o in_o his_o five_o book_n and_o three_o chapter_n against_o the_o same_o julianus_n he_o thus_o write_v the_o concupiscence_n of_o the_o flesh_n against_o which_o the_o good_a spirit_n lu_v be_v sin_n because_o in_o it_o be_v a_o disobedience_n against_o the_o government_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o it_o be_v a_o punishment_n of_o sin_n for_o that_o it_o be_v render_v unto_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o disobedient_a person_n and_o it_o be_v a_o cause_n of_o sin_n through_o the_o fall_n away_o of_o he_o that_o sin_v here_o we_o see_v that_o concupiscence_n or_o lust_n be_v by_o augustine_n three_o manner_n of_o way_n call_v sin_n augustine_n note_v these_o word_n of_o augustine_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o write_v these_o thing_n of_o a_o man_n not_o regenerate_v for_o he_o say_v expresselie_o against_o who_o the_o good_a spirit_n lu_v for_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v not_o in_o the_o wicked_a with_o who_o he_o may_v strive_v wherefore_o we_o have_v out_o of_o augustine_n three_o place_n one_o which_o we_o cite_v before_o out_o of_o his_o five_o book_n de_fw-fr libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la and_o two_o against_o julianus_n wherein_o he_o expressedlie_o confess_v that_o concupiscence_n be_v sin_n and_o he_o bring_v a_o reason_n why_o he_o so_o think_v neither_o ought_v our_o adversary_n as_o concern_v the_o interpretation_n of_o paul_n to_o run_v unto_o a_o figure_n to_o say_v that_o this_o be_v not_o proper_o to_o be_v call_v sin_n for_o both_o out_o of_o paul_n and_o out_o of_o other_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v bring_v good_a reason_n why_o concupiscence_n or_o lust_n sin_n concupiscence_n leave_v in_o we_o be_v very_o and_o proper_o sin_n be_v true_o and_o proper_o call_v sin_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v wonder_v at_o that_o these_o man_n which_o be_v so_o ready_a elsewhere_o in_o every_o place_n with_o their_o figure_n when_o as_o in_o this_o one_o proposition_n this_o be_v my_o body_n they_o so_o much_o contemn_v all_o kind_n of_o figure_n where_o nevertheless_o a_o figure_n be_v most_o convenient_a for_o that_o sentence_n and_o if_o thou_o desire_v other_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n to_o prove_v that_o lust_n be_v sin_n we_o have_v before_o cite_v jerom_n upon_o matthew_n and_o in_o augustine_n against_o julianus_n there_o be_v find_v cite_v many_o other_o sentence_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n all_o which_o do_v make_v with_o us._n these_o thing_n which_o follow_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o like_a place_n upon_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o chapter_n 31_o now_o must_v we_o search_v out_o whether_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o will_v be_v take_v quite_o away_o will_n against_o free_a will_n by_o mean_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v rehearse_v but_o because_o paul_n affirm_v that_o a_o natural_a man_n can_v not_o know_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o god_n 14._o the_o first_o reason_n 1._o cor._n 2_o 14._o it_o seem_v a_o while_n to_o be_v against_o free_a will_n for_o if_o we_o be_v not_o able_a through_o our_o natural_a power_n to_o comprehend_v spiritual_a thing_n how_o can_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o express_v they_o in_o our_o action_n see_v we_o see_v by_o experience_n that_o there_o be_v much_o more_o
the_o mind_n 17._o verse_n 17._o in_o the_o darkness_n of_o the_o hart_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o will_v they_o have_v that_o such_o kind_n of_o contrition_n and_o attrition_n shall_v please_v god_n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n say_v 6._o heb._n 11_o 6._o that_o it_o be_v unpossible_a without_o faith_n to_o please_v god_n unto_o the_o ephesian_n we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n 1._o ephes_n 2_o 1._o and_o what_o can_v dead_a man_n bring_v for_o their_o regeneration_n that_o they_o shall_v live_v again_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o wrath_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n 13_o rom._n 14_o 13_o be_v sin_n as_o the_o same_o apostle_n have_v most_o manifest_o testify_v this_o i_o will_v shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o this_o attrition_n be_v sin_n 22_o the_o same_o scotus_n proceed_v further_a in_o the_o four_o of_o sentence_n distinction_n 14._o quest_n 2._o and_o say_v attrition_n scotus_n opinion_n touch_v attrition_n that_o sometime_o a_o man_n of_o his_o own_o mere_a natural_a gift_n only_o add_v the_o common_a influence_n of_o god_n be_v able_a to_o repent_v he_o of_o his_o sin_n and_o to_o detest_v sin_n by_o consider_v how_o far_o it_o be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n how_o far_o it_o hinder_v his_o salvation_n and_o how_o great_a punishment_n and_o pain_n of_o everlasting_a damnation_n it_o bring_v this_o he_o call_v attrition_n whereunto_o if_o the_o stir_a grace_n of_o god_n be_v add_v which_o may_v provoke_v this_o act_n he_o say_v that_o contrition_n be_v do_v and_o that_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o justification_n be_v obtain_v but_o whether_o that_o grace_n be_v give_v forthwith_o or_o with_o some_o delay_n they_o do_v not_o all_o agree_v and_o so_o the_o whole_a matter_n be_v make_v uncerteine_a first_o opinion_n the_o absurdity_n of_o this_o opinion_n as_o touch_v the_o time_n because_o man_n know_v not_o at_o what_o time_n they_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v into_o grace_n further_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o diligence_n require_v because_o they_o know_v not_o whether_o they_o be_v true_o contrite_a or_o no._n and_o they_o will_v that_o a_o man_n which_o be_v true_o contrite_a shall_v hate_v sin_n more_o than_o any_o hateful_a and_o detestable_a thing_n they_o make_v he_o that_o be_v attrite_a to_o hate_v sin_n but_o not_o with_o so_o great_a extremity_n not_o above_o every_o hateful_a and_o detestable_a thing_n and_o they_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o these_o two_o not_o indeed_o according_a to_o the_o vehemency_n of_o sorrow_n for_o sometime_o it_o may_v be_v that_o a_o man_n will_v sorrow_n more_o for_o his_o own_o sin_n than_o for_o offend_v of_o god._n but_o a_o distinction_n must_v be_v make_v by_o some_o equal_a consideration_n and_o therefore_o they_o distinguish_v on_o this_o sort_n that_o that_o motion_n be_v make_v through_o grace_n and_o for_o god_n cause_n further_o that_o there_o be_v a_o present_a purpose_n of_o not_o sin_v although_o all_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v offer_v but_o this_o thing_n have_v not_o he_o which_o sorrow_v only_o for_o punishment_n sake_n for_o if_o sin_n only_o be_v set_v before_o his_o eye_n and_o the_o punishment_n take_v away_o when_o the_o punishment_n be_v remoove_v he_o will_v make_v a_o choice_n of_o his_o own_o pleasure_n undoubted_o these_o man_n deliver_v many_o absurdity_n for_o they_o place_n charity_n before_o justification_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n christ_n be_v mind_v to_o show_v that_o the_o woman_n which_o be_v a_o sinner_n have_v obtain_v remission_n of_o her_o sin_n show_v the_o same_o by_o the_o consequent_n her_o sin_n be_v forgive_v she_o 47._o luk._n 7_o 47._o because_o she_o love_v much_o they_o turn_v it_o and_o make_v the_o antecedent_n she_o love_v much_o therefore_o her_o sin_n be_v forgive_v she_o but_o what_o judge_v they_o of_o that_o attrition_n which_o they_o have_v describe_v which_o be_v do_v only_o for_o punishment_n sake_n and_o by_o the_o instinct_n of_o nature_n they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v good_a because_o it_o be_v the_o way_n unto_o justification_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o actual_a exception_n whereby_o they_o say_v unless_o that_o punishment_n be_v before_o my_o eye_n i_o shall_v sure_o sin_v 23_o there_o be_v some_o also_o among_o they_o matter_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o nominal_n touch_v this_o matter_n be_v call_v nominal_n who_o be_v of_o the_o opinion_n that_o a_o purpose_n not_o to_o sin_n be_v not_o necessary_o require_v in_o contrition_n and_o they_o dare_v âenter_v to_o sââ¦e_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o such_o a_o purpose_n but_o yet_o the_o name_n of_o repentance_n shall_v have_v admonish_v they_o for_o what_o be_v repentance_n but_o a_o change_n of_o the_o mind_n whereby_o we_o procee_v from_o evil_a unto_o good_a so_o far_o as_o the_o infirmity_n of_o man_n will_v suffer_v and_o it_o behoove_v that_o therein_o be_v a_o desire_n of_o righteousness_n ezechiel_n say_v 21._o eze._n 18_o 21._o if_o so_o be_v he_o shall_v repent_v he_o of_o his_o wickedness_n and_o shall_v keep_v my_o commandment_n etc._n etc._n and_o christ_n require_v of_o they_o 11._o john_n 5_o 14_o and_o 11._o who_o he_o have_v heal_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o sin_v any_o more_o wherefore_o these_o man_n do_v but_o cavil_n and_o the_o very_a detestation_n of_o sin_n ought_v to_o have_v respect_n not_o only_o unto_o the_o time_n that_o be_v present_a and_o past_a but_o unto_o that_o also_o which_o be_v to_o come_v wherefore_o we_o must_v exclude_v these_o sort_n of_o man_n some_o of_o they_o say_v that_o it_o may_v be_v that_o there_o be_v attrition_n which_o come_v of_o man_n own_o natural_a power_n with_o the_o common_a influence_n of_o god_n so_o that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v sorry_a that_o he_o have_v offend_v even_o for_o god_n cause_n they_o prove_v it_o for_o if_o i_o can_v be_v sorrowful_a for_o offend_v a_o certain_a friend_n wherefore_o be_v it_o not_o also_o lawful_a to_o grant_v it_o in_o humane_a action_n that_o man_n may_v natural_o sorrow_n because_o they_o have_v offend_v god_n who_o goodness_n they_o may_v acknowledge_v in_o his_o creation_n and_o in_o the_o multitude_n of_o his_o benefit_n so_o these_o man_n put_v a_o difference_n between_o contrition_n and_o attrition_n not_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o object_n for_o that_o the_o one_o repent_v because_o of_o god_n and_o the_o other_o for_o fear_n of_o punishment_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o efficient_a cause_n for_o that_o they_o will_v then_o have_v it_o to_o be_v contrition_n when_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n provoke_v the_o same_o the_o one_o they_o derive_v from_o our_o own_o natural_a ability_n and_o the_o other_o from_o grace_n which_o prevent_v what_o will_v they_o have_v then_o to_o be_v do_v when_o a_o man_n be_v attrite_a let_v he_o come_v say_v they_o to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o repentance_n and_o then_o that_o unperfectnes_n of_o attrition_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o and_o he_o shall_v please_v god_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o key_n always_o provide_v that_o he_o have_v think_v himself_o to_o be_v contrite_a and_o have_v use_v all_o diligence_n otherwise_o absolution_n can_v nothing_o profit_v he_o but_o to_o what_o end_n deal_v these_o man_n so_o subtle_o he_o that_o sorrow_v for_o his_o sin_n can_v scarce_o discern_v at_o any_o time_n whether_o he_o do_v it_o for_o god_n sake_n or_o else_o for_o fear_n of_o punishment_n he_o that_o hear_v these_o thing_n how_o shall_v he_o know_v of_o a_o attrite_a man_n he_o be_v become_v a_o contrite_a man_n say_v they_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n when_o if_o he_o use_v all_o diligence_n how_o shall_v he_o understand_v this_o sure_o he_o will_v never_o use_v that_o diligence_n so_o great_a be_v the_o infirmity_n of_o our_o strength_n yet_o these_o nominal_n say_v that_o he_o which_o apply_v all_o diligence_n shall_v receive_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n even_o before_o he_o go_v to_o confession_n otherwise_o that_o he_o be_v drive_v into_o desperation_n if_o he_o have_v not_o the_o help_n of_o a_o priest_n if_o they_o will_v say_v that_o contrition_n itself_o be_v repentance_n so_o that_o it_o spring_v of_o faith_n they_o shall_v speak_v right_o but_o as_o concern_v those_o attrition_n of_o they_o which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o force_n and_o strength_n of_o man_n which_o be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o repentance_n of_o cain_n saul_n and_o judas_n we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o allow_v of_o they_o as_o we_o say_v contrition_n what_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v concern_v contrition_n that_o it_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o a_o doubt_n of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n they_o make_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n to_o be_v of_o none_o effect_n and_o they_o call_v we_o unto_o work_n whereas_o paul_n
punishment_n of_o he_o that_o sin_v 1_n 190_o a_o that_o which_o in_o it_o own_o nature_n be_v sin_n be_v never_o attribute_v unto_o god_n in_o scripture_n 2_o 411_o b_o bernarde_n assign_v three_o degree_n of_o man_n the_o first_o that_o can_v sin_n the_o second_o that_o can_v but_o sin_n the_o third_o in_o who_o sin_n remain_v but_o reign_v not_o 1_n 198_o a_o the_o cause_n of_o man_n sin_n be_v the_o will_n or_o fréewill_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n and_o how_o 1_n 205_o b_o a_o knowledge_n thereof_o have_v not_o his_o proper_a end_n be_v sin_n 2_o 265_o a_o that_o of_o the_o damn_a be_v of_o necessity_n and_o yet_o sin_n nevertheless_o 1_n 198_o ab_fw-la corruption_n be_v no_o natural_a effect_n of_o it_o as_o pighius_fw-la say_v 2_o 220_o a_o sometime_o there_o be_v none_o pour_v from_o the_o next_o parent_n into_o the_o child_n original_a except_v prove_v 2_o 240_o a_o that_o god_n do_v not_o only_o permit_v it_o but_o also_o will_v it_o and_o how_o 1_n 201_o b_o 203._o all_o the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n as_o it_o be_v call_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o chataa_n 2_o 241_o b_o 242_o a_o how_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o thing_n voluntary_a and_o not_o voluntary_a in_o us._n 1_o 195_o a_o the_o devil_n be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o but_o not_o the_o proper_a &_o absolute_a cause_n 1_n 184_o b_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o it_o have_v his_o first_o beginning_n from_o the_o woman_n how_o then_o begin_v it_o at_o adam_n 2_o 242_o b_o the_o guiltiness_n thereof_o be_v take_v away_o after_o regeneration_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o remain_v be_v not_o impute_v unto_o we_o to_o our_o destruction_n 2_o 233b_a sin_n be_v commit_v through_o want_n of_o say_v 3_o 70_o b_o man_z can_v of_o his_o own_o nature_n have_v have_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o in_o himself_o though_o the_o devil_n have_v not_o revolt_v from_o god_n 1_o 184_o b_o how_o it_o be_v mean_v that_o it_o begin_v first_o at_o the_o devil_n 2_o 242_o b_o 243_o a_o whether_o in_o willing_a against_o god_n will_n it_o may_v be_v commit_v oâ_n nor_o examine_v that_o place_n 1_n 204_o b_o 205_o a_o how_o zuinglius_fw-la be_v be_v to_o understand_v that_o man_n be_v otherwhiles_o by_o god_n providence_n provoke_v unto_o it_o 1_n 186_o a_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 3_o 239_o a_o irremissible_a 2_o 628_o a_o 3_o 206_o b_o 207_o a_o not_o apparent_o know_v 4_o 59_o a_o what_o sin_n be_v call_v actual_a and_o from_o whence_o it_o spring_v 2_o 272_o b_o whether_o the_o punishment_n remain_v after_o the_o sin_n remit_v 3_o 237_o a_o 221_o a_o 224_o a_o how_o sin_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n 1_n 190_o a_o sin_n how_o sin_n do_v depend_v on_o god_n providente_a 1_n 173_o b_o sin_n be_v punishment_n of_o sin_n 3_o â_o a_o b_o 286_o a_o 26_o a_o 23_o a_o 22_o b_o â2_n a_o two_o 49â_n b_o 493_o b_o 1_o 2â6_n a_o 197_o b_o 198_o a_o two_o 273_o ab_fw-la god_n use_v they_o to_o their_o appoint_a end_n and_o how_o 3_o 41_o b_o 42_o a_o all_o sin_n be_v comprehend_v under_o the_o name_n of_o infidelity_n 3_o 153_o b_o remedy_n for_o the_o wound_n of_o they_o 3_o 235_o b_o god_n even_o out_o of_o they_o pick_v notable_a commodity_n 3_o 186_o a_o we_o must_v bewail_v other_o and_o our_o own_o 3_o 246_o b_o sin_n do_v serve_v both_o to_o predestination_n and_o reprobation_n 3_o 34_o a_o they_o must_v not_o be_v measure_v by_o space_n of_o âime_n as_o some_o say_v two_o 539b_n 540_o a_o no_o man_n can_v confess_v all_o that_o he_o have_v do_v and_o why_o 3_o 219_o b_o of_o what_o sin_n we_o must_v repent_v us._n â4_n 204_o b_o of_o take_v delight_n in_o sin_n and_o that_o the_o godly_a may_v do_v âo_o sometime_o 2_o 559_o ab_fw-la who_o sin_z be_v visit_v unto_o the_o third_o &_o four_o generation_n &_o who_o be_v not_o 2_o 362_o b_o 362_o a_o god_n punish_v some_o for_o other_o sin_n 2_o 363_o b_o 364_o a_o of_o sin_n do_v against_o the_o first_o table_n and_o the_o second_o 2_o 553_o b_o 554_o a_o sin_n the_o cause_n of_o all_o our_o affliction_n 3_o 129_o b_o difference_n of_o they_o be_v to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 2_o 553_o b_o whether_o sin_n may_v so_o please_v we_o as_o of_o they_o we_o shall_v take_v delight_n 2_o 559_o a_o all_o sin_n be_v alike_o 3_o 141_o a_o two_o 555_o a_o 247_o b_o 32â_n ab_fw-la 264_o a_o how_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v more_o or_o less_o gréevous_a 2_o 553_o b_o 554a_o some_o gross_a and_o some_o moraliâe_v good_a 2_o 559_o a_o manifest_a sin_n and_o secret_a note_v the_o doctrine_n 2_o 533_o a_o 562_o b_o the_o weightinesse_n of_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v by_o their_o object_n 2_o 530_o a_o sin_n not_o necessary_o link_v together_o as_o virtue_n be_v two_o 555_o a_o the_o grosser_n perteine_a to_o discipline_n 2_o 551_o b_o sin_n of_o commit_v and_o omit_v 2_o 246_o b_o we_o must_v never_o be_v lead_n or_o drive_v to_o commit_v sin_n 2_o 292_o a_o from_o what_o fountain_n we_o must_v séeâe_v the_o cause_n of_o they_o and_o say_v they_o not_o upon_o god_n 2_o 27â_n a_o what_o be_v voluntary_a as_o the_o scripture_n determine_v 2_o 293_o a_o mingle_v even_o with_o our_o good_a work_n 3_o 54_o b_o three_o degree_n of_o they_o that_o be_v remissible_a 2_o 272_o b_o a_o examination_n of_o doctrine_n which_o open_v a_o wide_a window_n unto_o they_o 2_o 264_o ab_fw-la mens_fw-la sin_n compare_v unto_o pitch_n and_o how_o 2_o 313_o a_o that_o all_o have_v their_o weight_n and_o from_o whence_o 2_o 322_o a_o god_n be_v not_o proper_o say_v to_o reward_v sin_n 2_o 263b_n the_o regenerate_a may_v abstain_v from_o the_o grosser_n sort_n 2_o 274_o ab_fw-la a_o brief_a sum_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o god_n by_o his_o providence_n and_o government_n do_v about_o sin_n 1_n 206_o b_o why_o they_o that_o be_v justify_v do_v still_o pray_v for_o their_o sin_n 2_o 266_o a_o we_o may_v not_o excuse_v they_o by_o god_n predestination_n 3_o â_o a_o 41_o b_o 42_o a_o how_o god_n be_v after_o a_o sort_n say_v to_o will_v they_o 3_o 22_o ab_fw-la howe_n and_o in_o what_o sort_n god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o they_o 3_o 11_o a_o sin_n foresee_v be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o reprobation_n 3_o 12._o how_o they_o be_v comprehend_v under_o reprobation_n 3_o 24_o ab_fw-la they_o deserve_v punishment_n one_o good_a work_n no_o reward_n and_o why_o 1_o 209_o a_o young_a infant_n while_o they_o be_v yet_o suck_v do_v commit_v sin_n 2_o 224_o b_o whether_o sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o reprobation_n 3_o 13a_o they_o be_v âuried_v before_o god_n tribunal_n seat_n and_o how_o 2_o 620_o b_o 621_o a_o that_o the_o very_a action_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o sin_n be_v of_o god_n 1_o 204_o a_o god_n direct_v they_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o his_o counsel_n and_o how_o 1_n 206_o a_o a_o absurdity_n as_o some_o think_v that_o the_o latter_a man_n shall_v be_v more_o miserable_a than_o the_o former_a insomuch_o as_o they_o shall_v leave_v the_o sin_n as_o well_o of_o adam_n as_o of_o all_o their_o forefather_n two_o way_n answer_v 2_o 24â_n b_o 241_o a_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n must_v not_o be_v blame_v if_o the_o father_n sin_n be_v pour_v into_o the_o child_n 2_o 240_o a_o how_o private_a become_v public_a 4_o 58_o a_o god_n use_v they_o of_o the_o wicked_a even_o to_o a_o good_a purpose_n as_o how_o 1_n 199_o a_o parent_n must_v live_v pure_o that_o their_o procreation_n be_v not_o partaker_n of_o their_o sin_n 2_o 240_o a_o m._n bucers_n opinion_n that_o private_a be_v derive_v from_o the_o parent_n unto_o the_o child_n and_o how_o he_o must_v be_v understand_v 2_o 241_o a_o some_o proper_a and_o of_o our_o own_o may_v be_v two_o way_n understand_v 2_o 229_o a_o private_a sin_n of_o the_o parent_n derive_v to_o the_o child_n be_v not_o of_o necessary_a but_o contingent_a 2_o 241_o a_o in_o consider_v of_o they_o what_o we_o must_v inquire_v and_o by_o what_o balance_n we_o must_v weigh_v it_o 2_o 239_o b_o that_o those_o in_o parent_n as_o the_o schoolman_n say_v do_v not_o only_o corrupt_v the_o mind_n of_o their_o child_n 2_o 241_o a_o augustine_n say_v that_o those_o of_o the_o next_o parent_n be_v communicate_v with_o the_o child_n prove_v 2_o 239_o b_o 240_o a_o how_o they_o do_v service_n unto_o god_n prove_v by_o similitude_n 1_n 182_o a_o how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o god_n impute_v not_o some_o unto_o us._n two_o 247_o b_o
and_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o predestination_n but_o of_o it_o we_o will_v entreat_v a_o other_o time_n when_o opportunity_n shall_v serve_v ¶_o i_o know_v i_o be_o misreport_v that_o i_o make_v god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n but_o that_o be_v not_o true_a as_o it_o shall_v plain_o appear_v but_o i_o only_o endeavour_v by_o my_o doctrine_n to_o show_v how_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v understand_v when_o they_o seem_v so_o to_o affirm_v also_o what_o augustine_n mean_v who_o say_v that_o god_n bend_v the_o will_n of_o man_n aswell_o unto_o good_a as_o unto_o evil_a and_o in_o like_a manner_n how_o zuinglius_fw-la &_o oecolampadius_n and_o other_o great_a learned_a man_n professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n must_v be_v understand_v when_o they_o seem_v to_o avouch_v the_o same_o the_o xvij_o chapter_n whether_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n out_o of_o the_o second_o book_n of_o sam._n the_o 16._o chapter_n verse_n 22._o look_v in_o jud._n 3_o 9_o and_o 9_o 24._o and_o 2._o sam_n 2_o 27._o and_o 1._o king_n 22_o 21._o and_o in_o rom._n 1._o 23._o it_o remain_v now_o that_o we_o entreat_v of_o the_o question_n 22._o in_o 2._o sam._n 17._o verse_n 22._o whether_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n for_o aswell_o the_o curse_n of_o semei_n 10._o 2._o sa._n 16_o 10._o as_o the_o defile_n of_o david_n concubine_n â1_n ââ¦_n 12_o â1_n may_v seem_v at_o the_o first_o view_n to_o proceed_v from_o god_n for_o as_o touch_v the_o curse_n david_n himself_o say_v that_o it_o come_v from_o god_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o adultery_n of_o david_n concubine_n it_o be_v speak_v by_o nathan_n under_o the_o person_n of_o god_n wherefore_o it_o may_v very_o well_o be_v call_v in_o controversy_n whether_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n sin_n argument_n infer_v god_n not_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n and_o true_o there_o be_v very_o many_a and_o strong_a argument_n of_o both_o side_n a_o good_a part_n of_o they_o i_o will_v recite_v unto_o the_o which_o all_o the_o rest_n may_v be_v refer_v god_n can_v not_o true_o &_o right_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n excellent_a be_v the_o sentence_n of_o augustine_n in_o his_o book_n of_o 83._o question_n god_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o any_o thing_n whereby_o a_o man_n become_v the_o worse_a but_o no_o man_n doubt_v that_o man_n be_v the_o worse_a through_o sin_n therefore_o god_n can_v not_o proper_o be_v call_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o god_n will_v deform_v man_n artificer_n desire_v to_o adorn_v their_o work_n further_o god_n himself_o general_o in_o the_o scripture_n profess_v himself_o a_o revenger_n of_o sin_n if_o he_o be_v a_o revenger_n he_o be_v no_o author_n for_o than_o he_o shall_v punish_v his_o own_o if_o he_o be_v true_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n he_o shall_v condemn_v that_o which_o he_o make_v which_o thing_n be_v absurd_a thirdlie_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o love_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o make_v and_o hate_v nothing_o that_o he_o have_v make_v but_o he_o testify_v that_o he_o do_v hate_v sin_n therefore_o he_o do_v not_o enforce_v to_o sin_n to_o hate_v and_o to_o love_n be_v contrary_a wherefore_o both_o can_v not_o be_v speak_v of_o one_o thing_n at_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o time_n if_o he_o hate_v sin_n than_o he_o love_v it_o not_o but_o if_o so_o be_v it_o be_v of_o god_n it_o shall_v be_v belove_v for_o god_n love_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o make_v if_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n he_o in_o the_o bring_n forth_o of_o sin_n shall_v sin_n he_o that_o steal_v be_v a_o thief_n he_o that_o commit_v murder_n be_v a_o manqueller_n but_o far_o be_v it_o from_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v either_o say_v to_o sin_n or_o to_o be_v a_o sinner_n what_o be_v else_o to_o sin_n but_o to_o stray_v from_o the_o right_a end_n but_o god_n be_v infinite_a and_o can_v not_o be_v lead_v away_o from_o the_o end_n by_o another_o great_a force_n he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o he_o can_v stray_v from_o the_o end_n for_o he_o be_v most_o wise_a and_o that_o he_o himself_o shall_v cause_v other_o to_o sin_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v absurd_a let_v we_o consider_v what_o be_v do_v among_o these_o natural_a thing_n create_v by_o god_n there_o be_v many_o efficient_a cause_n it_o seem_v that_o every_o efficient_a cause_n covet_v to_o make_v that_o like_a unto_o itself_o whereabout_o it_o work_v fire_n if_o it_o take_v hold_v upon_o wood_n so_o work_v as_o those_o thing_n whereupon_o it_o work_v may_v be_v make_v like_o unto_o itself_o a_o man_n do_v procreate_v a_o man_n thus_o in_o thing_n create_v do_v agent_n work_v why_o shall_v we_o not_o say_v that_o in_o god_n do_n his_o endeavour_n be_v to_o make_v like_a unto_o himself_o and_o that_o therefore_o he_o sin_v not_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v we_o the_o same_o they_o bring_v in_o law_n which_o stir_v up_o good_a work_n but_o sin_n at_o no_o time_n if_o god_n shall_v provoke_v sin_n or_o will_v it_o to_o be_v do_v he_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o hypocrite_n he_o shall_v closlie_o and_o secret_o do_v another_o thing_n than_o he_o open_o pretend_v jeremie_n speak_v of_o false_a prophet_n 21._o jere._n 23_o 21._o they_o run_v but_o i_o send_v they_o not_o they_o prophesy_v and_o i_o speak_v not_o with_o they_o namely_o that_o they_o shall_v speak_v this_o thing_n oseas_n say_v 9_o ose_n 13_o 9_o thy_o salvation_n o_o israel_n be_v of_o i_o thy_o perdition_n be_v of_o thyself_o but_o no_o man_n be_v ignorant_a that_o sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o perdition_n if_o perdition_n be_v of_o israel_n than_o sin_n also_o but_o salvation_n and_o whatsoever_o go_v before_o salvation_n be_v of_o god_n if_o salvation_n and_o perdition_n be_v the_o effect_n be_v thus_o distinguish_v the_o cause_n also_o must_v be_v distinguish_v the_o one_o to_o be_v of_o god_n and_o the_o other_o of_o man_n sin_n shall_v proceed_v of_o man_n and_o virtue_n of_o god_n more_o manifest_a be_v that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n of_o john_n where_o christ_n speak_v of_o the_o devil_n say_v 44._o john_n 8_o 44._o when_o he_o speak_v lie_n he_o speak_v of_o his_o own_o if_o of_o his_o own_o he_o have_v no_o need_n to_o be_v stir_v up_o of_o another_o and_o again_o 13._o john_n 3_o 13._o this_o be_v the_o condemnation_n of_o man_n that_o light_n come_v into_o the_o world_n but_o they_o love_v darkness_n more_o james_n testify_v 13._o james._n 1_o 13._o that_o god_n tempt_v not_o man_n but_o by_o temptation_n man_n be_v provoke_v unto_o sin_n wherefore_o if_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n it_o may_v not_o be_v say_v that_o he_o tempt_v not_o any_o man_n it_o be_v concupiscence_n whereby_o we_o be_v tempt_v and_o that_o be_v not_o of_o god_n but_o of_o the_o world_n 2_o in_o the_o second_o of_o paralipomenon_n the_o last_o chapter_n there_o be_v a_o special_a place_n 15._o 2._o par._n 36_o verse_n 15._o where_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v give_v and_o ascribe_v to_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n and_o in_o such_o sort_n it_o be_v so_o disproove_v that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n as_o god_n testify_v that_o he_o will_v it_o otherwise_o wherefore_o the_o cause_n must_v not_o be_v lay_v upon_o god_n he_o send_v his_o prophet_n say_v he_o betimes_o in_o the_o morning_n but_o they_o harden_v their_o hart_n christ_n weep_v over_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n he_o be_v sorry_a for_o the_o overthrow_n thereof_o if_o the_o effect_n displease_v he_o much_o rather_o do_v the_o cause_n he_o weep_v because_o they_o so_o sin_v as_o they_o deserve_v utter_a destruction_n if_o christ_n weep_v who_o not_o only_o be_v man_n but_o very_o god_n also_o he_o be_v displease_v with_o sin_n therefore_o god_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v affirm_v that_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n unless_o we_o will_v charge_v he_o with_o tyranny_n in_o that_o he_o condemn_v man_n for_o their_o sin_n because_o they_o have_v do_v wicked_o who_o yet_o after_o a_o sort_n he_o have_v lead_v unto_o wickedness_n tyrant_n be_v wont_v to_o set_v forth_o law_n and_o then_o to_o provide_v cunning_o that_o their_o subject_n may_v commit_v some_o thing_n against_o those_o law_n whereby_o they_o may_v punish_v they_o moreover_o the_o scripture_n attribute_v unto_o god_n the_o judgement_n over_o all_o flesh_n 31._o gen._n 18_o 25._o jere._n 25_o 31._o but_o how_o shall_v he_o judge_v the_o world_n of_o sin_n if_o he_o himself_o have_v be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o three_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n 5._o
rom._n 3_o 5._o if_o our_o righteousness_n do_v set_v forth_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n be_v god_n unjust_a for_o punish_v that_o it_o may_v be_v perceive_v how_o absurd_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v that_o our_o sin_n shall_v make_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n for_o if_o they_o make_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n why_o do_v he_o condemn_v they_o if_o the_o reason_n be_v there_o of_o force_n it_o more_o strong_o conclude_v in_o this_o place_n if_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n how_o shall_v he_o judge_v the_o world_n also_o there_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v in_o he_o two_o will_n and_o those_o one_o contrary_a to_o the_o other_o but_o in_o god_n there_o be_v only_o one_o will_n if_o there_o shall_v be_v more_o they_o will_v be_v one_o against_o another_o as_o touch_v one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o thing_n so_o that_o he_o will_v have_v we_o both_v not_o to_o do_v and_o to_o do_v the_o selfsame_o thing_n we_o will_v demand_v to_o what_o purpose_n be_v so_o many_o exhortation_n persuasion_n and_o calling_n to_o do_v well_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n all_o these_o thing_n will_v seem_v to_o be_v vain_a to_o what_o end_n do_v christ_n give_v warning_n unto_o judas_n 24._o matt._n 26_o 24._o if_o he_o will_v be_v betray_v of_o he_o these_o speech_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v do_v as_o it_o be_v in_o game_n but_o god_n deal_v gravelie_o and_o earnest_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o deal_v with_o man_n also_o there_o will_v follow_v a_o great_a absurdity_n for_o the_o difference_n between_o good_a and_o evil_a and_o between_o virtue_n and_o sin_n will_v be_v take_v away_o god_n shall_v be_v appoint_v the_o author_n of_o both_o whereas_o he_o be_v the_o sovereign_a good_a there_o can_v proceed_v nothing_o but_o goodness_n from_o he_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v detest_v murder_n adultery_n and_o incest_n he_o will_v say_v it_o be_v a_o good_a work_n the_o matter_n will_v be_v bring_v to_o such_o a_o pass_n as_o good_a will_v be_v call_v evil_a and_o evil_a good_a yea_o rather_o there_o will_v be_v no_o difference_n at_o all_o betwixt_o they_o for_o through_o the_o will_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o forbid_v and_o command_v any_o thing_n we_o judge_v of_o good_a and_o evil_n but_o by_o this_o mean_v we_o shall_v be_v void_a of_o all_o judgement_n in_o like_a manner_n will_v be_v take_v away_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o conscience_n we_o read_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n 15._o rom._n 2_o 15._o that_o we_o have_v cogitation_n which_o shall_v defend_v and_o accuse_v one_o another_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o lord_n if_o this_o other_o opinion_n be_v true_a we_o will_v gather_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o accuse_v ourselves_o but_o god_n the_o author_n there_o be_v plenty_n of_o excuse_n for_o the_o wicked_a they_o will_v say_v wherefore_o need_v i_o to_o repent_v for_o this_o thing_n see_v god_n himself_o be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o repentance_n will_v be_v take_v away_o and_o a_o window_n open_v unto_o great_a mischéefe_n wherefore_o shall_v we_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n because_o he_o have_v deliver_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n but_o sin_n be_v good_a it_o have_v be_v all_o one_o to_o have_v lie_v still_o in_o sin_n we_o will_v not_o lament_v our_o sin_n but_o rather_o rejoice_v in_o they_o for_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n it_o be_v meet_v that_o we_o shall_v rejoice_v for_o the_o work_n of_o god_n if_o god_n himself_o be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n praise_n and_o reioise_v will_v follow_v but_o not_o sorrow_n much_o will_v be_v draw_v away_o from_o the_o estimation_n of_o god_n if_o he_o shall_v be_v put_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n that_o say_v also_o which_o they_o show_v may_v be_v bring_v namely_o 4._o 1._o tim._n 2_o 4._o that_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v if_o he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v save_v he_o use_v good_a mean_n he_o incourage_v not_o man_n to_o sin_n for_o sin_n do_v lead_v man_n to_o perdition_n many_o more_o reason_n may_v be_v bring_v but_o for_o this_o time_n we_o will_v content_v ourselves_o with_o these_o part_n argument_n on_o the_o contrary_a part_n 3_o let_v we_o see_v on_o the_o other_o part_n what_o thing_n they_o be_v that_o may_v affirm_v god_n to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n it_o be_v write_v 24._o rom._n 1_o 24._o that_o see_v the_o idolater_n know_v god_n and_o will_v not_o worship_v he_o as_o god_n therefore_o as_o meet_v it_o be_v he_o give_v they_o up_o unto_o a_o reprobate_a sense_n and_o unto_o shameful_a lust_n if_o he_o give_v they_o he_o also_o provoke_v and_o move_v they_o in_o exodus_fw-la it_o be_v write_v 12._o exod._n 9_o 12._o that_o god_n have_v harden_v and_o dull_v the_o hart_n of_o pharaoh_n so_o that_o he_o will_v not_o hearken_v when_o moses_n command_v he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o let_v the_o people_n depart_v in_o the_o sixth_o of_o esaie_n 10._o esaie_n 6_o 10._o he_o be_v say_v to_o blind_v the_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o see_v when_o we_o pour_v out_o our_o prayer_n before_o god_n we_o desire_v he_o that_o he_o 13._o matt._n 6_o 13._o lead_v we_o not_o into_o temptation_n but_o that_o he_o will_v deliver_v we_o from_o evil_a to_o what_o end_n shall_v we_o thus_o pray_v if_o these_o thing_n shall_v not_o sometime_o be_v no_o man_n intreat_v except_o for_o those_o thing_n which_o may_v be_v or_o which_o do_v hang_v over_o his_o head_n or_o which_o he_o fear_v will_v come_v to_o pass_v they_o be_v wont_v to_o say_v that_o god_n do_v and_o will_v these_o thing_n not_o as_o they_o be_v sin_n but_o in_o respect_n that_o they_o be_v punishment_n to_o chasten_v he_o that_o have_v sin_v but_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o appoint_v the_o punishment_n and_o fault_n to_o be_v all_o one_o thing_n see_v the_o nature_n of_o punishment_n and_o fault_n be_v diverse_a a_o fault_n arise_v from_o the_o will_n whereas_o punishment_n be_v lay_v upon_o we_o against_o our_o will_n if_o it_o be_v commit_v voluntary_o than_o it_o be_v no_o punishment_n to_o affirm_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v voluntary_a and_o yet_o unuoluntarie_a can_v hardly_o be_v make_v to_o agree_v that_o which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o cause_n may_v also_o be_v call_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o effect_n but_o no_o man_n doubt_v but_o that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o a_o will_n inclination_n property_n and_o effect_n whereby_o we_o be_v provoke_v to_o sin_n if_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o these_o thing_n why_o dare_v we_o not_o say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n that_o which_o remoove_v the_o impediment_n if_o the_o thing_n afterward_o happen_v or_o the_o effect_n follow_v it_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n what_o do_v chéefelie_o let_v sin_n even_o grace_n and_o the_o good_a spirit_n of_o god_n except_o these_o keep_v we_o back_o we_o shall_v rush_v headlong_o into_o most_o gréevous_a crime_n who_o can_v remove_v grace_n or_o take_v away_o the_o spirit_n but_o only_o god_n which_o give_v they_o if_o he_o remove_v the_o let_n no_o doubt_n but_o he_o be_v some_o cause_n of_o sin_n also_o he_o that_o minister_v a_o occasion_n of_o any_o thing_n he_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o author_n thereof_o although_o he_o be_v not_o the_o chief_a cause_n if_o he_o give_v a_o occasion_n he_o shall_v not_o fail_v to_o be_v call_v author_n god_n know_v the_o hardness_n of_o pharaos_n hart_n and_o he_o know_v that_o he_o be_v not_o holpen_v by_o the_o spirit_n will_v be_v provoke_v to_o sin_n so_o the_o law_n be_v say_v to_o increase_v sin_n 1._o rom._n 7_o 1._o if_o it_o be_v not_o propose_v to_o the_o regenerate_a for_o we_o always_o bend_v ourselves_o unto_o that_o which_o we_o be_v forbid_v and_o covet_v that_o which_o we_o be_v deny_v god_n command_v pharaoh_n to_o let_v the_o people_n go_v what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o offer_v a_o occasion_n that_o he_o may_v be_v the_o more_o harden_v we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o god_n do_v minister_v occasion_n yea_o and_o he_o not_o only_o give_v occasion_n but_o we_o can_v also_o show_v commandment_n wherein_o he_o command_v sin_n we_o have_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o king_n that_o achab_n be_v a_o wicked_a prince_n that_o god_n determine_v to_o punish_v he_o in_o battle_n he_o will_v have_v he_o bring_v to_o this_o by_o the_o flattery_n and_o false_a persuasion_n of_o false_a prophet_n god_n be_v bring_v in_o to_o talk_v with_o the_o spirit_n who_o can_v seduce_v achab_n there_o step_v forth_o a_o evil_a spirit_n which_o say_v 22._o 1._o kin_n 22_o 22._o i_o will_v be_v a_o lie_v spirit_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o
this_o i_o say_v belong_v unto_o punishment_n but_o sin_n take_v place_n in_o the_o mind_n only_o punishment_n doubtless_o may_v both_o be_v in_o the_o mind_n and_o in_o the_o body_n there_o be_v add_v a_o three_o member_n which_o be_v so_o a_o punishment_n as_o it_o be_v also_o sin_n as_o original_a sin_n be_v so_o be_v the_o natural_a corruption_n leave_v after_o baptism_n these_o thing_n thus_o conclude_v i_o put_v forth_o a_o certain_a sentence_n or_o proposition_n to_o be_v confirm_v the_o which_o have_v two_o part_n the_o first_o be_v define_v a_o proposition_n whereby_o the_o question_n be_v define_v that_o god_n be_v not_o by_o himself_o and_o proper_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n the_o second_o be_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o do_v in_o the_o world_n no_o not_o sin_n themselves_o without_o his_o will_n determination_n and_o providence_n sin_n that_o god_n by_o himself_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n 7_o to_o prove_v the_o question_n it_o behove_v to_o confirm_v it_o as_o touch_v both_o part_n let_v we_o speak_v of_o the_o first_o that_o god_n by_o himself_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n unto_o this_o purpose_n serve_v the_o argument_n in_o the_o first_o place_n but_o i_o add_v that_o when_o good_a or_o evil_n be_v oppose_v as_o habit_n and_o privation_n the_o habit_n by_o itself_o do_v never_o bring_v in_o privation_n light_v itself_o do_v always_o illuminate_v it_o never_o bring_v in_o darkness_n wherefore_o if_o we_o put_v good_a and_o evil_a as_o contrary_a privative_n evil_a shall_v not_o be_v of_o good_a god_n be_v the_o chief_a good_a let_v we_o then_o put_v he_o to_o be_v the_o habit_n wherefore_o by_o himself_o and_o proper_o he_o make_v no_o privation_n but_o i_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n by_o himself_o and_o proper_o these_o word_n i_o have_v add_v because_o if_o we_o will_v speak_v less_o proper_o he_o may_v be_v say_v after_o some_o sort_n to_o be_v either_o the_o beginning_n or_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n not_o indeed_o the_o proper_a cause_n similitude_n god_n be_v of_o sin_n the_o remove_n or_o prohibit_v cause_n two_o similitude_n but_o that_o cause_n which_o of_o the_o philosopher_n be_v call_v remove_v or_o prohibit_v i_o will_v make_v the_o matter_n plain_a by_o similitude_n the_o sun_n be_v altogether_o bright_a the_o proper_a effect_n thereof_o be_v to_o make_v light_a yet_o after_o some_o manner_n it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o make_v darkness_n not_o in_o that_o it_o shine_v but_o in_o that_o it_o be_v move_v and_o depart_v from_o one_o place_n to_o a_o other_o for_o body_n be_v round_o therefore_o when_o it_o depart_v it_o can_v not_o always_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o motion_n give_v light_n to_o that_o place_n from_o whence_o it_o go_v but_o shadow_n do_v come_v between_o so_o then_o after_o some_o sort_n it_o be_v say_v to_o make_v darkness_n by_o the_o departure_n thereof_o because_o body_n be_v so_o order_v and_o itself_o be_v move_v so_o likewise_o it_o happen_v as_o touch_v some_o ruinous_a house_n it_o be_v hold_v up_o by_o a_o prop_n some_o man_n approach_v remoove_v the_o prop_n the_o stone_n and_o building_n through_o their_o own_o weight_n fall_v down_o from_o the_o top_n which_o thing_n have_v in_o themselves_o the_o cause_n of_o their_o come_n down_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o which_o take_v away_o the_o prop_n be_v say_v after_o a_o sort_n to_o cause_v the_o fall_n for_o he_o remoove_v the_o stay_n which_o let_v the_o ruin_n in_o like_a manner_n god_n in_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v good_a yet_o in_o respect_n that_o he_o be_v just_a he_o will_v punish_v sinner_n he_o take_v away_o his_o grace_n and_o after_o some_o sort_n may_v be_v call_v the_o cause_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o afterward_o be_v naughtilie_o do_v yet_o not_o the_o true_a cause_n for_o that_o proper_a cause_n be_v inward_a that_o be_v to_o wit_n the_o naughty_a will_n of_o they_o but_o why_o he_o sometime_o take_v away_o his_o spirit_n from_o man_n a_o reason_n may_v be_v yield_v when_o they_o sin_n he_o remoove_v his_o grace_n from_o they_o not_o only_o to_o the_o intent_n he_o may_v punish_v but_o that_o the_o excellency_n of_o his_o favour_n may_v be_v know_v and_o to_o let_v we_o understand_v that_o that_o which_o god_n give_v he_o give_v it_o free_o and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o nature_n for_o if_o we_o shall_v always_o have_v his_o grace_n and_o after_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o manner_n as_o if_o god_n will_v not_o at_o sometime_o stack_n his_o strength_n we_o will_v attribute_v unto_o our_o own_o power_n the_o good_a thing_n that_o we_o do_v but_o thus_o it_o be_v to_o the_o intent_n we_o may_v acknowledge_v our_o own_o infirmity_n and_o pray_v the_o more_o fervent_o for_o preservation_n and_o increase_n of_o the_o heavenly_a gift_n but_o when_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n be_v justly_o take_v away_o from_o we_o sin_n do_v natural_o follow_v neither_o be_v there_o need_v of_o any_o other_o efficient_a cause_n i_o mean_v there_o need_v no_o other_o cause_n to_o come_v from_o our_o infect_a and_o corrupt_a affection_n this_o appear_v by_o the_o similitude_n allege_v if_o the_o sun_n be_v remoove_v darkness_n do_v follow_v not_o through_o any_o efficient_a cause_n but_o by_o itself_o if_o the_o habit_n be_v remoove_v similitude_n similitude_n privation_n be_v straightwaie_o present_a of_o his_o own_o accord_n if_o one_o so_o hurt_v his_o eye_n as_o the_o sight_n be_v lose_v blindness_n do_v immediate_o follow_v neither_o be_v it_o needful_a to_o seek_v any_o other_o thing_n that_o work_v which_o see_v the_o manicheis_n perceive_v not_o they_o err_v most_o shameful_o they_o will_v not_o attribute_v the_o cause_n of_o evil_a unto_o the_o good_a god_n but_o they_o see_v that_o there_o be_v many_o evil_n and_o they_o judge_v that_o evil_n can_v not_o be_v without_o a_o true_a cause_n whereupon_o they_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v two_o beginning_n and_o because_o they_o see_v a_o great_a power_n to_o be_v both_o in_o evil_n &_o in_o good_a they_o bring_v in_o two_o god_n one_o good_a and_o a_o other_o bad_a of_o these_o we_o read_v much_o in_o augustine_n but_o that_o evil_a which_o be_v sin_n come_v if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v take_v away_o for_o then_o man_n be_v leave_v unto_o himself_o but_o whether_o be_v he_o so_o leave_v as_o god_n do_v no_o more_o any_o thing_n concern_v he_o or_o his_o sin_n that_o this_o may_v be_v understand_v creature_n three_o sort_n of_o god_n work_v about_o his_o creature_n i_o will_v declare_v three_o sort_n of_o work_v which_o we_o may_v perceive_v in_o god_n towards_o his_o creature_n not_o that_o other_o work_n of_o he_o can_v not_o be_v show_v but_o because_o these_o three_o do_v most_o of_o all_o serve_v unto_o the_o matter_n we_o have_v in_o hand_n 8_o some_o action_n of_o god_n be_v general_a general_a the_o first_o action_n of_o god_n be_v general_a see_v by_o his_o providence_n he_o cherish_v sustein_v and_o govern_v all_o thing_n in_o their_o condition_n quality_n and_o inclination_n as_o they_o stand_v at_o the_o beginning_n when_o they_o be_v create_v and_o thus_o be_v the_o order_n of_o nature_n preserve_v which_o thing_n be_v excellent_a to_o be_v know_v we_o see_v that_o heaven_n retain_v his_o own_o nature_n sure_o it_o have_v many_o thing_n to_o be_v marvel_v at_o we_o see_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o fire_n be_v vehement_a of_o air_n be_v pleasant_a of_o water_n be_v flow_v we_o see_v also_o the_o metal_n the_o tree_n the_o work_n of_o artificer_n which_o thing_n assure_o be_v wonder_a all_o these_o be_v govern_v by_o god_n yea_o and_o if_o he_o shall_v withdraw_v his_o hand_n from_o they_o they_o will_v fall_v to_o nothing_o profitable_a doubtless_o be_v the_o consideration_n of_o his_o divine_a government_n oftentimes_o do_v god_n exhort_v we_o in_o the_o psalm_n to_o magnify_v he_o for_o these_o work_n 20._o rom._n 1_o 20._o in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o roman_n it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o gentile_n by_o these_o creature_n do_v know_v god_n and_o a_o kind_n of_o his_o everlasting_a force_n work_v government_n and_o godhead_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o aratus_n say_v we_o be_v in_o very_a deed_n the_o lineage_n of_o god_n we_o have_v a_o excellent_a example_n of_o this_o work_n in_o ourselves_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v not_o see_v be_v indivisible_a yet_o it_o move_v and_o quicken_v the_o whole_a body_n even_o so_o all_o creature_n do_v retain_v their_o property_n and_o inclination_n work_v the_o second_o kind_n of_o god_n work_v 9_o secondlie_o another_o work_n of_o god_n be_v whereby_o the_o creature_n be_v not_o only_o preserve_v and_o rule_v but_o do_v also_o obey_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n for_o god_n
but_o in_o the_o devil_n it_o be_v not_o thus_o for_o although_o he_o sometime_o suggest_v evil_a thing_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o godly_a yet_o nevertheless_o sin_n do_v not_o always_o follow_v for_o many_o godly_a man_n do_v valiant_o resist_v he_o and_o when_o sin_n follow_v not_o he_o can_v not_o be_v call_v the_o absolute_a and_o perfect_a cause_n thereof_o in_o deed_n he_o provoke_v man_n but_o yet_o not_o so_o that_o sin_n must_v of_o necessity_n follow_v i_o may_v bring_v another_o reason_n let_v we_o imagine_v that_o the_o devil_n himself_o have_v not_o revolt_v from_o god_n and_o that_o man_n have_v be_v create_v man_n can_v yet_o of_o his_o own_o nature_n have_v sin_v and_o have_v have_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n in_o himself_o but_o the_o suggestion_n of_o the_o devil_n can_v not_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o when_o he_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o alienate_v from_o god_n so_o that_o he_o be_v no_o perfect_a nor_o full_a cause_n of_o sin_n but_o a_o persuade_v and_o allure_a cause_n we_o have_v therefore_o show_v from_o whence_o sin_n have_v his_o deficient_a cause_n namely_o from_o our_o own_o corruption_n yet_o nevertheless_o god_n do_v govern_v and_o rule_v sin_n itself_o he_o do_v not_o idelie_o look_v on_o but_o he_o do_v the_o part_n of_o a_o judge_n and_o governor_n and_o he_o leave_v not_o all_o thing_n without_o guide_v but_o after_o what_o sort_n be_v he_o say_v to_o govern_v sin_n even_o as_o touch_v time_n manner_n form_n and_o matter_n sin_n in_o what_o sort_n god_n govern_v sin_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v carry_v sometime_o rather_o against_o this_o man_n and_o sometime_o rather_o against_o that_o man_n our_o corruption_n lie_v hide_v within_o we_o but_o god_n suffer_v not_o the_o same_o at_o all_o time_n to_o break_v forth_o nor_o yet_o so_o long_o as_o the_o wicked_a will_v he_o bridle_v sin_n and_o sometime_o interrupt_v they_o further_o he_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o our_o wickedness_n shall_v rather_o bend_v unto_o one_o part_n than_o unto_o another_o 10._o 2._o sam._n 16_o verse_n 10._o as_o the_o rage_n of_o semei_n be_v more_o bend_v against_o david_n than_o against_o another_o man_n and_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n be_v show_v rather_o at_o one_o time_n than_o at_o another_o god_n direct_v the_o power_n of_o nabuchadnezar_n rather_o against_o the_o hebrews_n than_o against_o their_o neighbour_n 21._o ezec._n 21_o 21._o 13_o there_o be_v also_o a_o certain_a other_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v of_o in_o sin_n sin_v how_o god_n offer_v occasion_n of_o sin_v when_o they_o break_v forth_o into_o act_n god_n himself_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o some_o thing_n which_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v good_a and_o yet_o because_o such_o thing_n fall_v into_o the_o wicked_a they_o be_v take_v in_o ill_a part_n and_o be_v occasion_n of_o sin_v so_o as_o the_o sin_n which_o lie_v hide_v before_o do_v break_v forth_o but_o yet_o these_o suggestion_n either_o inward_a or_o outward_a can_v not_o be_v proper_o call_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n see_v those_o cause_n be_v within_o in_o man_n yet_o may_v they_o be_v call_v occasion_n but_o of_o occasion_n some_o be_v give_v and_o some_o take_v in_o like_a manner_n as_o they_o distinguish_v scandalum_fw-la that_o be_v a_o offence_n take_v a_o definition_n of_o a_o offence_n give_v and_o a_o offence_n take_v a_o offence_n take_v be_v the_o occasion_n of_o a_o offence_n not_o on_o the_o behalf_n of_o he_o that_o give_v it_o for_o he_o do_v that_o which_o be_v profitable_a but_o a_o ill_a man_n do_v ill_o interpret_v this_o that_o be_v a_o offence_n take_v so_o christ_n say_v of_o the_o scribe_n and_o phariseis_n 14._o mat._n 15_o 14._o let_v they_o alone_o they_o be_v blind_a and_o leader_n of_o the_o blind_a the_o apostle_n teach_v that_o man_n ought_v to_o do_v well_o if_o other_o be_v offend_v the_o fault_n remain_v not_o in_o they_o a_o offence_n give_v be_v when_o we_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o do_v but_o in_o god_n it_o be_v not_o so_o he_o sugge_v some_o thing_n that_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v good_a the_o which_o fall_v into_o a_o evil_a nature_n become_v occasion_n of_o sin_v occasion_n example_n of_o these_o occasion_n 14_o the_o matter_n must_v be_v make_v plain_a by_o example_n some_o godly_a man_n see_v a_o man_n sin_n he_o come_v to_o he_o he_o diligent_o warn_v he_o to_o beware_v that_o which_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n be_v good_a but_o it_o happen_v into_o a_o naughty_a mind_n which_o then_o begin_v more_o and_o more_o to_o break_v forth_o into_o the_o hatred_n of_o virtue_n and_o to_o wax_v cruel_a against_o the_o godly_a this_o admonition_n be_v a_o occasion_n that_o these_o thing_n shall_v break_v out_o into_o act_n god_n suggest_v by_o the_o godly_a man_n that_o which_o in_o nature_n be_v good_a wherefore_o he_o be_v say_v to_o do_v right_o for_o he_o do_v that_o which_o be_v his_o part_n to_o do_v sin_v good_a thing_n unto_o the_o wicked_a be_v occasion_n of_o sin_v but_o unto_o evil_a man_n good_a thing_n be_v make_v occasion_n of_o sin_v yea_o and_o of_o more_o gréevous_a sin_v than_o if_o perhaps_o they_o have_v not_o be_v minister_v howbeit_o this_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o god_n and_o we_o that_o we_o while_o we_o suggest_v good_a thing_n be_v ignorant_a whether_o the_o party_n will_v become_v the_o worse_a but_o god_n be_v not_o ignorant_a for_o example_n 2._o exod._n 5_o 1._o and_o 2._o god_n send_v moses_n and_o aaron_n unto_o pharaoh_n he_o command_v that_o he_o shall_v let_v his_o people_n go_v this_o suggestion_n in_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v good_a pharaoh_n take_v in_o ill_a part_n and_o begin_v to_o be_v the_o more_o cruel_a if_o this_o suggestion_n have_v fall_v into_o a_o godly_a man_n he_o will_v have_v say_v it_o be_v meet_a i_o shall_v obey_v god_n and_o because_o it_o be_v his_o will_n that_o i_o shall_v let_v the_o people_n go_v i_o will_v in_o any_o wise_a do_v it_o for_o i_o can_v challenge_v no_o right_n over_o they_o long_o than_o he_o will_v himself_o but_o pharaoh_n when_o he_o hear_v these_o word_n begin_v to_o blaspheme_v say_v who_o be_v this_o god_n and_o he_o break_v out_o into_o cruelty_n the_o same_o will_v we_o declare_v by_o other_o example_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n not_o only_o that_o admonition_n give_v unto_o pharaoh_n by_o moses_n and_o aaron_n be_v a_o good_a thing_n and_o be_v apply_v outward_o by_o god_n and_o he_o which_o be_v evil_a use_v the_o same_o naughtilie_o but_o we_o have_v the_o selfsame_o thing_n in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n 12._o rom._n 7_o 12._o the_o law_n be_v holy_a and_o spiritual_a but_o it_o have_v wrought_v in_o i_o concupiscence_n and_o death_n the_o commandment_n of_o god_n in_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v unto_o life_n but_o the_o filthiness_n of_o sin_n take_v a_o occasion_n by_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v suggest_v neither_o be_v this_o do_v outward_o alone_a but_o sometime_o also_o god_n work_v it_o inwardlie_a by_o good_a cogitation_n for_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v good_a we_o must_v always_o think_v that_o they_o be_v of_o god_n pharaoh_n 9_o exod._n 1_o 9_o which_o come_v after_o the_o death_n of_o joseph_n begin_v to_o cast_v thus_o in_o his_o mind_n we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o the_o commonweal_n suffer_v no_o detriment_n this_o cogitation_n be_v good_a and_o it_o proceed_v from_o god_n but_o it_o light_v into_o a_o evil_a mind_n therefore_o it_o be_v wrest_v against_o the_o hebrews_n for_o he_o say_v the_o people_n of_o the_o hebrews_n will_v increase_v and_o when_o occasion_n be_v offer_v will_v subdue_v we_o wherefore_o let_v they_o be_v destroy_v he_o set_v forth_o a_o edict_n that_o all_o the_o man_n child_n of_o the_o hebrews_n shall_v be_v throw_v into_o the_o river_n the_o first_o cogitation_n be_v good_a but_o through_o his_o naughtiness_n it_o turn_v unto_o evil_a nabuchadnezar_n say_v it_o be_v not_o the_o part_n of_o a_o good_a prince_n to_o be_v idle_a but_o he_o must_v exercise_v the_o power_n which_o he_o have_v the_o cogitation_n be_v good_a but_o he_o turn_v himself_o unto_o foreign_a nation_n and_o arm_v not_o his_o power_n as_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v do_v against_o the_o wickedness_n of_o his_o own_o people_n the_o same_o prince_n as_o we_o read_v in_o daniel_n be_v in_o his_o hall_n 27._o dan._n 4_o 27._o reckon_v with_o himself_o the_o victory_n which_o he_o have_v &_o the_o greatness_n of_o empire_n which_o he_o have_v get_v these_o thought_n be_v good_a for_o we_o shall_v weigh_v with_o ourselves_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n but_o they_o light_v into_o a_o evil_a mind_n he_o straightwaie_o think_v with_o himself_o that_o he_o
wipe_v out_o who_o be_v write_v in_o before_o the_o will_n seem_v not_o to_o be_v constant_a read_v augustine_n upon_o that_o place_n a_o man_n common_o say_v quod_fw-la scripsi_fw-la scripsi_fw-la what_o i_o have_v write_v that_o have_v i_o write_v and_o will_v god_n wipe_v out_o that_o which_o he_o have_v write_v how_o then_o be_v they_o say_v to_o be_v wipe_v out_o the_o kind_n of_o speech_n be_v according_a to_o the_o hope_n of_o they_o in_o very_a deed_n they_o be_v not_o register_v but_o they_o think_v themselves_o to_o be_v register_v but_o there_o be_v some_o which_o refer_v blindness_n and_o harden_v of_o heart_n to_o foreknowledge_n only_o howbeit_o there_o be_v not_o a_o bare_a prescience_n of_o these_o thing_n but_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a will_n of_o god_n whereby_o god_n can_v foreknowe_a thing_n to_o come_v unless_o they_o be_v such_o as_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v and_o those_o thing_n that_o shall_v be_v or_o be_v can_v come_v to_o pass_v or_o be_v unless_o that_o god_n with_o some_o kind_n of_o will_n will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v or_o to_o come_v to_o pass_v wherefore_o there_o be_v some_o will_n of_o god_n that_o precead_v foreknowledge_n he_o have_v a_o will_n not_o to_o let_v thing_n and_o he_o have_v a_o will_n to_o use_v they_o according_a to_o his_o predestinate_v counsel_n 33_o a_o other_o argument_n 19_o to_o the_o 19_o these_o tyrant_n nabuchadnezar_n senacherib_n and_o other_o 19_o esaie_n 10_o 5._o and._n 19_o be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n as_o a_o staff_n and_o rod_n and_o therefore_o god_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n indeed_o it_o be_v true_a that_o they_o be_v as_o a_o rod_n and_o when_o they_o have_v execute_v their_o office_n they_o be_v throw_v into_o the_o fire_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o without_o sense_n and_o perceive_v but_o be_v move_v forward_o by_o their_o own_o naughty_a will_n and_o therefore_o be_v justly_o punish_v for_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o instrument_n as_o i_o declare_v before_o howbeit_o this_o be_v no_o beguile_v that_o god_n will_v use_v these_o thing_n &_o yet_o command_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v do_v these_o man_n do_v they_o of_o a_o naughty_a will_n but_o god_n use_v their_o naughtiness_n man_n also_o can_v use_v well_o the_o naughty_a action_n of_o their_o adversary_n and_o many_o time_n they_o do_v use_v they_o without_o any_o crafty_a deal_n even_o to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v take_v heed_n to_o themselves_o and_o may_v show_v patience_n sometime_o god_n use_v sin_n to_o punish_v the_o sinner_n themselves_o yea_o rather_o he_o use_v they_o so_o always_o for_o because_o sin_n be_v always_o a_o punishment_n of_o the_o sinner_n and_o otherwhile_o he_o use_v they_o for_o the_o punishment_n of_o other_o an_o other_o argument_n be_v 20._o to_o the_o 20._o that_o god_n put_v into_o the_o hart_n of_o david_n to_o number_v the_o people_n indeed_o 1._o 2._o sam_n 24_o 1._o 1._o paâ_n â1_n 1._o the_o scripture_n speak_v after_o this_o manner_n these_o kind_n of_o speech_n we_o hear_v not_o in_o the_o poet_n but_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n plato_n may_v banish_v poet_n out_o of_o his_o common_a weal_n but_o we_o may_v not_o drive_v out_o scripture_n which_o speak_v on_o this_o wise_a but_o how_o these_o thing_n must_v be_v understand_v i_o have_v declare_v before_o god_n withdraw_v his_o help_n from_o david_n he_o hinder_v he_o not_o he_o will_v use_v that_o work_n for_o punish_v of_o the_o people_n but_o it_o be_v object_v if_o god_n withdraw_v his_o grace_n he_o do_v it_o justly_o i_o grant_v it_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o do_v the_o same_o further_o he_o use_v the_o devil_n also_o ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la in_o the_o book_n of_o chronicle_n it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o devil_n set_v on_o david_n therefore_o god_n also_o do_v it_o insomuch_o as_o he_o give_v the_o devil_n leave_v but_o they_o object_n against_o that_o which_o we_o have_v oftentimes_o speak_v namely_o that_o grace_n be_v remoove_v from_o we_o sin_n do_v creep_v on_o of_o itself_o see_v our_o own_o will_n of_o itself_o incline_v unto_o it_o even_o as_o darkness_n do_v natural_o come_v after_o the_o light_n be_v go_v god_n say_v they_o be_v even_o as_o the_o sun_n because_o his_o light_n shine_v in_o every_o place_n but_o there_o be_v man_n which_o convey_v themselves_o into_o corner_n but_o if_o his_o lightning_n be_v in_o every_o place_n into_o what_o corner_n shall_v man_n go_v where_o that_o light_n be_v not_o the_o divine_a scripture_n say_v otherwise_o for_o it_o say_v of_o he_o that_o abuse_v the_o talon_n 28_o matt._n 25_o 28_o take_v it_o away_o from_o he_o etc._n etc._n david_n pray_v take_v not_o away_o thy_o holy_a spirit_n from_o i_o wherefore_o god_n mean_v to_o use_v the_o sin_n of_o david_n for_o punishment_n of_o the_o people_n and_o aeschylus_n the_o tragical_a poet_n be_v by_o some_o uniustlie_o accuse_v who_o say_v that_o god_n if_o he_o will_v destroy_v and_o take_v away_o any_o he_o give_v the_o cause_n and_o occasion_n see_v the_o scripture_n so_o speak_v which_o can_v speak_v against_o the_o law_n of_o plato_n but_o not_o against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n 25_o 1._o sam._n 2_o 25_o for_o it_o say_v that_o the_o son_n of_o helie_n do_v not_o hearken_v to_o their_o father_n because_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v to_o destroy_v they_o 15_o 1._o kin._n 12_o 15_o and_o that_o roboam_n will_v not_o give_v ear_n unto_o the_o elder_n because_o the_o turn_n away_o be_v of_o god_n it_o be_v say_v that_o if_o the_o matter_n shall_v be_v thus_o 21._o to_o the_o 21._o then_o god_n shall_v not_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o thing_n if_o he_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n it_o follow_v not_o for_o although_o god_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n yet_o he_o govern_v the_o sin_n which_o be_v commit_v he_o use_v they_o and_o make_v the_o very_a groundwork_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v a_o natural_a thing_n but_o it_o behoove_v say_v they_o that_o sin_n be_v voluntary_a if_o we_o speak_v of_o actual_a sin_n it_o be_v true_a but_o of_o original_a sin_n it_o be_v not_o true_a also_o the_o first_o motion_n which_o be_v sin_n be_v not_o voluntary_a barnard_n barnard_n and_o barnard_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o free_a will_n set_v down_o certain_a degree_n of_o man_n nature_n man_n that_o be_v bless_v in_o the_o heavenly_a habitation_n can_v sin_v it_o be_v in_o adam_n not_o to_o have_v sin_v after_o sin_n commit_v we_o can_v choose_v but_o sin_n so_o be_v the_o damn_a so_o be_v the_o reprobate_n and_o wicked_a but_o the_o godly_a &_o regenerate_a be_v able_a not_o to_o give_v place_n unto_o sin_n and_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o sin_n shall_v not_o altogether_o reign_v in_o they_o and_o this_o they_o have_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n whereby_o it_o appear_v by_o this_o distinction_n that_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o damn_a be_v of_o necessity_n god_n we_o can_v make_v choice_n of_o any_o part_n without_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o sin_n nevertheless_o for_o although_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o necessity_n yet_o it_o be_v voluntary_a but_o not_o so_o voluntary_a as_o we_o be_v able_a of_o ourselves_o to_o make_v choice_n of_o the_o other_o part_n which_o be_v contrary_a thereunto_o for_o we_o can_v have_v the_o choice_n on_o the_o other_o part_n but_o through_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o god_n god_n in_o punish_v there_o be_v no_o respect_n what_o we_o be_v able_a or_o not_o able_a but_o what_o we_o do_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n sin_n be_v justly_o punish_v but_o there_o be_v no_o respect_n have_v what_o thou_o be_v able_a or_o not_o able_a but_o whether_o that_o which_o thou_o do_v be_v do_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o no._n and_o god_n do_v injury_n unto_o no_n man_n wherefore_o this_o objection_n be_v not_o of_o force_n if_o we_o respect_v god_n if_o one_o see_v a_o blind_a man_n to_o be_v fall_v &_o do_v not_o stretch_v forth_o his_o hand_n to_o help_v he_o or_o set_v he_o not_o up_o again_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v cruelty_n 22._o to_o the_o 22._o god_n see_v a_o man_n ready_a to_o fall_v he_o put_v not_o forth_o his_o hand_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v cruelty_n in_o who_o in_o man_n because_o the_o law_n be_v prescribe_v unto_o they_o god_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o these_o law_n zuinglius_fw-la zuinglius_fw-la this_o answer_n make_v zuinglius_fw-la in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr providentia_fw-la and_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr falsa_fw-la &_o vera_fw-la religione_fw-la where_o he_o intreat_v of_o merit_n and_o although_o god_n bestow_v not_o so_o large_a gift_n upon_o the_o reprobate_n as_o he_o do_v upon_o other_o yet_o he_o give_v they_o many_o thing_n
unto_o the_o corinthian_n 10_o 1._o co._n 11_o 10_o command_v woman_n to_o have_v their_o head_n cover_v in_o the_o holy_a congregation_n at_o the_o leastwise_o because_o of_o the_o angel_n and_o even_o as_o woman_n ought_v to_o shadow_v their_o face_n that_o they_o be_v not_o see_v so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n man_n ought_v to_o temper_v themselves_o that_o they_o do_v not_o over-curiouslie_a behold_v they_o of_o which_o matter_n tertullian_n write_v many_o thing_n very_o well_o in_o a_o little_a book_n entitle_v de_n virginibus_fw-la velandis_fw-la and_o solomon_n thus_o wise_o admonish_v lust_n not_o after_o her_o beauty_n 25._o prou._n 6_o 25._o also_o gregory_n the_o first_o they_o say_v he_o which_o abuse_v the_o outward_a eye_n be_v worthy_a to_o have_v the_o inward_a eye_n shadow_v 1._o job._n 31_o 1._o i_o have_v make_v a_o covenant_n say_v job_n with_o my_o eye_n that_o i_o will_v not_o think_v upon_o a_o virgin_n he_o say_v not_o only_o that_o i_o will_v not_o look_v upon_o but_o that_o i_o will_v not_o admit_v into_o my_o mind_n a_o imagination_n of_o she_o this_o see_v david_n do_v not_o he_o cast_v himself_o into_o the_o danger_n which_o all_o godly_a man_n ought_v to_o take_v heed_n of_o of_o the_o punishment_n of_o adultery_n 14._o in_o 2._o sam._n 12_o 14._o 22_o somewhat_o we_o will_v declare_v in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o punishment_n of_o adultery_n and_o this_o i_o think_v to_o be_v necessary_a for_o i_o for_o by_o the_o gréevousnesse_n of_o punishment_n we_o know_v the_o weightinesse_n of_o sin_n by_o reward_n and_o punishment_n commonweal_n be_v preserve_v but_o punishment_n must_v be_v apply_v according_a to_o the_o heaviness_n of_o offence_n it_o be_v very_o well_o write_v in_o the_o 24._o cause_n question_v 1._o in_o the_o chapter_n non_fw-fr afferamus_fw-la which_o word_n be_v ascribe_v unto_o jerom_n but_o rather_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o augustine_n schism_n the_o greevousnesse_n of_o schism_n how_o gréevous_a a_o sin_n be_v schism_n or_o to_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o church_n it_o be_v perceive_v by_o the_o punishment_n lay_v upon_o man_n for_o other_o gréevous_a sin_n the_o idolatry_n do_v unto_o the_o melt_a calf_n 29._o exo._n 22_o 27._o jere._n 36_o 29._o god_n punish_v by_o a_o kind_n of_o death_n because_o zedechias_n burn_v the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n god_n do_v revenge_v it_o with_o captivity_n but_o the_o rebellion_n do_v against_o moses_n and_o aaron_n he_o punish_v more_o gréevouslie_o 16_o num._n 16_o he_o send_v a_o fire_n wherewith_o those_o which_o conspire_v with_o chore_n be_v consume_v and_o the_o earth_n swallow_v up_o the_o seditious_a person_n place_n a_o division_n of_o this_o place_n we_o will_v first_o then_o consider_v the_o punishment_n of_o adultery_n that_o we_o may_v understand_v how_o heinous_a a_o sin_n it_o be_v secondlie_o we_o will_v see_v whether_o the_o adulterer_n and_o the_o adulteress_n shall_v have_v equal_a punishment_n and_o whether_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o like_a punishment_n and_o whether_o of_o they_o be_v the_o great_a sinner_n thirdlie_o what_o evil_n may_v come_v by_o reason_n that_o these_o punishment_n be_v either_o neglect_v or_o utterlie_o take_v await_v as_o touch_v the_o first_o we_o must_v search_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n what_o may_v be_v find_v touch_v the_o punishment_n of_o adultery_n after_o that_o we_o will_v descend_v to_o the_o reckon_n up_o of_o punishment_n of_o diverse_a nation_n then_o will_v we_o come_v to_o the_o roman_a law_n and_o last_o of_o all_o unto_o the_o ecclestiasticall_a and_o canon_n law_n of_o the_o first_o we_o must_v understand_v that_o the_o divine_a scripture_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n 23._o rom._n 6_o 23._o see_v therefore_o that_o death_n be_v due_a unto_o sin_n forthwith_o after_o a_o man_n have_v transgress_v he_o may_v be_v put_v to_o death_n by_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o law_n but_o god_n be_v not_o so_o strict_a a_o exactor_n he_o grant_v as_o yet_o some_o space_n unto_o life_n the_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v sometime_o break_v off_o by_o the_o sword_n of_o magistrate_n if_o gréevous_a crime_n be_v commit_v which_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v suffer_v but_o there_o be_v other_o sin_n of_o less_o weight_n for_o which_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o put_v man_n to_o death_n further_o we_o will_v see_v whether_o adultery_n may_v be_v reckon_v among_o those_o sin_n whereunto_o death_n be_v due_a certeinlie_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n whereunto_o death_n belong_v as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n declare_v unto_o we_o and_o that_o for_o good_a cause_n for_o by_o this_o wickedness_n be_v hurt_v that_o society_n from_o whence_o be_v derive_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o friendship_n among_o man_n 11_o gen._n 26_o 11_o in_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n when_o abimelech_n the_o king_n of_o gerar_n have_v see_v isaac_n play_v somewhat_o familiar_o with_o rebecca_n he_o perceive_v he_o to_o be_v her_o husband_n and_o not_o her_o brother_n 20._o death_n for_o adultery_n before_o the_o law_n gen._n 39_o 20._o so_o then_o he_o charge_v that_o none_o upon_o the_o pain_n of_o death_n shall_v touch_v that_o woman_n therefore_o we_o see_v that_o before_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n adultery_n be_v by_o the_o ethnik_v punish_v with_o death_n joseph_n after_o that_o it_o have_v be_v lay_v to_o his_o charge_n in_o egypt_n that_o he_o commit_v adultery_n with_o his_o mistress_n be_v deliver_v to_o the_o head_n officer_n of_o capital_a crime_n and_o be_v cast_v into_o prison_n thamar_n 24._o gen._n 38_o 24._o when_o she_o have_v bury_v two_o husband_n and_o wait_v for_o the_o three_o unto_o who_o she_o be_v betroth_v do_v commit_v adultery_n and_o be_v judge_v to_o be_v burn_v and_o undoubted_o when_o a_o woman_n that_o be_v betroth_v do_v abuse_v herself_o she_o commit_v adultery_n for_o although_o it_o be_v not_o a_o full_a marriage_n yet_o be_v there_o such_o hope_n of_o marriage_n as_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v pollute_v this_o do_v the_o emperor_n severus_n perceive_v the_o law_n may_v be_v read_v ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la de_fw-la adulterio_fw-la in_o the_o digest_v the_o law_n siuxor_n in_o the_o paraph_n dinus_n in_o the_o 22._o chapter_n of_o deuteronomie_n 10_o deut._n 22_o 22_o levit._fw-la 20_o 10_o and_o in_o the_o 20._o of_o leviticus_fw-la by_o the_o law_n that_o be_v there_o give_v the_o adulterer_n &_o adulteress_n be_v command_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n which_o sentence_n god_n in_o the_o 16._o chapter_n of_o ezechiel_n confirm_v 38._o verse_n 38._o where_o he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v bring_v punishment_n upon_o the_o adulterous_a israelit_n the_o same_o law_n be_v confirm_v in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n of_o john_n when_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n have_v bring_v unto_o christ_n a_o woman_n which_o be_v take_v in_o adultery_n they_o say_v moses_n command_v we_o in_o the_o law_n 5._o verse_n 5._o that_o such_o a_o woman_n shall_v be_v stone_v etc._n etc._n so_o great_o do_v god_n esteem_v chastity_n and_o unspotted_a wedlock_n as_o he_o will_v not_o have_v so_o much_o as_o a_o suspicion_n to_o remain_v between_o they_o which_o be_v man_n and_o wife_n for_o in_o the_o book_n of_o number_n gelousie_n num._n 5_o 14._o the_o law_n of_o gelousie_n there_o be_v ordain_v a_o law_n touch_v gelousie_n she_o which_o be_v suspect_v of_o adultery_n be_v bring_v unto_o the_o priest_n curse_n be_v denounce_v a_o drink_n be_v give_v she_o and_o straitwaie_o it_o be_v know_v whether_o she_o be_v a_o adulteress_n or_o no._n and_o if_o a_o man_n have_v marry_v a_o wife_n and_o have_v be_v able_a to_o gather_v and_o prove_v by_o certain_a sign_n that_o she_o be_v not_o a_o virgin_n she_o be_v punish_v betroth_v punishment_n for_o abuse_v a_o maid_n betroth_v if_o a_o maiden_n betroth_v to_o a_o husband_n have_v be_v force_v by_o any_o abroad_o in_o the_o field_n the_o ravisher_n shall_v have_v be_v punish_v with_o death_n if_o in_o the_o city_n the_o damsel_n shall_v also_o have_v have_v the_o same_o punishment_n deuteronomie_n 22._o so_o then_o great_a severity_n be_v use_v herein_o 25_o verse_n 13_o 25_o howbeit_o the_o revenge_n be_v not_o commit_v to_o private_a person_n the_o husband_n kill_v not_o his_o wife_n nor_o the_o father_n his_o daughter_n but_o the_o matter_n be_v bring_v before_o a_o judge_n 27._o verse_n 27._o so_o read_v we_o to_o be_v do_v in_o susanna_n although_o that_o history_n be_v apocryphal_a in_o the_o prophet_n jeremie_n we_o read_v that_o nabuchadnezar_a roast_a zedechias_n and_o achabus_n 22._o jere._n 29_o 22._o two_o unchaste_a priest_n these_o thing_n we_o have_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n especial_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n adultery_n the_o ethnik_n law_n for_o punishment_n of_o adultery_n 23_o the_o law_n of_o the_o gentile_n also_o suffer_v not_o
ought_v to_o have_v govern_v well_o in_o his_o own_o house_n 4._o 1._o tim._n 3_o 4._o but_o there_o be_v a_o suspicion_n of_o negligence_n see_v his_o wife_n do_v fall_v into_o adultery_n if_o a_o clergy_n man_n have_v not_o reject_v his_o wife_n when_o she_o fall_v into_o adultery_n the_o eliberine_n council_n give_v he_o no_o peace_n or_o fellowship_n with_o other_o during_o his_o life_n the_o council_n of_o toledo_n decree_v otherwise_o as_o we_o have_v it_o in_o the_o decree_n 32._o cause_n question_v the_o sixth_o in_o the_o chapter_n placuit_fw-la to_o wit_n that_o a_o clergy_n man_n who_o wife_n do_v fall_v into_o adultery_n may_v keep_v she_o at_o home_n howbeit_o tie_v for_o certain_a year_n with_o a_o fast_v that_o shall_v serve_v to_o keep_v she_o in_o health_n but_o not_o that_o shall_v make_v she_o to_o die_v in_o the_o decree_n the_o 81._o distinction_n in_o the_o chapter_n romanus_n the_o chapter_n presbyter_n and_o the_o chapter_n diaconus_fw-la adulterous_a minister_n be_v utterlie_o remoove_v from_o the_o ministry_n and_o the_o eliberine_n council_n do_v give_v no_o peace_n unto_o bishop_n priest_n or_o deacons_n be_v fall_v into_o adultery_n no_v not_o when_o they_o shall_v die_v no_o more_o also_o do_v they_o to_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o man_n which_o have_v commit_v adultery_n more_o than_o once_o or_o twice_o they_o find_v also_o another_o kind_n of_o remedy_n but_o that_o be_v in_o case_n of_o suspicion_n in_o the_o extravagant_n de_fw-fr iudicijs_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n significasti_fw-la if_o a_o minister_n be_v suspect_v of_o adultery_n and_o the_o crime_n can_v not_o be_v prove_v purgation_n canonical_a purgation_n they_o use_v the_o canonical_a purgation_n namely_o that_o he_o shall_v find_v out_o other_o five_o minister_n which_o will_v affirm_v by_o oath_n that_o they_o can_v not_o believe_v this_o of_o he_o but_o such_o it_o behoove_v these_o minister_n to_o be_v as_o they_o may_v be_v sure_o will_v not_o forswear_v themselves_o they_o use_v also_o another_o thing_n namely_o that_o a_o adulterer_n shall_v not_o contract_v matrimony_n with_o the_o adulteress_n if_o her_o first_o husband_n have_v be_v dead_a but_o this_o they_o understand_v conditionallie_o if_o so_o be_v they_o have_v contract_v while_o the_o other_o spouse_n be_v alive_a or_o have_v conspire_v the_o death_n of_o the_o husband_n justinian_n a_o decree_n of_o justinian_n there_o rest_v to_o declare_v what_o we_o be_v to_o think_v of_o the_o decree_n of_o justinian_n as_o touch_v that_o that_o a_o woman_n after_o she_o be_v beat_v shall_v be_v drive_v into_o a_o monastery_n and_o not_o be_v punish_v with_o death_n as_o a_o adulterer_n i_o perceive_v not_o by_o what_o reason_n that_o may_v be_v prove_v the_o crime_n belong_v unto_o both_o as_o well_o to_o the_o man_n as_o to_o the_o woman_n why_o then_o be_v the_o punishment_n unlike_a the_o sin_n of_o the_o woman_n do_v no_o less_o stain_v the_o family_n than_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o man_n yea_o and_o that_o more_o perhaps_o it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o she_o be_v weak_a but_o if_o that_o reason_n shall_v take_v place_n no_o woman_n ought_v to_o be_v punish_v with_o death_n wherefore_o under_o correction_n of_o so_o notable_a a_o man_n the_o inequality_n of_o the_o punishment_n can_v hardly_o be_v allow_v but_o i_o think_v he_o do_v this_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o bishop_n moreover_o he_o be_v blame_v insomuch_o as_o he_o ordain_v that_o if_o a_o husband_n shall_v not_o demand_v his_o wife_n again_o within_o two_o year_n or_o else_o that_o he_o die_v she_o shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o live_v continual_o in_o the_o monastery_n without_o marriage_n undoubted_o that_o be_v against_o the_o holy_a scripture_n what_o if_o she_o be_v incontinent_a as_o she_o give_v a_o token_n thereof_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o crime_n of_o adultery_n if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o magistrate_n grant_v life_n unto_o a_o malefactor_n he_o ought_v also_o to_o grant_v those_o thing_n which_o perteine_a to_o a_o godly_a life_n otherwise_o what_o profit_n come_v by_o put_v she_o away_o unless_o it_o be_v to_o make_v her_o worse_a i_o have_v declare_v what_o i_o think_v concern_v the_o decree_n of_o justinian_n 30_o now_o let_v we_o come_v unto_o the_o other_o question_n namely_o man_n whether_o woman_n do_v sin_n in_o adultery_n more_o greevouslie_o than_o man_n whether_o a_o man_n and_o a_o woman_n do_v sin_n the_o one_o as_o gréevouslie_o as_o the_o other_o in_o the_o case_n of_o adultery_n and_o whether_o they_o both_o be_v to_o be_v drive_v unto_o one_o punishment_n so_o that_o in_o all_o respect_v they_o shall_v be_v in_o all_o thing_n equal_a unto_o very_o many_o it_o have_v not_o so_o seem_v good_a and_o that_o very_o for_o diverse_a cause_n they_o will_v have_v the_o case_n to_o be_v more_o gréevous_a touch_v woman_n than_o touch_v man_n and_o the_o cause_n which_o lead_v they_o thereto_o be_v these_o first_n because_o they_o perceive_v that_o the_o civil_a law_n do_v admit_v no_o accusation_n of_o the_o husband_n against_o his_o wife_n or_o of_o the_o father_n against_o his_o daughter_n but_o not_o so_o of_o the_o woman_n although_o she_o take_v her_o husband_n with_o the_o shameful_a act_n and_o have_v witness_n of_o the_o same_o as_o we_o have_v in_o the_o code_n within_o the_o title_n ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la de_fw-la adulterijs_fw-la in_o the_o first_o law_n wherefore_o they_o in_o old_a time_n account_v the_o fault_n to_o be_v more_o gréevous_a in_o the_o woman_n also_o they_o weigh_v this_o that_o a_o woman_n be_v take_v be_v straitwaie_o infamous_a but_o a_o man_n must_v be_v first_o accuse_v and_o condemn_v before_o that_o he_o be_v stain_v with_o infamy_n thirdlie_o it_o be_v sometime_o lawful_a before_o the_o law_n julia_n for_o husband_n to_o kill_v their_o wife_n as_o cato_n testify_v in_o the_o place_n above_o recite_v the_o law_n say_v he_o be_v to_o slay_v she_o that_o be_v take_v but_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o she_o to_o touch_v thou_o once_o with_o her_o finger_n if_o she_o perceive_v thou_o to_o commit_v adultery_n hereunto_o plautus_n pleasant_o allude_v in_o the_o comedy_n mercator_n in_o very_a deed_n woman_n be_v here_o bind_v to_o over-streict_a a_o law_n as_o plutarch_n upon_o the_o life_n of_o romulus_n report_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o husband_n to_o put_v away_o his_o wife_n for_o adultery_n but_o not_o so_o on_o the_o contraie_v part_n which_o law_n seem_v also_o to_o like_a constantine_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o theodosian_a code_n de_fw-fr adulterijs_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n placuit_fw-la let_v the_o husband_n say_v he_o put_v away_o his_o wife_n for_o adultery_n but_o let_v not_o she_o do_v the_o same_o unto_o her_o husband_n though_o he_o be_v a_o effeminate_a person_n or_o a_o muliercularian_a for_o this_o term_n he_o use_v also_o they_o hereby_o consider_v of_o a_o inequality_n for_o that_o the_o woman_n if_o she_o keep_v ill_a company_n with_o a_o other_o man_n bondman_n she_o be_v make_v a_o bondwoman_n but_o it_o be_v not_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v so_o do_v unto_o man_n if_o they_o sin_v against_o bondwoman_n moreover_o they_o say_v that_o lust_n be_v always_o count_v to_o be_v more_o shameful_a in_o woman_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o crime_n shall_v be_v more_o gréevous_a in_o they_o further_o they_o suppose_v that_o a_o man_n although_o he_o live_v in_o matrimony_n if_o he_o keep_v ill_a company_n with_o other_o be_v loose_a or_o single_a woman_n as_o they_o call_v they_o he_o commit_v not_o adultery_n when_o as_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n a_o woman_n be_v marry_v may_v have_v fellowship_n with_o no_o man_n but_o she_o fall_v into_o adultery_n and_o they_o allege_v that_o which_o suetonius_n write_v upon_o the_o life_n of_o vespasian_n that_o he_o cause_v the_o senate_n to_o decree_v that_o a_o fréewoman_n which_o join_v herself_o with_o bondman_n shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o bondage_n but_o decree_v not_o so_o touch_v man_n howbeit_o this_o and_o the_o five_o argument_n be_v all_o one_o there_o be_v a_o other_o argument_n take_v exit_fw-la orificiano_n out_o of_o the_o code_n in_o the_o law_n illustris_fw-la that_o it_o be_v a_o far_o more_o shameful_a thing_n for_o a_o woman_n to_o have_v bastard_n that_o be_v by_o one_o which_o be_v not_o a_o lawful_a husband_n than_o it_o be_v for_o a_o man_n to_o have_v bastard_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la be_v allege_v which_o in_o the_o 7._o 24._o &_o 26._o chapter_n 13._o verse_n 26._o verse_n 13._o speak_v many_o thing_n of_o the_o custody_n which_o the_o father_n ought_v to_o have_v of_o his_o daughter_n for_o the_o conservation_n of_o their_o chastity_n but_o speak_v nothing_o of_o his_o man_n child_n they_o also_o consider_v this_o that_o a_o woman_n be_v take_v in_o adultery_n lose_v her_o dowry_n and_o
donation_n grant_v in_o respect_n of_o marriage_n whereas_o the_o adulterer_n sustein_v no_o loss_n in_o the_o extravagant_n de_fw-fr donationibus_fw-la inter_fw-la virum_fw-la &_o vxorem_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n plerúnque_fw-fr in_o the_o end_n adam_n and_o eve_n be_v find_v to_o be_v in_o one_o kind_n of_o sin_n have_v not_o both_o one_o punishment_n eve_n be_v punish_v more_o gréevouslie_o woman_n that_o adulterous_a man_n sin_n more_o greevouslie_o than_o the_o woman_n 31_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o cause_n seem_v to_o be_v very_o great_a which_o persuade_v otherwise_o the_o first_o be_v that_o a_o woman_n be_v more_o weak_a and_o unperfect_a than_o a_o man_n she_o want_v understanding_n and_o judgement_n these_o thing_n seem_v to_o serve_v for_o diminish_v the_o fault_n and_o many_o law_n persuade_v we_o that_o in_o punish_v we_o shall_v have_v a_o consideration_n of_o the_o sex_n some_o of_o the_o law_n i_o will_v recite_v in_o the_o digest_v ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la peculatus_fw-la it_o be_v say_v that_o in_o punishment_n there_o must_v be_v consideration_n have_v of_o the_o sex_n the_o law_n begin_v sacrilegij_fw-la poenam_fw-la also_o ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la de_fw-la adulterijs_fw-la in_o the_o law_n si_fw-mi adulterum_fw-la in_o the_o paraph_n fratres_n and_o in_o the_o paraph_n jacestam_fw-la they_o will_v have_v a_o difference_n to_o be_v consider_v of_o in_o the_o sex_n because_o woman_n be_v not_o force_v to_o be_v skilful_a in_o the_o law_n sometime_o they_o be_v deceive_v they_o think_v that_o to_o be_v lawful_a which_o be_v not_o lawful_a also_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n teach_v that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o consideration_n have_v of_o the_o sex_n in_o the_o extravagant_n de_fw-fr homicidio_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n si_fw-mi dignum_fw-la in_o the_o code_n ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la maiestatis_fw-la in_o the_o law_n quisquis_fw-la in_o the_o paraph_n filias_fw-la there_o be_v more_o favour_n show_v to_o the_o daughter_n of_o conspirator_n than_o unto_o their_o son_n in_o the_o decree_n cause_n 32._o question_n 6_o the_o chapter_n indignatur_fw-la there_o be_v consideration_n have_v of_o woman_n even_o in_o the_o self_n same_o cause_n of_o adultery_n there_o be_v saieng_n also_o of_o most_o excellent_a man_n which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o this_o sentence_n augustine_n in_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr adulterinis_fw-la coniugijs_fw-la ad_fw-la pollentium_fw-la cit_v the_o letter_n write_v by_o antonius_n pius_n which_o we_o may_v read_v in_o the_o gregorian_a code_n that_o it_o be_v very_o unjust_a that_o man_n shall_v require_v that_o faith_n of_o woman_n which_o themselves_o will_v not_o show_v in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr adulterio_fw-la in_o the_o law_n si_fw-mi uxor_fw-la in_o the_o paraph_n si_fw-mi iudex_fw-la it_o be_v command_v that_o if_o the_o judge_n have_v knowledge_n of_o the_o adultery_n let_v he_o look_v whether_o the_o husband_n have_v live_v chaste_o and_o so_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o woman_n be_v mitigate_v because_o the_o man_n themselves_o by_o their_o ill_a live_n be_v cause_n of_o their_o unclean_a life_n whereupon_o seneca_n in_o his_o 94._o epistle_n unto_o lucillus_n say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o unjust_a thing_n for_o man_n to_o exact_a faithfulness_n of_o woman_n when_o as_o they_o themselves_o be_v the_o corrupter_n of_o other_o man_n wife_n neither_o do_v augustine_n put_v this_o matter_n in_o silence_n who_o say_v that_o virro_n that_o be_v to_o say_v man_n have_v his_o name_n of_o virtus_n that_o be_v virtue_n and_o that_o therefore_o he_o ought_v to_o excel_v the_o wife_n in_o all_o virtue_n and_o chastity_n in_o his_o little_a book_n de_fw-fr decem_fw-la chordis_fw-la and_o it_o be_v also_o read_v in_o the_o 32._o cause_n question_v 5._o in_o the_o chapter_n non_fw-fr moechaberis_fw-la say_v that_o the_o husband_n be_v the_o head_n of_o his_o wife_n if_o the_o head_n fall_v into_o adultery_n and_o the_o wife_n be_v chaste_a he_o be_v a_o man_n turn_v upside_o down_o the_o head_n be_v under_o the_o foot_n it_o happen_v ofttimes_o that_o the_o adultery_n of_o the_o wife_n be_v revengement_n of_o a_o adulterous_a husband_n it_o be_v say_v of_o clytaemnestra_n that_o she_o give_v the_o power_n of_o her_o body_n to_o aegistus_n because_o she_o hear_v that_o agamemnon_n prefer_v chrysis_n before_o she_o that_o such_o a_o punishment_n be_v bring_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n it_o appear_v that_o job_n understand_v who_o in_o the_o 31._o cha_n say_v 9_o verse_n 9_o if_o my_o hart_n have_v be_v carry_v aside_o to_o a_o strange_a woman_n and_o if_o i_o have_v lie_v in_o wait_n at_o my_o neighbour_n door_n then_o let_v my_o wife_n grind_v unto_o a_o other_o man_n and_o let_v she_o yield_v her_o body_n to_o other_o man_n so_o then_o there_o be_v reason_n to_o be_v make_v on_o both_o part_n what_o shall_v we_o say_v if_o credit_n be_v give_v to_o the_o schoole-divines_a question_n a_o unfolding_n of_o the_o question_n the_o distinction_n must_v be_v make_v which_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o four_o book_n of_o sentence_n in_o the_o 35._o distinction_n if_o the_o faith_n of_o wedlock_n be_v consider_v the_o sin_n be_v equal_a on_o both_o part_n either_o be_v bind_v unto_o other_o whether_o the_o woman_n give_v herself_o to_o another_o or_o else_o the_o man_n commit_v adultery_n if_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o person_n be_v respect_v see_v man_n be_v the_o more_o perfect_a he_o have_v the_o firm_a judgement_n and_o aught_o to_o excel_v his_o wife_n his_o sin_n be_v more_o gréevous_a than_o she_o howbeit_o if_o we_o note_v the_o confusion_n of_o thing_n the_o suppose_a heir_n and_o the_o shame_n of_o the_o family_n the_o woman_n be_v more_o gréevouslie_o charge_v but_o as_o touch_v the_o very_a law_n itself_o of_o wedlock_n they_o say_v well_o that_o the_o bond_n be_v all_o alike_o that_o sin_n be_v commit_v as_o well_o by_o the_o one_o as_o by_o the_o other_o they_o must_v be_v bring_v to_o a_o equality_n equality_n we_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n unto_o one_o adam_n the_o lord_n give_v one_o eve_n and_o to_o one_o eve_n he_o give_v one_o adam_n and_o he_o say_v 24._o gen._n 2_o 24._o they_o shall_v be_v two_o in_o one_o flesh_n paul_n when_o he_o treat_v of_o these_o thing_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o seven_o chapter_n say_v that_o the_o wife_n have_v not_o power_n over_o her_o own_o body_n 4._o verse_n 4._o but_o the_o husband_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o make_v this_o law_n equal_a to_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o neither_o do_v he_o speak_v unto_o the_o one_o party_n of_o render_v due_a benevolence_n but_o unto_o they_o both_o and_o if_o they_o shall_v think_v good_a to_o sever_v themselves_o for_o prayer_n sake_n he_o will_v that_o the_o same_o be_v do_v by_o both_o their_o consent_n in_o case_n of_o religion_n if_o they_o will_v not_o dwell_v together_o each_o party_n be_v set_v at_o liberty_n the_o same_o be_v also_o speak_v there_o concern_v the_o unbeléeving_a husband_n the_o law_n of_o god_n command_v that_o both_o as_o well_o the_o adulterer_n as_o the_o adulteress_n shall_v be_v slay_v see_v therefore_o he_o make_v this_o equality_n we_o also_o ought_v to_o follow_v the_o same_o argument_n a_o answer_n unto_o the_o contrary_a argument_n 32_o now_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o answer_v to_o the_o argument_n it_o be_v say_v that_o a_o woman_n must_v not_o be_v hear_v this_o law_n be_v civil_a and_o refuse_v of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n and_o that_o justly_o first_o to_o the_o first_o jerom_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o oceanus_n upon_o the_o death_n of_o fabiola_n write_v a_o very_a excellent_a sentence_n those_o thing_n which_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v command_v unto_o man_n do_v redound_v unto_o woman_n wherefore_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o man_n to_o start_v from_o his_o wife_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o adultery_n it_o be_v also_o lawful_a unto_o the_o wife_n among_o we_o there_o be_v the_o same_o liberty_n and_o the_o same_o bondage_n unto_o both_o party_n to_o correct_v after_o a_o sort_n the_o civil_a law_n both_o party_n must_v be_v hear_v touch_v infamy_n also_o second_o to_o the_o second_o it_o be_v man_n ordinance_n even_o as_o praise_n be_v call_v the_o celebration_n of_o other_o man_n virtue_n so_o infamy_n be_v to_o dispraise_v that_o which_o be_v in_o another_o and_o it_o may_v be_v they_o will_v speak_v more_o of_o woman_n than_o of_o man_n but_o with_o god_n this_o fame_n be_v of_o no_o importance_n there_o be_v more_o speak_v of_o the_o woman_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o harm_n which_o they_o bring_v and_o because_o they_o make_v a_o confusion_n in_o family_n three_o to_o the_o three_o as_o concern_v that_o it_o have_v be_v lawful_a for_o man_n to_o kill_v their_o wife_n and_o not_o for_o the_o wife_n their_o husband_n
against_o he_o which_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o contumely_n for_o than_o it_o be_v a_o lie_n the_o thing_n which_o be_v just_a must_v justly_o be_v do_v but_o thou_o say_v that_o he_o himself_o do_v lie_v thou_o must_v not_o become_v like_a unto_o he_o if_o in_o those_o case_n which_o i_o have_v express_v reproach_n be_v not_o repress_v at_o the_o least_o wise_a we_o shall_v declare_v by_o live_v well_o &_o by_o the_o deed_n themselves_o which_o in_o word_n we_o can_v that_o he_o have_v make_v a_o lie_n many_o have_v be_v content_a to_o use_v a_o general_a reason_n namely_o that_o the_o spirit_n will_v teach_v we_o when_o injury_n be_v to_o be_v suffer_v and_o when_o not_o and_o that_o even_o at_o the_o very_a push_n we_o shall_v take_v counsel_n the_o ethnik_n will_v say_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o follow_v wisdom_n and_o reason_n howbeit_o i_o think_v good_a to_o open_v these_o point_n somewhat_o more_o particular_o 6_o come_v we_o then_o unto_o david_n he_o use_v three_o reason_n weigh_v the_o reason_n of_o david_n weigh_v the_o which_o must_v only_o take_v place_n in_o those_o case_n wherein_o injury_n and_o reproach_n ought_v to_o be_v suffer_v and_o not_o general_o for_o sometime_o they_o be_v to_o be_v suffer_v the_o first_o reason_n be_v hinder_v you_o not_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n god_n have_v command_v he_o to_o curse_v i_o etc._n etc._n to_o this_o we_o say_v that_o in_o that_o case_n the_o reason_n be_v good_a not_o that_o we_o shall_v conclude_v general_o then_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o wickedness_n punish_v we_o will_v always_o say_v it_o be_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n he_o will_v take_v it_o away_o when_o it_o shall_v seem_v good_a unto_o he_o the_o second_o reason_n be_v i_o abide_v great_a thing_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o my_o son_n and_o shall_v i_o not_o bear_v these_o thing_n this_o be_v a_o good_a reason_n to_o comfort_v ourselves_o in_o affliction_n and_o to_o make_v we_o circumspect_a what_o we_o do_v but_o general_o it_o be_v not_o of_o force_n if_o the_o magistrate_n say_v i_o have_v bear_v this_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n therefore_o i_o can_v the_o easy_o bear_v evilles_n he_o shall_v leave_v wickedness_n unpunished_a the_o three_o reason_n also_o be_v not_o universal_a god_n see_v this_o affliction_n and_o lay_v up_o good_a for_o i_o in_o store_n this_o in_o very_a deed_n we_o ought_v to_o think_v if_o we_o be_v compel_v to_o suffer_v contumely_n yet_o be_v we_o not_o always_o bind_v to_o suffer_v it_o these_o thing_n have_v we_o speak_v concern_v the_o reason_n of_o david_n contumely_n whether_o david_n do_v well_o in_o bear_v of_o the_o contumely_n now_o must_v we_o show_v wherefore_o he_o dissemble_v &_o whether_o he_o do_v well_o therein_o in_o my_o judgement_n he_o do_v well_o and_o his_o purpose_n be_v allow_v unto_o the_o soldier_n and_o nobility_n which_o he_o have_v with_o he_o he_o be_v busy_v about_o other_o matter_n he_o be_v escape_v away_o he_o then_o think_v upon_o his_o sin_n and_o impute_v it_o to_o the_o revenge_n which_o god_n have_v foreshow_v by_o the_o prophet_n that_o he_o shall_v suffer_v doubtless_o he_o do_v not_o utterlie_o pardon_v the_o offence_n but_o defer_v the_o punishment_n all_o thing_n have_v their_o time_n it_o be_v now_o needful_a for_o he_o to_o repent_v he_o weep_v and_o lament_v another_o cause_n which_o may_v persuade_v he_o be_v herein_o lest_o he_o shall_v be_v sudden_o draw_v to_o fury_n and_o overmuch_o move_v with_o cruelty_n and_o it_o be_v then_o sufficient_a for_o he_o to_o keep_v within_o his_o bound_n a_o three_o reason_n he_o see_v in_o spirit_n for_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n that_o god_n will_v have_v he_o even_o at_o this_o instant_n to_o suffer_v this_o reproach_n thus_o far_o have_v we_o speak_v hereof_o 7_o now_o let_v we_o consider_v 5._o in_o 1._o cor._n 4._o verse_n 5._o after_o what_o sort_n paul_n forbid_v judgement_n see_v we_o must_v very_o oftentimes_o judge_v while_o we_o be_v in_o this_o life_n for_o it_o behoove_v that_o every_o man_n do_v judge_v and_o examine_v himself_o yea_o and_o other_o also_o when_o need_n shall_v be_v to_o the_o intent_n they_o maâe_n be_v warn_v and_o amend_v necessary_a judgement_n in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o commonweal_n and_o in_o a_o household_n be_v necessary_a the_o church_n pronounce_v sentence_n of_o judgement_n against_o those_o which_o be_v to_o be_v excommunicate_v there_o be_v also_o political_a or_o civil_a judgement_n and_o in_o household_n affair_n we_o choose_v unto_o we_o wife_n maiden_n &_o servant_n and_o in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v choose_v deacons_n curate_n &_o bishop_n which_o kind_n of_o election_n can_v proceed_v without_o judgement_n wherefore_o we_o answer_v that_o judgement_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n sort_n judgement_n of_o two_o sort_n either_o private_a or_o public_a and_o those_o which_o be_v public_a perteine_a either_o to_o policy_n or_o else_o unto_o the_o church_n civil_a judgement_n be_v not_o take_v away_o by_o the_o gospel_n away_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n be_v not_o take_v away_o but_o rather_o amend_v and_o correct_v as_o hereafter_o we_o shall_v perceive_v when_o the_o place_n serve_v but_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n can_v be_v remoove_v by_o man_n authority_n for_o christ_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o brotherlie_a correction_n give_v commandment_n thereof_o augustine_n matt._n 18_o 15._o matth._n 7_o 5._o from_o whence_o private_a judgement_n do_v spring_n augustine_n private_a judgement_n do_v either_o spring_n of_o charity_n and_o right_a consideration_n or_o else_o of_o ill_a affection_n which_o be_v envy_n and_o pride_n as_o augustine_n have_v in_o his_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr sermone_fw-la domini_fw-la in_o monte_fw-fr while_o he_o entreat_v of_o those_o word_n which_o be_v read_v in_o matthew_n judge_v you_o not_o that_o you_o be_v not_o judge_v by_o which_o say_v of_o christ_n the_o sentence_n of_o paul_n must_v be_v measure_v and_o in_o these_o judgement_n which_o we_o exercise_v by_o charity_n fault_n we_o must_v âot_n rash_o âudge_v of_o oâher_a man_n fault_n we_o must_v take_v special_a heed_n that_o the_o sin_n which_o either_o we_o judge_v or_o reproove_v be_v through_o know_v to_o we_o that_o we_o do_v not_o rash_o give_v credit_n to_o rumour_n or_o slander_n further_o we_o must_v not_o judge_v without_o compassion_n and_o pity_n away_o with_o triumph_v mock_a reproach_n the_o which_o shall_v best_o be_v do_v if_o we_o remember_v that_o we_o ourselves_o be_v man_n and_o prone_a by_o nature_n unto_o those_o vice_n and_o not_o yet_o assure_v but_o that_o we_o may_v at_o sometime_o fall_v into_o the_o very_a same_o offence_n therefore_o paul_n say_v unto_o the_o galathian_o 1._o gala._n 6_o 1._o consider_v thyself_o lest_o thou_o also_o be_v tempt_v and_o augustine_n in_o his_o book_n of_o confession_n write_v augustine_n augustine_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o only_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n for_o the_o sin_n that_o he_o have_v forgive_v but_o also_o for_o those_o which_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n we_o have_v not_o commit_v over_o and_o beside_o in_o his_o 15._o epistle_n to_o jerom_n when_o he_o have_v lament_v for_o the_o contention_n which_o have_v happen_v between_o he_o and_o ruffinus_n he_o say_v that_o he_o know_v not_o what_o he_o himself_o will_v have_v do_v if_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v against_o jerom_n have_v be_v write_v against_o he_o and_o moreover_o in_o judge_v there_o must_v never_o be_v so_o firm_a a_o determination_n as_o though_o he_o which_o be_v fall_v can_v not_o be_v restore_v again_o 8_o and_o touch_v those_o thing_n which_o ought_v to_o withdraw_v we_o from_o a_o light_n rash_a and_o hasty_a judgement_n chrysost_n chrysost_n chrysostome_n do_v make_v mention_n first_o see_v our_o own_o state_n be_v very_o much_o unknown_a to_o our_o own_o self_n judgement_n what_o thing_n shall_v revoke_v we_o from_o rash_a judgement_n we_o ought_v to_o know_v that_o the_o state_n of_o other_o man_n be_v very_o hardly_o to_o be_v know_v furthermore_o there_o be_v many_o circumstance_n whereby_o man_n action_n be_v define_v which_o we_o can_v always_o perceive_v although_o we_o have_v set_v before_o our_o eye_n the_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v so_o as_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o give_v judgement_n of_o it_o again_o the_o very_a thing_n that_o we_o see_v be_v otherwhiles_o so_o doubtful_a as_o we_o may_v understand_v they_o as_o well_o in_o the_o good_a part_n as_o in_o the_o ill_a then_o it_o be_v better_a to_o suspend_v our_o judgement_n in_o a_o thing_n that_o be_v doubtful_a to_o conclude_v he_o that_o judge_v must_v be_v spiritual_a see_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n it_o be_v write_v the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n 15._o 1._o cor._n 2_o
these_o evil_n be_v compare_v with_o actual_a sin_n they_o do_v not_o so_o vehementlie_o and_o so_o manifest_o contend_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n also_o those_o father_n teach_v we_o that_o these_o be_v not_o call_v sin_n save_v for_o that_o they_o be_v the_o cause_n and_o effect_n of_o sin_n as_o when_o a_o man_n say_v of_o his_o own_o write_n this_o be_v my_o hand_n meaning_n that_o it_o be_v write_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o man_n call_v the_o cold_a weather_n dull_a because_o it_o make_v we_o dull_a such_o similitude_n as_o these_o augustine_n be_v wont_a to_o use_v but_o then_o he_o compare_v this_o kind_n of_o sin_n with_o actual_a sin_n howbeit_o it_o be_v better_a to_o hear_v the_o same_o father_n when_o he_o examine_v these_o sin_n by_o themselves_o in_o the_o sixth_o book_n against_o julian_n the_o 8._o chapter_n it_o be_v not_o say_v he_o no_o iniquity_n when_o the_o superior_a part_n do_v shameful_o give_v place_n unto_o the_o inferior_a and_o the_o inferior_a do_v shameful_o wrestle_v against_o the_o superior_a although_o they_o be_v not_o permit_v to_o overcome_v and_o in_o the_o five_o book_n and_o three_o chapter_n he_o say_v the_o concupiscence_n of_o the_o flesh_n against_o which_o the_o good_a spirit_n do_v strive_v be_v sin_n because_o therein_o be_v a_o disobedience_n against_o the_o dominion_n of_o reason_n and_o it_o be_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n because_o it_o be_v give_v as_o a_o reward_n to_o the_o desert_n of_o our_o disobedience_n also_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o he_o that_o consent_v thereto_o degree_n concupiscence_n consider_v of_o according_a to_o three_o degree_n wherefore_o he_o consider_v of_o this_o concupiscence_n according_a to_o three_o degree_n first_o by_o the_o nature_n thereof_o and_o that_o he_o affirm_v to_o be_v sin_n because_o it_o impugn_v the_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o mind_n secondlie_o as_o a_o effect_n and_o punishment_n lay_v upon_o sin_n and_o last_o as_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n beside_o in_o his_o three_o book_n de_fw-fr libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la the_o 18._o chapter_n he_o write_v on_o this_o wise_a these_o thing_n be_v therefore_o reckon_v among_o sin_n because_o through_o they_o we_o depart_v from_o the_o form_n wherein_o man_n be_v make_v at_o the_o beginning_n 13_o and_o to_o declare_v further_o that_o these_o deformity_n apperteine_v not_o unto_o sin_n they_o allege_v for_o themselves_o the_o infancy_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n whereof_o luke_n do_v write_v in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o his_o gospel_n and_o jesus_n increase_v &_o grow_v in_o year_n 52._o verse_n 52._o in_o wisdom_n and_o in_o favour_n with_o god_n and_o man_n and_o a_o little_a before_o 40._o verse_n 40._o and_o the_o child_n grow_v &_o wax_v strong_a in_o spirit_n and_o be_v fill_v with_o wisdom_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v with_o he_o if_o he_o profit_v daily_a say_v they_o it_o follow_v that_o first_o there_o be_v want_n in_o he_o and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o so_o wise_a at_o the_o first_o as_o he_o prove_v afterward_o some_o have_v expound_v these_o thing_n to_o be_v mean_v as_o concern_v the_o spirit_n which_o appear_v daily_o more_o and_o more_o who_o they_o think_v to_o be_v most_o perfect_a at_o the_o first_o yet_o that_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v accustom_v to_o say_v that_o any_o thing_n be_v then_o do_v when_o it_o first_o appear_v doubtless_o i_o can_v ready_o condescend_v and_o i_o see_v that_o i_o ought_v so_o to_o do_v namely_o that_o christ_n take_v upon_o he_o man_n infirmity_n for_o our_o sake_n neither_o do_v i_o doubt_v but_o that_o his_o mind_n have_v access_n of_o wisdom_n according_a to_o the_o proportion_n of_o age_n but_o the_o defect_n in_o his_o infancy_n be_v not_o like_a unto_o our_o defect_n for_o as_o touch_v ignorance_n sin_n every_o ignorance_n be_v not_o sin_n we_o must_v not_o affirm_v every_o ignorance_n to_o be_v sin_n since_o even_o the_o angel_n be_v ignorant_a of_o very_a many_o thing_n especial_o of_o the_o time_n when_o the_o latter_a day_n shall_v be_v but_o shall_v we_o say_v that_o this_o be_v a_o sin_n in_o they_o further_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o adam_n do_v straitwaie_o know_v all_o thing_n no_o certeinlie_o wherefore_o we_o call_v blindness_n of_o the_o mind_n the_o ignorance_n that_o belong_v unto_o sin_n through_o the_o which_o blindness_n those_o thing_n be_v unknown_a which_o ought_v to_o be_v know_v and_o whereby_o thing_n contrary_a unto_o the_o truth_n be_v perceive_v aristotle_n in_o posterioribus_fw-la analyticis_fw-la sort_n ignorance_n of_o two_o sort_n distinguish_v ignorance_n call_v one_o a_o ignorance_n of_o deny_v a_o other_o of_o contrary_a disposition_n a_o example_n of_o the_o first_o be_v a_o rustical_a and_o husbandman_n who_o be_v utterlie_o ignorant_a of_o the_o mathematical_a science_n because_o he_o never_o learn_v they_o the_o other_o ignorance_n be_v ascribe_v unto_o he_o which_o sometime_o apply_v his_o endeavour_n to_o the_o mathematical_o but_o perceive_v ill_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v teach_v he_o so_o as_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v true_a in_o they_o he_o judge_v to_o be_v put_v contrary_a and_o think_v the_o line_n to_o be_v crooked_a which_o be_v straight_o wherefore_o i_o may_v be_v lawful_a to_o say_v that_o ignorance_n of_o deny_v be_v no_o sin_n unless_o it_o be_v as_o touch_v man_n of_o ripe_a year_n see_v they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o obtain_v of_o salvation_n therefore_o christ_n in_o take_v of_o our_o infirmity_n do_v not_o receive_v sin_n into_o himself_o by_o reason_n whereof_o at_o his_o death_n he_o feel_v natural_a motion_n through_o which_o he_o tremble_v at_o death_n but_o yet_o those_o perturbation_n proceed_v of_o sound_n and_o perfect_a nature_n not_o of_o evil_a and_o corrupt_a relik_n of_o nature_n now_o than_o the_o infirmity_n of_o christ_n be_v far_o differ_v from_o our_o infirmity_n 15._o verse_n 15._o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n to_o the_o hebrews_n that_o the_o lord_n be_v tempt_v in_o all_o thing_n as_o we_o be_v but_o the_o exception_n be_v add_v yet_o without_o sin_n 11_o 1._o co._n 13_o 11_o and_o whereas_o paul_n say_v when_o i_o be_v a_o child_n i_o speak_v as_o a_o child_n it_o be_v mean_v that_o one_o day_n shall_v be_v void_v all_o that_o which_o before_o be_v unperfect_a and_o we_o shall_v at_o the_o last_o come_v to_o eternal_a life_n where_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v absolute_a bréefelie_o it_o must_v be_v consider_v that_o our_o naughty_a motion_n though_o they_o be_v the_o first_o of_o all_o be_v not_o only_o rude_a and_o unperfect_a thing_n but_o that_o they_o be_v also_o repugnant_a unto_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n 14._o verse_n 14._o where_o we_o must_v not_o hearken_v unto_o those_o man_n which_o think_v such_o a_o thing_n to_o be_v there_o describe_v by_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o poet_n describe_v of_o medea_n who_o say_v i_o see_v the_o better_a &_o i_o allow_v the_o better_a but_o i_o follow_v the_o worse_a for_o as_o i_o teach_v a_o little_a before_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o there_o dispute_v of_o civil_a honesty_n but_o of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o which_o he_o call_v holy_a just_a and_o honest_a who_o equity_n the_o natural_a man_n do_v not_o perceive_v 14_o also_o there_o be_v much_o a_o do_v make_v against_o we_o because_o christ_n say_v 48_o matt._n 5_o 48_o be_v you_o perfect_a as_o the_o heavenly_a father_n be_v perfect_a where_o nevertheless_o it_o seem_v absurd_a that_o god_n goodness_n be_v infinite_a shall_v be_v command_v unto_o us._n héereunto_o i_o answer_v that_o christ_n be_v set_v forth_o as_o a_o familiar_a example_n for_o we_o the_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o follow_v as_o much_o as_o in_o we_o lie_v and_o think_v not_o that_o of_o he_o and_o of_o the_o heavenly_a father_n all_o one_o consideration_n must_v be_v have_v through_o in_o all_o respect_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o part_n of_o his_o humanity_n be_v not_o immensible_a see_v it_o be_v a_o creature_n so_o as_o the_o love_n that_o come_v from_o thence_o be_v limit_v and_o not_o infinite_a and_o therefore_o in_o the_o love_a of_o god_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o imitate_v he_o certeinlie_o the_o heavenly_a father_n although_o in_o his_o own_o nature_n he_o be_v infinite_a yet_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o charity_n i_o mean_v the_o good_a thing_n which_o he_o bestow_v upon_o we_o be_v measure_v because_o they_o shall_v not_o excee_v the_o order_n of_o thing_n create_v furthermore_o i_o dispute_v not_o of_o this_o adverbe_n sicut_fw-la that_o be_v as_o whether_o it_o express_v a_o equality_n in_o quantity_n or_o a_o
that_o christ_n suffer_v those_o infirmity_n for_o we_o for_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v much_o more_o easy_a unto_o we_o than_o the_o nature_n of_o they_o do_v permit_v moreover_o if_o he_o so_o humble_v himself_o for_o our_o sake_n that_o when_o he_o be_v lord_n yet_o he_o appéer_v in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n it_o ought_v not_o to_o seem_v so_o hard_a a_o thing_n unto_o we_o sometime_o to_o slack_v the_o sail_n and_o to_o submit_v the_o loftiness_n of_o mind_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o our_o weak_a and_o poor_a brethren_n therefore_o 5_o phil_n 2_o 5_o not_o without_o just_a cause_n paul_n exhort_v the_o philippian_n that_o among_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o very_a same_o affection_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n who_o when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n yet_o disdain_v not_o to_o put_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n and_o thus_o far_o touch_v the_o original_a conception_n and_o nativity_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o humane_a nature_n now_o let_v we_o go_v forward_o he_o suffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n be_v crucify_v dead_a bury_v descend_v into_o hell_n 13_o the_o order_n which_o we_o before_o appoint_v require_v that_o first_o we_o shall_v speak_v of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n secondlie_o of_o that_o state_n wherein_o he_o be_v after_o his_o death_n as_o well_o touch_v the_o body_n christ_n two_o thing_n to_o be_v note_v in_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n as_o touch_v the_o soul_n first_o therefore_o this_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o can_v never_o be_v sufficient_o praise_v or_o consider_v by_o we_o have_v two_o thing_n onâ_n that_o it_o be_v very_o ignonimious_a the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v gréevous_a above_o measure_n christ_n the_o rebuke_n of_o christ_n the_o rebuke_n that_o christ_n suffer_v although_o they_o be_v very_o many_o and_o very_o hard_a to_o be_v abide_v yet_o let_v we_o consider_v that_o they_o depend_v upon_o two_o principal_a point_n the_o one_o be_v that_o infamous_a quality_n and_o nature_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v lay_v upon_o he_o but_o the_o other_o be_v the_o perfect_a innocence_n and_o pure_a righteousness_n of_o his_o life_n for_o even_o as_o similitude_n a_o similitude_n when_o any_o unclenlie_a and_o unpure_a thing_n if_o it_o be_v see_v in_o the_o common_a street_n be_v not_o so_o ill_o agree_v and_o it_o less_o offend_v than_o if_o through_o the_o envy_n and_o ill_a deal_n of_o some_o man_n it_o be_v throw_v upon_o a_o certain_a noble_a and_o precious_a paint_a table_n so_o be_v it_o much_o less_o decent_a for_o a_o man_n that_o far_o excel_v all_o other_o creature_n to_o be_v stain_v with_o infamy_n and_o dishonour_n and_o as_o concern_v christ_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o man_n the_o prince_n of_o angel_n and_o the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n he_o be_v not_o only_o just_a and_o innocent_a but_o also_o very_a innocence_n and_o justice_n itself_o certeinlie_o it_o be_v too_o too_o shameful_a and_o ignominious_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v burden_v with_o so_o gréevous_a crime_n and_o that_o in_o judgement_n not_o before_o the_o citizen_n of_o one_o city_n only_o but_o before_o all_o the_o people_n of_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o jewrie_n who_o at_o that_o time_n by_o a_o usual_a custom_n be_v compel_v to_o celebrate_v easter_n at_o jerusalem_n christ_n the_o slander_n and_o rail_n against_o christ_n neither_o do_v it_o satisfy_v they_o that_o they_o have_v oftentimes_o defame_v he_o with_o rail_n call_v he_o a_o possessor_n of_o evil_a spirit_n a_o sorcerer_n a_o familiar_a of_o devil_n by_o who_o help_n he_o do_v work_v miracle_n and_o that_o they_o call_v he_o a_o gluttonous_a fellow_n a_o droonkard_n from_o who_o no_o sound_a doctrine_n can_v proceed_v likewise_o a_o companion_n of_o publican_n &_o sinner_n and_o final_o of_o infamous_a and_o wicked_a man_n that_o from_o he_o proceed_v nothing_o but_o offence_n &_o evil_a example_n they_o call_v he_o a_o samaritane_n a_o stranger_n from_o the_o true_a worship_v of_o god_n from_o who_o as_o from_o some_o profane_a person_n that_o be_v excommunicate_v from_o the_o church_n all_o man_n be_v to_o shun_v they_o i_o say_v be_v not_o content_a with_o these_o reproching_n to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v pursue_v he_o unto_o death_n they_o lay_v this_o thing_n against_o he_o before_o pilate_n and_o herod_n namely_o that_o he_o have_v utter_v intolerable_a blasphemy_n against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n arrogate_a unto_o himself_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o he_o be_v a_o seditious_a man_n not_o only_o against_o their_o own_o law_n but_o also_o against_o the_o common_a state_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n by_o persuade_v of_o the_o people_n to_o deny_v tribute_n unto_o caesar_n and_o that_o he_o earnest_o pursue_v this_o one_o thing_n to_o wit_n that_o contrary_a unto_o order_n and_o without_o consent_n of_o the_o roman_n he_o challenge_v the_o dignity_n of_o a_o king_n barrabas_n christ_n judge_v worse_o than_o barrabas_n 14_o and_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o come_v into_o such_o shame_n and_o contempt_n as_o barrabas_n though_o he_o be_v a_o wicked_a and_o notable_a thief_n be_v judge_v to_o be_v more_o just_a than_o he_o so_o that_o such_o a_o man_n be_v quit_v our_o christ_n be_v condemn_v and_o in_o token_n of_o his_o just_a condemnation_n and_o to_o have_v it_o manifest_v that_o he_o above_o all_o other_o which_o common_o be_v judge_v wicked_a be_v worthy_a of_o the_o cross_n crucify_v he_o be_v crucify_v he_o by_o decree_n of_o the_o judge_n be_v hang_v between_o two_o thief_n as_o though_o he_o have_v be_v the_o chief_a among_o those_o that_o be_v most_o wicked_a and_o mischéevous_a person_n but_o than_o be_v fulfil_v that_o pprophecy_n which_o be_v write_v in_o esaie_n which_o say_v 3._o esaie_n 53_o 3._o that_o christ_n shall_v be_v contemn_v and_o nothing_o regard_v among_o man_n from_o who_o sight_n every_o one_o shall_v withdraw_v himself_o and_o that_o at_o the_o length_n he_o shall_v be_v reckon_v among_o the_o wicked_a and_o certeinlie_o his_o sentence_n do_v not_o disagree_v with_o that_o which_o paul_n write_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o where_o he_o say_v 13._o gala._n 3_o 13._o that_o he_o become_v a_o curse_n for_o we_o to_o deliver_v we_o from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n for_o because_o it_o be_v write_v curse_v be_v every_o one_o that_o hang_v upon_o a_o tree_n and_o here_o come_v to_o remembrance_n to_o speak_v a_o few_o word_n of_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n how_o exceed_a severe_a so_o ever_o the_o same_o be_v but_o show_v i_o i_o pray_v thou_o if_o shame_n and_o confusion_n be_v of_o good_a right_n due_a unto_o sin_n what_o great_a and_o more_o heap_a measure_n of_o shame_n may_v there_o be_v find_v than_o that_o which_o christ_n suffer_v for_o our_o sake_n be_v not_o the_o offence_n of_o man_n sufficient_o and_o above_o measure_n derive_v unto_o christ_n &_o the_o same_o punish_v in_o he_o with_o all_o shame_n and_o dishonour_v some_o man_n perhaps_o will_v say_v that_o the_o rebuke_n be_v of_o less_o wait_n because_o of_o his_o ground_a innocence_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n on_o this_o behalf_n some_o easement_n may_v have_v be_v bring_v to_o those_o reproach_n excuse_v the_o innocence_n of_o christ_n excuse_v if_o that_o innocence_n have_v be_v most_o manifest_a to_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o man_n but_o assure_o upon_o that_o day_n wherein_o christ_n be_v lift_v upon_o the_o cross_n he_o be_v so_o oppress_v with_o the_o great_a heap_n of_o despiteful_a rail_n and_o false_a accusation_n of_o evil_a as_o the_o people_n miserable_o behold_v he_o nail_v unto_o the_o cross_n wag_v their_o head_n at_o he_o not_o as_o though_o they_o be_v trouble_v by_o perceive_v his_o affliction_n but_o that_o they_o may_v pursue_v he_o still_o be_v weary_v with_o ignominy_n and_o slander_n as_o though_o they_o allow_v by_o their_o judgement_n all_o those_o trouble_n and_o misery_n which_o environ_v he_o on_o every_o side_n just_o therefore_o may_v we_o rejoice_v that_o we_o by_o faith_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n see_v all_o the_o rebuke_n and_o ignominy_n which_o be_v due_a for_o our_o sin_n christ_n our_o head_n take_v upon_o he_o and_o utterlie_o abolish_v yea_o undoubted_o in_o the_o place_n of_o this_o shame_n &_o ignominy_n we_o by_o that_o merit_n of_o christ_n possess_v in_o hope_n both_o glory_n and_o honour_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n as_o a_o thing_n due_a unto_o us._n 15_o but_o see_v not_o only_a shame_n and_o ignominy_n be_v by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n due_a to_o sin_n but_o also_o punishment_n punishment_n why_o christ_n depart_v this_o life_n with_o rail_n and_o punishment_n which_o be_v lay_v upon_o we_o according_a to_o the_o manner_n and_o measure_n of_o the_o sin_n for_o this_o cause_n christ_n
force_n as_o contrition_n and_o repentance_n be_v defer_v touch_v the_o sin_n commit_v and_o when_o repentance_n be_v perform_v then_o also_o let_v a_o end_n of_o the_o punishment_n of_o excommunication_n be_v appoint_v for_o which_o cause_n christ_n be_v demand_v of_o peter_n how_o oftentimes_o a_o man_n shall_v forgive_v they_o that_o offend_v 21._o ibid._n 21._o whether_o seven_o time_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v much_o answer_v even_o so_o often_o as_o they_o shall_v return_v again_o to_o better_a life_n for_o that_o be_v awoint_v when_o he_o say_v seventie_o time_n seven_o wherefore_o they_o which_o by_o repentance_n return_v to_o the_o church_n must_v evermore_o be_v admit_v and_o lest_o peradventure_o so_o often_o separation_n and_o receive_v reiterated_a by_o the_o ministry_n of_o man_n against_o one_o and_o the_o same_o man_n shall_v seem_v to_o be_v of_o small_a importance_n and_o repute_v for_o sport_n and_o mockery_n as_o a_o thing_n proceed_v from_o the_o will_n of_o man_n he_o add_v that_o he_o give_v they_o the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n church_n the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o power_n that_o whatsoever_o she_o shall_v bind_v or_o loose_v upon_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v establish_v in_o heaven_n and_o this_o do_v the_o church_n understand_v in_o the_o same_o sort_n as_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n write_v it_o by_o this_o article_n therefore_o we_o believe_v that_o such_o divine_a authority_n be_v commit_v unto_o the_o church_n that_o it_o may_v absolve_v and_o set_v at_o liberty_n the_o person_n excommunicate_a which_o repent_v they_o of_o their_o sin_n commit_v and_o may_v reconcile_v they_o to_o herself_o whereby_o they_o may_v be_v restore_v unto_o that_o place_n of_o a_o heal_v body_n whereof_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n which_o absolution_n be_v perform_v with_o public_a vow_n and_o prayer_n in_o the_o church_n no_o doubt_n but_o the_o church_n forgive_v they_o their_o sin_n commit_v wherefore_o after_o the_o grant_n of_o this_o authority_n of_o the_o key_n 20._o matt._n 18_o 19_o and_o 20._o christ_n not_o in_o vain_a add_v whatsoever_o you_o ask_v in_o my_o name_n it_o shall_v be_v give_v unto_o you_o and_o wheresoever_o two_o or_o three_o shall_v be_v gather_v together_o in_o my_o name_n i_o be_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o whereby_o it_o be_v gather_v that_o the_o church_n be_v never_o present_a either_o to_o excommunicate_v or_o to_o reconcile_v they_o that_o be_v excommunicate_v but_o that_o christ_n himself_o also_o be_v present_a 8_o 2._o cor._n 2_o 7_o 8_o wherefore_o paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o second_o epistle_n write_v to_o the_o church_n that_o forgive_a the_o fault_n of_o that_o sinner_n of_o who_o he_o have_v make_v mention_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n they_o shall_v confirm_v charity_n towards_o he_o in_o renew_v with_o he_o their_o old_a friendship_n behold_v how_o we_o contemn_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n but_o we_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v in_o the_o will_n and_o authority_n of_o one_o we_o confess_v this_o power_n therefore_o to_o be_v in_o the_o earth_n among_o the_o godly_a but_o even_o as_o the_o multitude_n of_o beléever_n gather_v together_o in_o christ_n have_v only_o the_o right_n of_o excommunication_n so_o have_v they_o also_o of_o reconcile_a and_o admit_v and_o that_o which_o be_v so_o perform_v by_o they_o we_o believe_v also_o to_o be_v do_v and_o confirm_v in_o heaven_n howbeit_o note_n that_o in_o this_o three_o mean_n be_v contain_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o public_a sin_n only_o and_o as_o concern_v the_o two_o former_a mean_n the_o church_n have_v belong_v unto_o it_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o all_o sin_n in_o general_n here_o only_o that_o absolution_n take_v place_n which_o appertain_v to_o public_a crime_n the_o which_o through_o evil_a example_n have_v offend_v and_o do_v harm_n unto_o they_o to_o who_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o have_v come_v wherefore_o with_o all_o the_o hart_n and_o voice_n let_v we_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n who_o have_v grant_v unto_o we_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o have_v lay_v up_o great_a for_o we_o in_o heaven_n as_o afterward_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n ¶_o look_v more_o hereof_o in_o the_o three_o part_n 47_o how_o these_o article_n shall_v be_v knit_v together_o life_n after_o remission_n of_o sin_n follow_v life_n by_o a_o more_o fit_a method_n i_o can_v perceive_v sin_n as_o it_o be_v know_v have_v be_v the_o only_a and_o whole_a cause_n of_o man_n death_n and_o that_o we_o have_v remission_n of_o sin_n through_o christ_n it_o be_v show_v a_o little_a before_o now_o then_o remain_v this_o one_o thing_n to_o wit_n that_o by_o he_o we_o shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o death_n and_o release_v from_o the_o tyranny_n thereof_o so_o soon_o as_o ever_o we_o have_v access_n unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n since_o then_o shall_v perish_v in_o it_o the_o continual_a jurisdiction_n which_o it_o obtain_v against_o us._n for_o see_v the_o natural_a power_n hereof_o be_v such_o as_o what_o it_o have_v once_o season_v upon_o it_o firm_o hold_v therefore_o the_o philosopher_n write_v that_o it_o must_v not_o be_v grant_v that_o from_o such_o a_o privation_n man_n can_v return_v to_o their_o ancient_a habit_n in_o which_o matter_n certeinlie_o they_o be_v not_o deceive_v if_o thou_o shall_v but_o consider_v the_o power_n of_o nature_n but_o we_o which_o be_v endue_v with_o faith_n do_v so_o taste_v of_o death_n as_o we_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o end_n and_o limit_v appoint_v to_o the_o work_n thereof_o we_o be_v confirm_v through_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n himself_o 39_o john_n 6_o 39_o who_o in_o the_o sixth_o of_o john_n say_v that_o he_o will_v loose_v none_o of_o they_o which_o his_o father_n have_v give_v he_o but_o will_v raise_v they_o up_o at_o the_o latter_a day_n but_o if_o so_o be_v thou_o object_n that_o he_o will_v raise_v up_o not_o only_o they_o that_o be_v godly_a but_o also_o the_o unbeléever_n and_o shall_v therefore_o the_o faith_n in_o christ_n as_o touch_v the_o resurrection_n profit_v any_o thing_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o confidence_n in_o christ_n shall_v nothing_o at_o all_o profit_n unto_o the_o mere_a and_o absolute_a resurrection_n see_v that_o degree_n both_o the_o godly_a and_o the_o wicked_a shall_v obtain_v but_o the_o resurrection_n unto_o felicity_n unto_o life_n eternal_a and_o unto_o heavenly_a blessedness_n be_v only_o grant_v un-them_a which_o by_o faith_n be_v unite_v unto_o christ_n howbeit_o i_o think_v not_o meet_v to_o pass_v over_o this_o to_o wit_n that_o whereas_o the_o wicked_a shall_v rise_v again_o they_o obtain_v not_o that_o by_o the_o power_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n but_o by_o christ_n for_o see_v we_o confess_v that_o by_o the_o death_n of_o that_o one_o first_o man_n we_o be_v all_o make_v subject_a unto_o death_n it_o be_v reason_n also_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o how_o many_o soever_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o this_o second_o life_n shall_v also_o obtain_v the_o same_o by_o that_o one_o man_n christ_n who_o first_o be_v raise_v up_o wherefore_o the_o wicked_a whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o shall_v feel_v in_o themselves_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n but_o that_o which_o these_o shall_v obtain_v to_o their_o great_a harm_n just_a man_n shall_v receive_v to_o their_o great_a benefit_n this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n when_o he_o say_v as_o by_o one_o man_n come_v death_n 21._o 1._o co._n 15_o 21._o so_o by_o one_o man_n come_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o as_o by_o adam_n all_o man_n die_v so_o by_o christ_n all_o shall_v be_v make_v alive_a but_o every_o one_o in_o his_o own_o order_n the_o first_o fruit_n be_v christ_n than_o they_o which_o be_v of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o last_o and_o most_o unhappy_a state_n shall_v they_o be_v which_o be_v stranger_n from_o christ_n and_o as_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o difference_n in_o the_o state_n &_o condition_n so_o shall_v there_o be_v also_o in_o the_o place_n for_o the_o saint_n then_o raise_v up_o 17._o 1._o thes_n 4_o 16_o and_o 17._o shall_v together_o with_o the_o godly_a which_o then_o perhaps_o shall_v remain_v alive_a be_v catch_v up_o to_o meet_v with_o that_o high_a king_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o air_n who_o undoubted_o as_o we_o have_v already_o confess_v shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a as_o we_o have_v expresselie_o show_v in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n wherefore_o christ_n will_v show_v forth_o his_o power_n general_o towards_o all_o as_o well_o good_a as_o bad_a not_o only_o in_o the_o judgement_n itself_o but_o in_o the_o resurrection_n also_o he_o therefore_o be_v the_o first_o that_o have_v
not_o impute_v sin_n by_o the_o which_o word_n we_o do_v not_o only_o gather_v that_o the_o righteousness_n by_o which_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v justify_v stick_v not_o in_o our_o mind_n but_o be_v impute_v of_o god_n &_o that_o it_o be_v such_o a_o imputation_n as_o consist_v not_o of_o work_n but_o of_o the_o mere_a clemency_n of_o god_n further_o the_o apostle_n do_v by_o another_o property_n of_o good_a work_n confirm_v his_o opinion_n namely_o reason_n the_o ten_o reason_n because_o work_n be_v sign_n or_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n already_o obtain_v where_o he_o say_v of_o abraham_n and_o he_o receive_v the_o sign_n of_o circumcision_n be_v a_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o uncircumcision_n etc._n etc._n 11._o vers_fw-la 11._o see_v therefore_o that_o good_a work_n be_v sign_n and_o also_o seal_v which_o bear_v witness_v of_o the_o righteousness_n already_o receive_v they_o can_v be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o neither_o have_v ceremony_n only_o that_o property_n but_o also_o even_o those_o work_n which_o be_v call_v moral_a impute_v even_o very_o moral_a work_n be_v seal_n of_o righteousness_n impute_v when_o they_o be_v pleasant_a and_o acceptable_a before_o god_n for_o they_o also_o be_v sign_n &_o token_n of_o our_o righteousness_n wherefore_o peter_n exhort_v we_o to_o endeavour_n ourselves_o to_o make_v our_o vocation_n sure_a namely_o by_o live_v uprightlie_o &_o by_o good_a work_n yea_o and_o the_o form_n of_o the_o promise_n which_o god_n make_v with_o abraham_n 10._o 2._o pet._n 1_o 10._o be_v dilligentlie_o to_o be_v weigh_v for_o thereunto_o be_v not_o add_v a_o condition_n of_o the_o law_n reason_n the_o eleven_o reason_n or_o of_o work_n and_o see_v god_n add_v none_o what_o boldness_n be_v it_o in_o we_o to_o presume_v to_o do_v it_o and_o paul_n say_v for_o not_o through_o the_o law_n be_v the_o promise_n make_v unto_o abraham_n or_o to_o his_o seed_n 13._o rom._n 4_o 13._o that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o heir_n of_o the_o world_n but_o through_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n for_o if_o those_o which_o pertain_v unto_o the_o law_n be_v heir_n then_o be_v faith_n make_v frustrate_v and_o the_o promise_n be_v of_o no_o force_n namely_o because_o the_o law_n work_v anger_n wherefore_o if_o we_o fulfil_v not_o the_o law_n the_o promise_n shall_v take_v no_o place_n and_o to_o believe_v that_o promise_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v fulfil_v will_v be_v a_o vain_a thing_n which_o undoutedlie_o must_v needs_o utterlie_o be_v so_o if_o it_o be_v give_v upon_o this_o condition_n that_o we_o shall_v perform_v the_o law_n when_o as_o no_o man_n can_v perfect_o accomplish_v the_o law_n reason_n verse_n 16._o the_o twelve_o reason_n but_o the_o apostle_n proceed_v further_a and_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o most_o merciful_a counsel_n of_o god_n decré_v after_o this_o manner_n therefore_o be_v the_o inheritance_n give_v by_o faith_n and_o according_a to_o grace_n to_o the_o end_n the_o promise_n shall_v be_v firm_a as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o the_o promise_n shall_v depend_v upon_o work_n our_o mind_n will_v continual_o waver_v none_o may_v appoint_v any_o certainty_n of_o his_o own_o salvation_n for_o his_o conscience_n will_v evermore_o accuse_v he_o that_o he_o have_v not_o perform_v those_o work_n for_o the_o which_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v to_o the_o end_n therefore_o we_o shall_v not_o waver_v reason_n why_o god_n will_v that_o our_o justification_n shall_v come_v by_o faith_n vers_fw-la 18._o the_o .13_o reason_n god_n will_v that_o our_o justification_n shall_v consist_v of_o faith_n and_o grace_n that_o the_o promise_n may_v be_v firm_a the_o same_o thing_n also_o be_v gather_v by_o that_o which_o be_v declare_v of_o abraham_n how_o that_o contrary_a to_o hope_v he_o believe_v in_o hope_n he_o be_v say_v to_o believe_v in_o hope_n contrary_a to_o hope_v which_o either_o in_o himself_o or_o in_o nature_n see_v or_o feel_v no_o manner_n of_o thing_n which_o may_v persuade_v he_o to_o hope_n even_o as_o abraham_n be_v a_o hundred_o year_n of_o age_n his_o body_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n dead_a his_o wife_n a_o old_a woman_n and_o barren_a all_o which_o thing_n natural_o put_v he_o from_o hope_v and_o yet_o prevail_a against_o they_o all_o he_o hope_v but_o we_o if_o we_o have_v merit_n or_o good_a work_n whereby_o we_o may_v obtain_v righteousness_n then_o shall_v we_o not_o hope_v contrary_a to_o hope_v but_o in_o hope_n and_o according_a to_o hope_v wherefore_o our_o justification_n be_v to_o be_v appoint_v no_o otherwise_o than_o we_o read_v it_o be_v in_o abraham_n for_o he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o we_o all_o as_o it_o be_v impute_v unto_o he_o even_o so_o shall_v it_o be_v impute_v unto_o us._n reason_n the_o .14_o reason_n 12_o but_o now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o .5_o chapter_n there_o again_o paul_n plain_o express_v in_o what_o case_n man_n be_v before_o they_o be_v regenerate_v for_o he_o say_v for_o christ_n when_o we_o be_v yet_o weak_a according_a as_o the_o time_n require_v 6._o rom._n 5_o 6._o die_v for_o the_o ungodlie_a and_o straight_o way_n but_o god_n set_v out_o his_o love_n towards_o we_o in_o that_o when_o we_o be_v yet_o sinner_n christ_n die_v for_o us._n and_o he_o add_v 8._o vers_fw-la 8._o for_o if_o when_o we_o be_v enemy_n we_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n 10._o vers_fw-la 10._o much_o more_o be_v now_o reconcile_v shall_v we_o be_v save_v by_o his_o life_n hereby_o we_o gather_v that_o before_o regeneration_n man_n be_v weak_a sinner_n ungodlie_a and_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n who_o then_o can_v ascribe_v unto_o such_o man_n power_n to_o obtain_v righteousness_n at_o their_o pleasure_n when_o they_o listen_v to_o do_v good_a work_n other_o may_v believe_v it_o but_o the_o godly_a will_v never_o be_v so_o persuade_v this_o moreover_o be_v another_o proof_n in_o that_o he_o set_v forth_o the_o cause_n of_o so_o great_a a_o evil_a when_o he_o say_v therefore_o 12._o vers_fw-la 12._o even_o as_o by_o one_o man_n sin_n enter_v into_o the_o world_n and_o by_o sin_n death_n reason_n the_o .15_o reason_n even_o so_o death_n go_v over_o all_o man_n forsomuch_o as_o all_o man_n have_v sin_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v we_o have_v be_v even_o from_o the_o beginning_n by_o the_o first_o man_n lose_v and_o condemn_v and_o lest_o thou_o shall_v think_v that_o infant_n be_v to_o be_v except_v he_o say_v 14._o vers_fw-la 14._o yea_o death_n have_v reign_v from_o adam_n even_o to_o moses_n over_o they_o also_o which_o have_v not_o sin_v after_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o transgression_n of_o adam_n the_o mass_n or_o lump_n of_o perdition_n comprehend_v all_o those_o that_o be_v bear_v from_o which_o corruption_n the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o man_n to_o escape_v by_o their_o work_n and_o to_o challenge_v justification_n unto_o themselves_o afterward_o in_o the_o .6_o chapter_n thus_o speak_v our_o apostle_n 21._o vers_fw-la 21._o what_o fruit_n have_v you_o then_o in_o those_o thing_n whereof_o you_o be_v now_o ashamed_a for_o the_o end_n of_o they_o be_v death_n reason_n the_o .16_o reason_n but_o now_o be_v deliver_v from_o sin_n and_o make_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n you_o have_v your_o fruit_n to_o sanctification_n and_o the_o end_n everlasting_a life_n what_o other_o thing_n mean_v these_o word_n than_o that_o all_o thing_n which_o man_n do_v before_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n deserve_v nothing_o else_o but_o ignominy_n &_o shame_n and_o there_o be_v no_o fruit_n there_o of_o sanctification_n but_o it_o follow_v regeneration_n itself_o and_o who_o will_v say_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v full_a of_o ignominy_n and_o shame_n reason_n the_o .17_o reason_n but_o now_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o be_v say_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o .7_o cap._n know_v you_o not_o brethren_n for_o i_o speak_v to_o they_o that_o know_v the_o law_n how_o that_o the_o law_n have_v power_n over_o man_n as_o long_o as_o he_o live_v 1._o rom._n 7_o 1._o for_o the_o woman_n which_o be_v in_o subjection_n to_o a_o man_n be_v bind_v by_o the_o law_n to_o the_o man_n as_o long_o as_o he_o live_v but_o if_o the_o man_n be_v dead_a she_o be_v lose_a from_o the_o law_n of_o the_o man_n wherefore_o if_o while_o the_o man_n live_v she_o couple_v herself_o with_o another_o man_n she_o shall_v be_v count_v a_o wedlocke-breaker_n but_o if_o the_o man_n be_v dead_a she_o be_v free_a from_o the_o law_n of_o the_o husband_n so_o that_o she_o be_v no_o wedlock-breaker_n though_o she_o couple_v herself_o with_o another_o man_n even_o so_o you_o also_o my_o brethren_n be_v dead_a unto_o the_o
26._o you_o be_v all_o the_o child_n of_o god_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o what_o be_v it_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o because_o we_o have_v already_o obtain_v adoption_n which_o we_o obtain_v only_o by_o regeneration_n or_o justification_n and_o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n 28._o rom._n 4_o 28._o brethren_n say_v he_o we_o be_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o isaac_n child_n of_o the_o promise_n but_o to_o be_v child_n of_o the_o promise_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o believe_v those_o thing_n which_o god_n promise_v whereby_o we_o be_v make_v his_o child_n according_a as_o he_o have_v promise_v we_o shall_v be_v for_o so_o be_v isaac_n bear_v unto_o abraham_n not_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n but_o by_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n in_o the_o five_o chapter_n he_o write_v 5._o rom._n 5_o 5._o we_o in_o the_o spirit_n look_v for_o the_o hope_n of_o righteousness_n by_o faith_n in_o this_o place_n be_v two_o thing_n touch_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n whereby_o we_o be_v new_o fashion_v and_o renew_v unto_o salvation_n and_o faith_n whereby_o we_o apprehend_v righteousness_n wherefore_o in_o this_o matter_n of_o our_o justification_n although_o there_o be_v in_o our_o mind_n many_o other_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o none_o of_o they_o except_o faith_n help_v to_o justification_n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n conclude_v circumcision_n be_v nothing_o 6._o ibidem_fw-la 6._o and_o uncircumcision_n be_v nothing_o but_o only_a faith_n which_o work_v through_o love_n hereof_o only_o depend_v justification_n of_o this_o faith_n i_o say_v not_o be_v dead_a but_o live_v and_o of_o force_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n paul_n add_v which_o work_v by_o love_n which_o yet_o ought_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o though_o faith_n shall_v depend_v of_o love_n or_o have_v of_o it_o as_o they_o use_v to_o speak_v her_o form_n but_o for_o that_o when_o it_o burst_v forth_o into_o act_n and_o will_v show_v forth_o itself_o it_o must_v of_o necessity_n do_v this_o by_o love_n so_o the_o knowledge_n of_o any_o man_n depend_v not_o hereon_o for_o that_o he_o teach_v other_o man_n but_o by_o that_o mean_v it_o be_v most_o of_o all_o declare_v but_o if_o any_o perfection_n of_o these_o action_n of_o love_a and_o teach_v redound_v unto_o faith_n and_o knowledge_n that_o come_v of_o another_o cause_n and_o not_o for_o that_o they_o depend_v of_o it_o or_o thereof_o have_v their_o form_n as_o many_o sophister_n have_v dream_v 8._o ephes_n 2_o 8._o 52_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n the_o 2._o chapter_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v by_o grace_n you_o be_v make_v safe_a through_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o of_o yourselves_o for_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o after_o that_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n 16._o eph._n 3_o 16._o that_o according_a to_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o glory_n he_o will_v grant_v you_o that_o you_o may_v be_v strengthen_v with_o might_n in_o the_o inward_a man_n by_o the_o spirit_n that_o christ_n may_v dwell_v in_o your_o hart_n by_o faith_n he_o that_o have_v christ_n in_o he_o the_o same_o have_v without_o all_o doubt_n righteousness_n for_o of_o he_o paul_n thus_o write_v unto_o the_o corinthian_n in_o the_o former_a epistle_n 30._o 1._o cor._n 1_o 30._o and_o the_o first_o chapter_n who_o be_v make_v unto_o we_o wisdom_n righteousness_n holiness_n and_o redemption_n here_o therefore_o it_o be_v show_v by_o what_o mean_v christ_n dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n namely_o by_o faith_n again_o paul_n in_o the_o three_o chapter_n to_o the_o philippian_n 9_o phil._n 3_o 9_o that_o i_o may_v be_v find_v say_v he_o in_o he_o not_o have_v my_o own_o righteousness_n which_o be_v of_o the_o law_n but_o that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n here_o that_o righteousness_n which_o be_v of_o work_n and_o of_o the_o law_n he_o call_v he_o but_o that_o which_o be_v of_o faith_n and_o which_o he_o most_o of_o all_o desire_v he_o call_v the_o righteousness_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 33._o heb._n 11_o 33._o unto_o the_o hebrews_n also_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n the_o saint_n by_o faith_n have_v overcome_v kingdom_n have_v wrought_v righteousness_n and_o have_v obtain_v the_o promise_n these_o word_n declare_v how_o much_o be_v to_o be_v attribute_v unto_o faith_n for_o by_o it_o the_o saint_n be_v say_v not_o only_o to_o have_v possess_v outward_a kingdom_n but_o also_o to_o have_v exercise_v the_o work_n of_o righteousness_n namely_o to_o have_v live_v ho_o and_o without_o blame_n and_o to_o have_v obtain_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n 5._o verse_n 5._o and_o peter_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n and_o first_o chapter_n by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n say_v he_o be_v you_o keep_v unto_o salvation_n through_o faith_n in_o these_o word_n be_v signify_v two_o principal_a ground_n of_o our_o salvation_n the_o one_o be_v the_o might_n and_o power_n of_o god_n which_o be_v whole_o necessary_a for_o we_o to_o obtain_v salvation_n the_o other_o be_v faith_n whereby_o as_o by_o a_o instrument_n salvation_n be_v apply_v unto_o us._n john_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n and_o five_o chapter_n 1._o verse_n 1._o every_o one_o say_v he_o which_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n be_v bear_v of_o god_n but_o to_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n be_v nothing_o else_o than_o to_o be_v justify_v or_o to_o be_v bear_v again_o in_o christ_n if_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n â_o ibidem_fw-la â_o this_o be_v the_o victory_n which_o overcom_v the_o world_n even_o our_o faith_n by_o which_o testimony_n be_v declare_v that_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o devil_n of_o sin_n of_o death_n and_o of_o hell_n be_v by_o no_o other_o thing_n drive_v away_o from_o we_o but_o by_o faith_n only_o and_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o selfsame_o chapter_n it_o be_v say_v and_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o write_v unto_o you_o 3._o verse_n 3._o which_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o you_o have_v eternal_a life_n and_o that_o you_o shall_v believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 53_o now_o let_v we_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o evangelist_n as_o much_o as_o shall_v serve_v for_o this_o present_a question_n matthew_n in_o his_o eight_o chapter_n say_v 19_o mat._n 8_o 19_o that_o christ_n exceed_o wonder_v at_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o centurion_n and_o confess_v that_o he_o have_v not_o find_v such_o faith_n in_o israel_n and_o turn_v unto_o he_o say_v even_o as_o thou_o have_v believe_v so_o be_v it_o unto_o thou_o here_o some_o reply_n that_o this_o history_n and_o such_o other_o like_a entreat_v not_o of_o justification_n but_o only_o of_o the_o outward_a benefit_n of_o the_o body_n give_v by_o god._n howbeit_o these_o man_n ought_v to_o consider_v that_o sin_n which_o be_v in_o we_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o grief_n and_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o body_n for_o only_a christ_n except_v who_o utterlie_o die_v a_o innocent_a all_o other_o forsomuch_o as_o they_o be_v subject_a unto_o sin_n do_v suffer_v no_o adversity_n without_o just_a desert_n and_o although_o god_n in_o lay_v of_o his_o calamity_n upon_o we_o have_v not_o always_o a_o respect_n hereunto_o for_o oftentimes_o he_o send_v adversity_n to_o show_v forth_o his_o glory_n and_o to_o the_o trial_n of_o all_o those_o that_o be_v he_o yet_o none_o while_o he_o be_v so_o vex_v can_v complain_v that_o he_o be_v uniustlie_o deal_v withal_o for_o there_o be_v none_o so_o holy_a but_o that_o in_o himself_o he_o have_v sin_n which_o be_v worthy_a of_o such_o like_a or_o else_o of_o great_a punishment_n and_o where_o the_o cause_n be_v not_o take_v away_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v the_o effect_n be_v remoove_v wherefore_o christ_n forsomuch_o as_o he_o deliver_v man_n from_o disease_n of_o the_o body_n manifest_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v he_o which_o shall_v justify_v man_n from_o sin_n and_o that_o this_o be_v true_a the_o self-same_a evangelist_n teach_v we_o in_o the_o .9_o chapter_n 2_o verse_n 2_o for_o when_o he_o that_o be_v sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n be_v bring_v unto_o christ_n to_o be_v heal_v he_o say_v that_o christ_n answer_v be_v of_o good_a cheer_n my_o son_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o at_o which_o say_v when_o as_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n be_v offend_v to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v understand_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o evil_n be_v take_v away_o even_o the_o evil_n themselves_o be_v take_v away_o he_o command_v he_o that_o be_v sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n to_o arise_v and_o take_v up_o his_o bed_n and_o to_o walk_v wherefore_o it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o christ_n by_o the_o healing_n of_o the_o body_n
obteinement_n of_o his_o own_o salvation_n now_o it_o shall_v be_v declare_v particular_o the_o general_a word_n be_v change_n and_o change_n repentance_n change_n be_v the_o general_a word_n of_o repentance_n according_a to_o the_o philosopher_n be_v of_o many_o sort_n for_o if_o it_o be_v understand_v in_o substance_n they_o say_v it_o be_v a_o generation_n if_o in_o quantity_n they_o call_v it_o a_o increase_n and_o decrease_v if_o thou_o go_v from_o place_n to_o place_n they_o name_v it_o a_o local_a motion_n if_o this_o change_n be_v make_v in_o quality_n in_o pass_v from_o one_o contrary_a to_o another_o this_o four_o change_n they_o call_v a_o alteration_n hereunto_o belong_v repentance_n we_o do_v not_o cast_v our_o mind_n nor_o our_o body_n from_o we_o but_o there_o be_v make_v a_o certain_a alteration_n in_o quality_n from_o uncleanness_n to_o pureness_n from_o a_o corrupt_a to_o a_o sincere_a life_n thereof_o the_o subject_n thereof_o touch_v the_o subject_n thereof_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o the_o whole_a man_n be_v change_v in_o respect_n of_o quality_n but_o especial_o the_o will_n in_o which_o part_n of_o the_o mind_n repentance_n be_v place_v for_o in_o the_o power_n thereof_o consist_v the_o rule_n &_o government_n of_o other_o power_n other_o have_v suppose_v that_o this_o repentance_n be_v place_v in_o the_o angry_a part_n because_o it_o concern_v a_o high_a &_o lofty_a matter_n wherefore_o the_o will_n admit_v this_o change_n not_o fainedlie_o but_o vehementlie_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o there_o be_v great_a sorrow_n for_o sin_n commit_v passion_n or_o sorrow_n be_v a_o certain_a affection_n therefore_o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o sorrow_n because_o it_o be_v do_v with_o reason_n notwithstanding_o this_o sorrow_n be_v forthwith_o present_a it_o help_v it_o work_v together_o as_o appear_v in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o to_o the_o corinthian_n 10._o 2._o cor._n 7_o 9_o &_o 10._o godly_a sorrow_n work_v repentance_n in_o you_o unto_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n for_o some_o may_v sorrow_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o own_o loss_n we_o see_v here_o now_o that_o from_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n repentance_n fron_n whence_o come_v the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o repentance_n proceed_v the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o repentance_n as_o god_n give_v faith_n so_o also_o do_v he_o give_v repentance_n otherwise_o if_o there_o be_v no_o faith_n faith_n true_a faith_n and_o tempârall_a faith_n repentance_n be_v not_o available_a but_o faith_n otherwhile_o be_v a_o true_a faith_n and_o otherwhile_o it_o be_v but_o a_o temporal_a faith_n &_o such_o as_o the_o faith_n be_v such_o be_v the_o repentance_n that_o do_v ensue_v if_o it_o be_v a_o true_a faith_n true_a repentance_n follow_v of_o what_o sin_n then_o must_v we_o repent_v we_o doubtless_o we_o ought_v to_o repent_v of_o all_o sin_n us._n of_o what_o sin_n we_o must_v repent_v us._n so_o as_o tertullian_n right_o say_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr poenitentia_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v in_o word_n or_o in_o deed_n that_o we_o have_v offend_v he_o say_v that_o even_o he_o which_o by_o his_o judgement_n have_v appoint_v punishment_n for_o all_o those_o thing_n have_v also_o promise_v pardon_n through_o repentance_n definition_n a_o brief_a declaration_n of_o the_o definition_n some_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v place_v in_o the_o definition_n belong_v unto_o the_o general_a word_n and_o some_o perteine_a unto_o the_o difference_n the_o general_a word_n be_v change_n the_o difference_n be_v alteration_n of_o life_n another_o difference_n be_v that_o it_o be_v willing_o take_v in_o hand_n for_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n do_v which_o we_o be_v not_o willing_a unto_o another_o difference_n be_v it_o may_v be_v take_v in_o hand_n for_o sin_n commit_v the_o formal_a cause_n be_v conversion_n and_o change_n the_o material_a cause_n be_v the_o will_n itself_o the_o object_n be_v the_o sin_n for_o which_o we_o sorrow_n and_o the_o virtue_n which_o we_o strive_v to_o attain_v the_o efficient_a cause_n be_v faith_n and_o god_n the_o end_n be_v the_o honour_n of_o god_n &_o our_o own_o salvation_n thus_o the_o definition_n be_v declare_v let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o distinction_n repentance_n distinction_n of_o repentance_n 4_o tertullian_n distinguish_v repentance_n into_o good_a and_o evil_n he_o say_v it_o be_v evil_a repentance_n if_o we_o repent_v ourselves_o of_o the_o deed_n that_o be_v do_v well_o namely_o of_o almesdéeds_a of_o forgive_a our_o enemy_n of_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n but_o it_o be_v a_o good_a repentance_n when_o we_o change_v unto_o better_a it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v either_o good_a or_o evil_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o end_n whereunto_o we_o refer_v it_o another_o distinction_n one_o kind_n of_o repentance_n be_v rude_a and_o without_o form_n and_o another_o be_v perfect_a and_o absolute_a whereby_o shall_v we_o gather_v this_o because_o that_o it_o be_v the_o will_n which_o take_v in_o hand_n and_o that_o the_o same_o in_o her_o own_o nature_n be_v blind_a it_o behoove_v that_o understanding_n go_v before_o what_o shine_v in_o those_o man_n repentance_n the_o ethnic_a repentance_n which_o be_v without_o christ_n sometime_o there_o appear_v in_o they_o a_o certain_a humane_a honesty_n the_o which_o as_o the_o philosopher_n say_v be_v a_o life_n according_a to_o nature_n they_o read_v the_o ethic_n or_o moral_n of_o the_o philosopher_n they_o see_v idea_n or_o form_n of_o virtue_n when_o their_o understanding_n take_v any_o hold_n of_o this_o honesty_n they_o perceive_v how_o far_o off_o they_o be_v from_o the_o same_o and_o for_o that_o cause_n they_o find_v themselves_o by_o experience_n to_o be_v blame_v be_v stir_v up_o with_o a_o certain_a repentance_n laertius_n teach_v that_o a_o certain_a young_a man_n that_o be_v lewd_a and_o loose_a of_o life_n at_o a_o certain_a time_n be_v drunk_a himself_o with_o drunken_a companion_n and_o wear_v a_o garland_n rush_v into_o the_o school_n of_o xenocrates_n but_o the_o philosopher_n be_v not_o disquiet_v with_o their_o come_n in_o proceed_v in_o his_o treatise_n he_o speak_v so_o earnest_o of_o temperance_n that_o by_o little_a and_o little_a the_o word_n enter_v into_o the_o hart_n this_o young_a man_n lay_v away_o his_o garland_n and_o begin_v to_o dispute_v of_o philosophy_n howbeit_o such_o a_o manner_n of_o conversion_n be_v not_o altogether_o to_o be_v commend_v it_o may_v be_v commend_v in_o his_o kind_n but_o it_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o christianlike_a whereof_o we_o speak_v which_o ought_v to_o be_v according_a to_o faith_n and_o towards_o god_n as_o paul_n witness_v in_o the_o twenty_o of_o the_o act_n 21._o verse_n 21._o that_o he_o preach_v repentance_n towards_o god_n and_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n there_o be_v other_o which_o bring_v forth_o this_o rude_a and_o unperfect_a repentance_n in_o another_o sort_n when_o it_o be_v take_v in_o hand_n by_o the_o will_n and_o the_o same_o follow_v reason_n there_o must_v needs_o be_v some_o thing_n which_o ought_v to_o give_v light_n unto_o reason_n they_o have_v a_o general_a faith_n or_o opinion_n opinion_n repentance_n come_v of_o a_o general_a faith_n or_o opinion_n that_o god_n be_v both_o a_o revenger_n of_o evil_a and_o a_o rewarder_n of_o good_a they_o also_o behold_v that_o which_o he_o have_v command_v in_o the_o law_n when_o they_o perceive_v that_o they_o be_v command_v to_o do_v such_o thing_n as_o they_o do_v not_o they_o be_v vex_v with_o fear_n and_o after_o a_o sort_n repent_v themselves_o some_o bring_v a_o place_n out_o of_o the_o 26._o chapter_n of_o esaie_n we_o have_v be_v with_o child_n of_o thy_o care_n 26._o verse_n 26._o and_o have_v bring_v forth_o the_o wind_n of_o salvation_n but_o it_o make_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n howbeit_o true_a it_o be_v that_o repentance_n with_o some_o be_v begin_v in_o this_o sort_n this_o may_v be_v hurtful_a for_o unless_o it_o have_v some_o help_n beside_o it_o breed_v desperation_n after_o this_o sort_n do_v cain_n judas_n and_o esau_n repent_v themselves_o see_v the_o matter_n stand_v thus_o then_o in_o the_o elect_a child_n of_o god_n faith_n be_v add_v forgiveness_n be_v preach_v and_o they_o embrace_v the_o same_o through_o christ_n repentance_n true_a repentance_n then_o do_v true_a and_o perfect_a repentance_n follow_v when_o the_o will_n undertake_v this_o repentance_n christ_n himself_o lighten_v the_o understanding_n with_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n then_o come_v the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o strength_n be_v give_v to_o cast_v off_o sin_n and_o the_o fruit_n of_o repentance_n do_v follow_v that_o in_o stead_n of_o wicked_a act_n good_a deed_n be_v show_v forth_o the_o holy_a father_n say_v that_o this_o be_v to_o do_v repentance_n repentance_n what_o be_v to_o do_v repentance_n and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v declare_v
that_o be_v to_o wit_n adorn_v with_o upper_a and_o grosser_n part_n in_o the_o which_o these_o affection_n be_v augustine_n augustine_n whereupon_o augustine_n in_o the_o place_n above_o allege_a neither_o have_v he_o a_o counterfeit_n humane_a affection_n see_v he_o have_v the_o body_n and_o soul_n of_o a_o man_n hereupon_o ambrose_n worthy_o say_v that_o christ_n take_v upon_o he_o not_o a_o show_n of_o incarnation_n but_o a_o truth_n and_o therefore_o true_o have_v affection_n and_o he_o add_v that_o this_o undoubted_o be_v convenient_a that_o he_o may_v overcome_v sorrow_n and_o sadness_n but_o not_o exclude_v they_o he_o add_v say_v neither_o be_v that_o fortitude_n commendable_a which_o bring_v in_o a_o unsensiblenes_n of_o wound_n not_o a_o grief_n if_o there_o be_v any_o that_o know_v they_o have_v so_o unsensible_a a_o body_n as_o they_o feel_v not_o wound_n they_o have_v not_o the_o commendation_n of_o fortitude_n or_o valiant_a courage_n but_o those_o have_v it_o which_o overcome_v the_o gréef_n which_o they_o feel_v of_o how_o a_o say_n of_o hilary_n must_v be_v take_v heed_n of_o wherefore_o hilary_n must_v be_v advisedlie_o read_v in_o his_o 10._o book_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la who_o speak_v dangerous_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o those_o affection_n he_o affirm_v that_o the_o lord_n have_v a_o body_n to_o suffer_v but_o not_o to_o feel_v pain_n and_o he_o say_v that_o the_o cross_n sword_n and_o nail_n put_v upon_o christ_n the_o violence_n of_o a_o passion_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n but_o not_o a_o grief_n and_o he_o use_v a_o similitude_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o fare_v even_o as_o if_o one_o will_v attempt_v with_o a_o sword_n to_o thrust_v through_o water_n fire_n or_o air_n he_o shall_v do_v violence_n against_o these_o element_n and_o the_o sword_n of_o his_o own_o nature_n will_v put_v to_o grief_n but_o those_o body_n be_v not_o of_o that_o nature_n as_o they_o can_v suffer_v a_o wound_n these_o thing_n be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o a_o true_a humane_a body_n on_o this_o wise_a may_v we_o argue_v that_o christ_n have_v grief_n grief_n a_o proof_n that_o christ_n suffer_v grief_n to_o the_o feel_v of_o grief_n in_o any_o man_n two_o thing_n be_v chéeflie_o require_v which_o thing_n be_v appoint_v grief_n do_v follow_v first_o that_o the_o body_n shall_v be_v hurt_v secondlie_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o feel_v of_o that_o hurt_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v hurt_v be_v whole_a it_o be_v break_v the_o soul_n of_o christ_n be_v most_o perfect_a it_o have_v sense_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v not_o without_o feel_v the_o self_n same_o be_v we_o to_o judge_v as_o touch_v sadness_n this_o be_v the_o nature_n thereof_o appear_v when_o sadness_n appear_v that_o if_o in_o the_o cogitation_n or_o imagination_n we_o perceive_v any_o hurtful_a thing_n that_o be_v like_a to_o happen_v or_o be_v present_a than_o it_o show_v itself_o such_o cogitation_n have_v christ_n those_o thing_n be_v repugnant_a unto_o nature_n wherefore_o there_o follow_v a_o sadness_n howbeit_o that_o follow_v not_o which_o have_v sin_n join_v with_o it_o they_o be_v perfect_a motion_n they_o go_v not_o beyond_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n they_o have_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o punishment_n but_o not_o of_o a_o offence_n our_o affection_n be_v unpure_a what_o cause_n of_o difference_n be_v there_o augustine_n augustine_n augustine_n in_o the_o place_n above_o recite_v show_v the_o reason_n because_o the_o affection_n of_o christ_n be_v derive_v of_o power_n we_o of_o infirmity_n christ_n have_v that_o power_n that_o he_o can_v use_v these_o affection_n when_o and_o as_o often_o as_o he_o will_v but_o we_o do_v now_o spring_n of_o infirmity_n yea_o and_o they_o rise_v against_o we_o whether_o we_o will_v or_o no._n we_o can_v not_o bridle_v they_o wherefore_o they_o be_v troublous_a but_o christ_n be_v clear_v not_o only_o as_o they_o be_v by_o institution_n give_v unto_o adam_n but_o also_o as_o they_o be_v adorn_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n they_o presume_v nothing_o but_o so_o long_o and_o so_o much_o as_o it_o behoove_v 39_o so_o then_o we_o may_v assign_v three_o difference_n between_o christ_n affection_n and_o we_o the_o first_o as_o touch_v the_o object_n the_o motion_n and_o affection_n of_o christ_n never_o decline_v unto_o sin_n but_o we_o do_v very_o often_o the_o second_o christ_n as_o say_v augustine_n use_v when_o he_o judge_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v use_v as_o when_o he_o will_v that_o man_n shall_v be_v man_n be_v make_v it_o do_v not_o so_o happen_v with_o we_o they_o break_v forth_o even_o against_o our_o will_n thirdlie_o those_o perturbation_n be_v sometime_o so_o forcible_a in_o we_o as_o they_o disquiet_v reason_n itself_o and_o do_v hinder_a faith_n but_o it_o be_v not_o thus_o in_o christ_n 28._o matt._n 5_o 28._o wherefore_o jerom_n upon_o matthew_n in_o the_o handle_n of_o that_o sentence_n he_o that_o shall_v look_v upon_o a_o woman_n to_o lust_n after_o she_o passion_n passion_n and_o preparative_n unto_o passion_n etc._n etc._n distinguish_v and_o say_v that_o there_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o may_v be_v call_v suffer_v &_o foresuffering_a that_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v always_o take_v in_o the_o the_o ill_a part_n when_o they_o vanquish_v and_o overcome_v us._n but_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v the_o first_o motion_n which_o although_o they_o be_v hold_v under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o offence_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o crime_n they_o do_v not_o overcome_v but_o what_o the_o difference_n be_v between_o a_o crime_n and_o a_o sin_n augustine_n in_o the_o 41._o 10_o the_o difference_n between_o a_o crime_n and_o a_o sin_n 1._o tim._n 3_o 10_o treatise_n upon_o john_n show_v crime_n be_v gréevous_a sin_n which_o have_v accusation_n and_o deserve_v condemnation_n but_o sin_n be_v of_o less_o weight_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o speak_v touch_v the_o ordain_v of_o pastor_n will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v without_o crime_n not_o without_o sin_n otherwise_o he_o shall_v exclude_v all_o man_n from_o the_o ministry_n therefore_o in_o christ_n those_o affection_n proceed_v not_o so_o far_o that_o they_o can_v alienate_v his_o will_n from_o the_o right_a way_n as_o jerom_n say_v when_o he_o handle_v that_o place_n my_o soul_n be_v heavy_a etc._n etc._n 3â_n matt._n 26_o 3â_n they_o have_v rather_o the_o nature_n of_o foresuffer_v than_o of_o suffer_v his_o divine_a nature_n can_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o begin_v to_o come_v forth_o but_o by_o a_o certain_a dispensation_n of_o grace_n for_o our_o salvation_n he_o make_v place_n for_o they_o when_o the_o time_n serve_v but_o if_o they_o be_v affection_n will_n why_o christ_n call_v his_o affection_n his_o will_n why_o do_v he_o call_v they_o a_o will_n say_v not_o my_o will_n be_v do_v but_o thou_o he_o mean_v the_o inclination_n of_o nature_n whereby_o we_o shun_v thing_n hurtful_a and_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o christ_n shall_v be_v sad_a and_o move_v with_o those_o affection_n because_o it_o behoove_v he_o to_o be_v tempt_v in_o all_o thing_n and_o to_o overcome_v these_o affection_n and_o this_o victory_n not_o a_o little_a further_v our_o redemption_n neither_o be_v it_o against_o the_o will_n of_o god_n for_o he_o will_v have_v he_o not_o only_o to_o be_v crucify_v but_o also_o to_o be_v affect_v with_o those_o motion_n even_o as_o jerusalem_n to_o be_v overthrow_v and_o christ_n to_o bewail_v it_o neither_o while_n he_o weep_v do_v he_o against_o his_o father_n will_n wherefore_o if_o we_o shall_v believe_v cyrill_n christ_n his_o death_n in_o respect_n that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n and_o have_v appetite_n and_o sense_n be_v not_o voluntary_a yet_o be_v it_o voluntary_a because_o it_o please_v the_o father_n and_o because_o it_o serve_v to_o our_o redemption_n for_o the_o which_o christ_n come_v but_o it_o be_v say_v christ_n be_v bless_v how_o can_v he_o be_v move_v with_o those_o affection_n because_o that_o felicity_n be_v so_o contain_v in_o the_o upper_a part_n of_o the_o mind_n as_o it_o do_v not_o redound_v to_o the_o low_a part_n 40_o all_o these_o thing_n make_v against_o the_o stoic_n namely_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o doctrine_n apostolical_a also_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o the_o godly_a be_v so_o sorrowful_a yea_o and_o i_o think_v good_a to_o add_v wicked_a true_a affection_n be_v great_a in_o the_o godly_a than_o in_o the_o wicked_a that_o true_a affection_n be_v great_a in_o the_o godly_a than_o in_o the_o wicked_a who_o by_o little_a and_o little_o put_v they_o away_o and_o the_o great_a that_o they_o be_v the_o more_o they_o
all_o create_v at_o the_o beginning_n but_o be_v daily_o create_v of_o god_n to_o be_v put_v into_o the_o body_n proposition_n 3_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o paradise_n must_v not_o be_v understand_v so_o allegoricallie_o as_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o history_n shall_v not_o be_v retain_v but_o the_o allegory_n may_v profitable_o he_o join_v unto_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v proposition_n 4_o whether_o that_o garden_n of_o pleasure_n be_v yet_o extant_a can_v be_v define_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n proposition_n 5_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v esteem_v by_o desert_n of_o action_n command_v or_o forbid_v therein_o but_o for_o that_o in_o it_o be_v contain_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n for_o do_v of_o thing_n which_o always_o must_v be_v prefer_v before_o the_o counsel_n of_o man_n proposition_n 6_o both_o kind_n of_o death_n as_o well_o of_o the_o body_n as_o of_o the_o soul_n be_v set_v before_o adam_n if_o he_o transgress_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n proposition_n 7_o the_o first_o man_n be_v create_v mortal_a albeit_o it_o be_v in_o he_o not_o to_o die_v proposition_n 8_o it_o be_v not_o good_a for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v alone_o because_o it_o be_v not_o pleasant_a nor_o honest_a nor_o profitable_a proposition_n 9_o three_o exercise_n be_v set_v before_o man_n at_o his_o creation_n namely_o to_o obey_v god_n to_o behold_v the_o nature_n of_o thing_n create_v and_o to_o exercise_v husbandry_n proposition_n 10_o the_o sleep_n of_o adam_n in_o the_o bring_n forth_o of_o the_o woman_n signify_v unto_o we_o that_o christ_n by_o his_o death_n purchase_v his_o church_n probable_a proposition_n 1_o the_o breathe_n of_o god_n whereby_o the_o first_o man_n be_v make_v a_o live_a soul_n be_v a_o token_n show_v we_o that_o the_o reasonable_a soul_n be_v give_v unto_o man_n not_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n but_o outward_o by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n proposition_n 2_o the_o garden_n of_o pleasure_n be_v plant_v in_o the_o region_n of_o eden_n as_o the_o name_n declare_v not_o far_o from_o assyria_n mesopotamia_n and_o arabia_n proposition_n 3_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n have_v fruit_n which_o prolong_v life_n to_o they_o that_o shall_v eat_v of_o it_o allegoricallie_o signify_v christ_n proposition_n 4_o the_o tree_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a be_v not_o only_o so_o call_v of_o that_o which_o follow_v but_o because_o of_o the_o same_o there_o be_v a_o law_n give_v who_o property_n be_v to_o show_v the_o difference_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a proposition_n 5_o by_o forbid_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o tree_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a we_o be_v teach_v not_o to_o be_v so_o hardy_a as_o to_o rule_v ourselves_o by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n or_o else_o to_o determine_v by_o man_n judgement_n what_o be_v good_a and_o what_o be_v evil_a which_o nevertheless_o be_v requisite_a that_o we_o decree_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o word_n proposition_n 6_o see_v the_o law_n be_v give_v to_o adam_n the_o woman_n be_v not_o yet_o create_v it_o show_v that_o woman_n shall_v be_v instruct_v by_o man_n as_o touch_v the_o law_n and_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n proposition_n 7_o the_o woman_n be_v make_v of_o the_o rib_n of_o man_n to_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n be_v founde_v in_o the_o strength_n of_o christ_n proposition_n out_o of_o the_o second_o and_o three_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n necessary_a proposition_n 1_o child_n must_v not_o for_o their_o wife_n sake_n so_o leave_v their_o parent_n as_o not_o to_o succour_v or_o reverence_v they_o albeit_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o live_v near_o to_o their_o wife_n than_o to_o their_o parent_n proposition_n 2_o whereas_o the_o husband_n and_o wife_n be_v say_v to_o be_v one_o flesh_n matrimony_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v inseparable_a so_o long_o as_o they_o can_v be_v one_o flesh_n which_o be_v take_v away_o by_o adultery_n and_o for_o want_v of_o power_n to_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o marriage_n one_o towards_o another_o proposition_n 3_o matrimony_n be_v therefore_o say_v to_o be_v a_o mystery_n because_o it_o represent_v unto_o we_o the_o most_o streict_n conjunction_n of_o christ_n with_o his_o church_n proposition_n 4_o the_o church_n immediate_o from_o her_o beginning_n have_v adam_n for_o her_o governor_n not_o without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n speak_v with_o the_o selfsame_o word_n both_o as_o touch_v christ_n and_o as_o touch_v matrimony_n proposition_n 5_o temptation_n be_v therefore_o permit_v by_o god_n because_o they_o be_v profitable_a for_o the_o church_n proposition_n 6_o the_o devil_n promise_v unto_o the_o woman_n those_o thing_n which_o she_o have_v already_o to_o wit_n the_o open_n of_o the_o eye_n and_o likeness_n to_o god_n probable_a proposition_n 1_o whereas_o god_n bring_v eve_n frame_v unto_o adam_n we_o be_v thereby_o teach_v that_o those_o marriage_n be_v not_o well_o knit_v where_o god_n join_v not_o the_o party_n together_o proposition_n 2_o since_o that_o man_n soul_n be_v a_o spiritual_a substance_n and_o be_v immortal_a we_o must_v not_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v derive_v unto_o the_o child_n by_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o parent_n proposition_n 3_o the_o serpent_n be_v the_o fit_a instrument_n in_o temptation_n to_o express_v the_o ill_a practice_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o craftiness_n against_o man_n proposition_n 4_o the_o wicked_a will_n of_o the_o tempter_n declare_v the_o most_o skilful_a wisdom_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o know_v how_o to_o use_v well_o even_o most_o wicked_a thing_n proposition_n 5_o this_o do_v the_o devil_n by_o his_o first_o temptation_n chéeflie_o endeavour_n that_o god_n word_n shall_v not_o be_v beléeve_v as_o it_o be_v requisite_a proposition_n 6_o the_o original_n of_o eve_n fall_n be_v that_o set_v aside_o the_o earnest_a cogitation_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n she_o begin_v to_o weigh_v in_o her_o mind_n the_o commodity_n of_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n which_o the_o devil_n set_v before_o she_o together_o with_o the_o beauty_n and_o sweetness_n thereof_o proposition_n 7_o the_o shame_n and_o the_o devise_n of_o the_o cover_n be_v not_o to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o devil_n but_o to_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n as_o a_o bridle_n whereby_o the_o evil_a now_o bring_v in_o might_n the_o less_o spread_v itself_o abroad_o proposition_n out_o of_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n necessary_a proposition_n 1_o shame_n and_o the_o shun_v of_o god_n sight_n be_v property_n which_o follow_v sin_n proposition_n 2_o the_o enmity_n which_o god_n put_v between_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o woman_n belong_v unto_o all_o godly_a man_n proposition_n 3_o albeit_o the_o power_n of_o tread_v down_o the_o devil_n be_v proper_a unto_o christ_n yet_o do_v he_o communicate_v the_o same_o with_o the_o faithful_a proposition_n 4_o the_o curse_n which_o god_n lay_v upon_o the_o first_o man_n be_v not_o only_o punishment_n but_o also_o they_o show_v man_n their_o duty_n and_o bring_v remedy_n against_o temptation_n and_o sin_n proposition_n 5_o if_o the_o creature_n through_o man_n transgression_n fall_v into_o a_o worse_a condition_n than_o they_o be_v it_o be_v meet_v that_o upon_o the_o restitution_n of_o he_o those_o also_o shall_v be_v restore_v proposition_n 6_o since_o god_n remoove_v idleness_n from_o man_n they_o which_o altogether_o shun_v labour_n agree_v not_o with_o his_o will_n proposition_n 7_o christ_n take_v not_o away_o by_o his_o first_o come_n the_o punishment_n of_o these_o curse_n but_o mitigate_v they_o howbeit_o at_o his_o second_o come_v he_o will_v altogether_o take_v they_o away_o proposition_n 8_o see_v garment_n be_v invent_v for_o the_o profit_n and_o honesty_n of_o this_o present_a life_n those_o garment_n be_v justly_o find_v fault_n withal_o which_o have_v any_o thing_n against_o these_o two_o property_n proposition_n 9_o sacrifice_n be_v sign_n whereby_o we_o confess_v the_o excellency_n of_o god_n proposition_n 10_o any_o man_n be_v accept_v of_o god_n before_o his_o work_n be_v acceptable_a unto_o he_o proposition_n 11_o those_o thing_n which_o god_n either_o by_o exhort_v or_o command_v show_v shall_v be_v do_v those_o be_v not_o in_o our_o power_n to_o be_v do_v of_o we_o unless_o we_o be_v holpen_v by_o his_o grace_n probable_a proposition_n 1_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o say_v that_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o first_o man_n be_v open_v after_o sin_n because_o there_o break_v out_o a_o new_a feel_v of_o new_a punishment_n proposition_n 2_o by_o the_o example_n of_o god_n who_o so_o preciselie_o inquire_v after_o sin_n judge_n be_v admonish_v that_o they_o condemn_v not_o man_n before_o they_o be_v hear_v and_o their_o cause_n examine_v proposition_n 3_o in_o the_o curse_v of_o the_o serpent_n those_o punishment_n of_o
their_o zeal_n without_o knowledge_n pity_v 2_o 560_o a_o whether_o we_o be_v more_o unhappy_a than_o they_o which_o have_v no_o answer_n of_o our_o affair_n 3_o 260_o b_o why_o they_o endeavour_v to_o have_v many_o child_n 2_o 430_o b_o 431_o a_o they_o appoint_v two_o messiase_n 3_o 346_o b_o they_o themselves_o doubt_v not_o that_o christ_n shall_v change_v their_o ceremony_n 2_o 579_o a_o which_o of_o they_o behold_v christ_n in_o their_o sacrifice_n 2_o 582a_o compare_v to_o a_o lascivious_a and_o wanton_a wife_n 2_o 579_o b_o why_o they_o boast_v of_o the_o law_n in_o vain_a 2_o 580_o b_o suffer_v in_o rome_n to_o practice_v usury_n 2_o 472_o b_o they_o and_o the_o israelite_n compare_v 2_o 446_o a_o cruel_o use_v by_o antiochus_n 3_o 352_o b_o their_o state_n and_o that_o they_o deserve_v not_o their_o election_n 3_o 18_o b_o 19_o a_o it_o be_v god_n wonderful_a work_n that_o they_o endure_v to_o this_o day_n 2_o 599b_n whether_o they_o at_o this_o day_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o league_n make_v with_o abraham_n 2_o 598_o b_o 599_o a_o the_o mean_n that_o god_n use_v to_o have_v they_o remember_v his_o law_n 2_o 577_o b_o to_z what_o end_n they_o so_o disperse_v be_v preserve_v 2_o 599_o b_o why_o god_n will_v have_v they_o be_v infant_n circumcise_v 4_o 111_o b_o they_o be_v our_o witness_n &_o how_o 2_o 599_o b_o their_o manner_n of_o circumcision_n 4_o 111_o a_o that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o holy_a ghost_n disprove_v 2_o 592_o b_o destroy_v by_o the_o macedonian_n 2_o 596_o b_o who_o of_o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n and_o who_o not_o 2_o 595_o a_o why_o god_n give_v they_o manna_n in_o the_o wilderness_n 2_o 591_o b_o they_o avouche_v that_o nothing_o of_o the_o old_a law_n shall_v be_v change_v 2_o 587_o ab_fw-la they_o have_v exorcist_n among_o they_o 4_o 129_o b_o 130_o a_o how_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o god_n speak_v not_o to_o they_o as_o touch_v sacrifice_n 4_o 44_o ab_fw-la whether_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o christ_n and_o his_o doctrine_n 4_o 105_o b_o 106_o ab_fw-la they_o have_v add_v many_o more_o degree_n forbid_v to_o marry_v unto_o they_o that_o be_v express_v by_o god_n 2_o 148_o a_o the_o samaritan_o and_o they_o have_v no_o conversation_n 2_o 446_o a_o whether_o they_o understand_v the_o promise_n which_o be_v seal_v by_o the_o ceremony_n 4_o 105_o ab_fw-la they_o oppress_v the_o ancient_a church_n 4_o 93_o b_o 94_o a_o whether_o they_o hear_v of_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n 4_o 4_o ab_fw-la they_o suffer_v for_o the_o law_n of_o god._n 3_o 282a_o whether_o they_o be_v more_o noble_a than_o the_o gentile_n 4_o 313_o b_o god_n deliver_v they_o three_o manner_n of_o way_n from_o tyranny_n 4_o 329_o a_o their_o stock_n pure_a and_o unmixed_a 4_o 312_o ab_fw-la what_o lot_n the_o debtor_n among_o they_o have_v 4_o 315_o a_o no_o nation_n have_v law_n so_o proper_a to_o they_o as_o they_o have_v 4_o 312_o b_o a_o example_n of_o their_o obey_v the_o magistrate_n 4_o 226_o b_o they_o have_v no_o executioner_n 4_o 264_o a_o but_o a_o remnant_n of_o they_o save_v 3_o 21_o a_o in_o what_o respect_v their_o step_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v 2_o 325_o b_o their_o constancy_n against_o the_o macedonian_n and_o roman_n 4_o 243_o a_o what_o form_n of_o a_o common_a weal_n they_o have_v 4_o 226b_n 227_o a_o they_o carry_v the_o bible_n about_o with_o they_o but_o believe_v it_o not_o 2_o 329_o a_o what_o thing_n they_o shall_v be_v prohibit_v to_o use_v among_o christian_n 2_o 330_o a_o what_o we_o have_v to_o learn_v by_o the_o scatter_n abroad_o of_o they_o 2_o 329_o a_o they_o wander_v abroad_o &_o retain_v their_o own_o law_n wheresoever_o they_o become_v 2_o 328_o b_o god_n have_v set_v a_o mark_n upon_o they_o &_o what_o 2_o 329_o a_o they_o and_o the_o gentile_n signify_v by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o prodigal_a son_n and_o the_o elder_a son_n 2_o 328_o b_o whether_o they_o abuse_v and_o corrupt_v the_o holy_a bible_n as_o some_o have_v charge_v they_o 2._o 329_o ab_fw-la they_o shall_v be_v receive_v into_o the_o church_n at_o the_o latter_a day_n 2_o 328b_n they_o be_v a_o testimony_n unto_o christian_n religion_n 2_o 329_o ab_fw-la why_o they_o refuse_v to_o dwell_v among_o christian_n as_o say_v augustine_n 2_o 328_o ab_fw-la 329_o b_o their_o common_a wealth_n be_v most_o ancient_a 4_o 312_o b_o ig._n ignorance_n what_o kind_n of_o ignorance_n excuse_v sin_n 4_o 301_o a_o two_o sort_n one_o of_o negation_n another_o of_o evil_a disposition_n 2_o 571_o b_o of_o the_o fact_n and_o of_o the_o law_n 4_o 301_o a_o a_o kind_n of_o ignorance_n in_o infant_n count_v sin_n two_o 225_o ab_fw-la of_o a_o kind_n of_o ignorance_n lay_v by_o god_n upon_o man_n as_o a_o punishment_n 2_o 292_o b_o ignorance_n be_v in_o all_o the_o wicked_a sort_n of_o man_n but_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o excusable_a â_o 292_o b_o 293_o a_o what_o the_o holy_a scripture_n determine_v of_o that_o ignorance_n which_o have_v repentance_n follow_v it_o and_o of_o the_o contrary_n 2_o 292_o ab_fw-la ignorance_n which_o have_v not_o sorrow_n follow_v it_o make_v we_o guilty_a 2_o 293_o a_o he_o that_o do_v a_o thing_n through_o ignorance_n be_v ignorant_a but_o not_o contrary_a 2_o 286_o b_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o do_v through_o ignorance_n and_o other_o thing_n for_o the_o doer_n to_o be_v ignorant_a 2_o 286_o b_o of_o a_o general_a ignorance_n and_o a_o particular_a and_o which_o of_o they_o excuse_n 2_o 287_o a_o true_a godliness_n can_v be_v join_v with_o ignorance_n 2_o 259_o b_o voluntary_a be_v not_o in_o that_o which_o be_v do_v by_o ignorance_n 2_o 286_o a_o what_o kind_n of_o ignorance_n do_v not_o hold_v a_o man_n excuse_v 2_o 288_o b_o 289_o a_o why_o general_a ignorance_n make_v not_o a_o man_n to_o do_v against_o his_o will_n 2_o 287_o ab_fw-la howe_n ignorance_n can_v be_v call_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o thing_n do_v against_o the_o will_n 2_o 288_o b_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o evil_a man_n do_v not_o thing_n through_o ignorance_n but_o ignorant_o 2_o 286_o b_o 287_o a_o every_o ignorance_n be_v not_o sin_n &_o of_o angel_n ignorance_n 2_o 571_o b_o probable_a ignorance_n may_v in_o some_o part_n excuse_n sin_v two_o 426_o b_o ignorance_n of_o christianity_n reprovable_a in_o christian_n 2_o 311_o a_o what_o the_o scripture_n determine_v of_o the_o ignorance_n which_o excuse_v and_o excuse_v not_o 2_o 292_o b_o socrates_n his_o meaning_n in_o condemn_v himself_o of_o ignorance_n in_o all_o thing_n 2_o 541_o b_o 548_o b_o of_o two_o kind_n of_o ignorance_n incident_a unto_o man_n the_o one_o have_v repentance_n follow_v it_o the_o other_o not_o 2_o 286_o a_o im._n image_n the_o definition_n of_o a_o image_n with_o the_o matter_n the_o form_n and_o end_n of_o the_o same_o â_o 332_o b_o 334_o a_o it_o be_v among_o those_o thing_n which_o appertain_v to_o quality_n 2_o 333_o b_o daniel_n example_n wrongful_o allege_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o image_n worship_v and_o why_o he_o be_v not_o cast_v into_o the_o furnace_n with_o his_o fellow_n 2_o 319_o b_o 320_o a_o the_o papist_n confute_v for_o say_v that_o they_o worship_v not_o the_o image_n but_o the_o thing_n signify_v 2_o 350_o ab_fw-la of_o the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o man_n according_a to_o error_n and_o according_a to_o truth_n 1_n 29_o a_o 12_o b_o 123._o 124._o 125_o a_o 4_o â71_n b_o 172_o a_o 223b_fw-la 612_o b_o to_o swerve_v from_o the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v sin_n two_o 576_o a_o that_o a_o woman_n be_v and_o be_v not_o the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o after_o what_o manner_n 1_o 124_o a_o christ_n the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o how_o 2_o 615_o b_o 1_o 124_o a_o how_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n be_v begin_v in_o we_o 3_o 10_o b_o in_o what_o respect_n it_o may_v and_o may_v not_o be_v make_v 2_o 340_o b_o crucify_a upon_o the_o cross_n 2_o 354_o b_o 355_o a_o paint_v with_o ass_n ear_n in_o despite_n 2_o 341_o b_o what_o have_v be_v feign_v of_o the_o same_o paint_a in_o a_o cloth_n etc._n etc._n 2_o 335_o a_o image_n image_n distinguish_v 4_o 103_o a_o they_o may_v have_v a_o good_a use_n and_o what_o that_o be_v two_o 355_o ab_fw-la into_o what_o grove_n error_n man_n fall_v by_o worship_v of_o they_o 2_o 336_o a_o altar_n be_v not_o to_o be_v erect_v unto_o they_o 2_o 351_o a_o what_o it_o be_v to_o worship_v they_o 2_o 344_o b_o diverse_a worthy_a man_n that_o destroy_v and_o deface_v they_o 2_o 351_o ab_fw-la for_o what_o thing_n the_o use_n of_o they_o be_v good_a 2_o 341_o b_o the_o worship_v of_o they_o reckon_v amongst_o the_o
there_o always_o happen_v some_o error_n as_o how_o 2_o 242_o b_o god_n do_v govern_v it_o and_o after_o what_o sort_n he_o govern_v the_o same_o 1_n 184_o b_o creature_n suffer_v punishment_n together_o with_o we_o when_o we_o sinne._n 2_o 250_o b_o how_o the_o revenge_n of_o adam_n sin_n in_o we_o must_v be_v understand_v 2_o 234_o ab_fw-la howe_n ample_o the_o word_n sin_n be_v to_o betake_v 2_o 241_o b_o the_o soul_n be_v create_v without_o sin_n and_o how_o it_o become_v sinful_a 2_o 246_o a_o voluntary_a if_o we_o speak_v of_o actual_a sin_n but_o not_o voluntary_a if_o we_o speak_v of_o original_a sin_n 1_o 198_o a_o the_o nature_n of_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o concupiscence_n prove_v against_o pighius_fw-la 2_o 220_o b_o whether_o christ_n in_o remove_v thereof_o remoove_v death_n 3_o 315_o a_o it_o remoove_v we_o from_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o how_o miserable_a we_o be_v become_v thereby_o 1_n 32a_o sin_n take_v place_n in_o the_o mind_n only_o 1_n 180_o b_o against_o three_o several_a opinion_n of_o man_n maintain_v god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o sinne._n 1_o 180_o ab_fw-la whether_o the_o first_o parent_n be_v dead_a straight_a way_n after_o it_o 3_o 325_o a_o god_n proper_o and_o by_o himself_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n thereof_o prove_v at_o large_a by_o p._n martyr_n 1_n 181_o a_o whether_o he_o that_o be_v guilty_a of_o one_o be_v guilty_a of_o all_o 2_o 555_o ab_fw-la diverse_a definition_n thereof_o 2_o 570_o b_o it_o may_v be_v even_o where_o notable_a virtue_n be_v 2_o 555_o ab_fw-la whether_o before_o it_o the_o woman_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o man_n 2_o 379a_o how_o sin_n arm_v our_o servant_n against_o us._n 1_o â24_n b_o who_o be_v sell_v under_o it_o 2_o 565_o a_o how_o manifold_a it_o be_v which_o be_v know_v by_o the_o law_n 2_o 575_o b_o one_o excel_v another_o 2_o 555_o a_o argument_n or_o reason_n to_o the_o number_n of_o 27._o prove_v god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n thereof_o 1_n 178_o ab_fw-la 179_o ab_fw-la 180_o a_o what_o it_o be_v 2_o 576_o a_o augustine_n definition_n thereof_o be_v doubtful_a 2_o 570_o b_o whether_o that_o of_o adam_n or_o eve_n be_v the_o gréevouser_n 2_o 490_o a_o 493_o ab_fw-la by_o what_o name_n the_o angel_n that_o be_v send_v to_o punish_v sin_n be_v call_v 1_n 120_o b_o 121_o a_o what_o remain_v thereof_o when_o it_o be_v past_a 3_o 205_o b_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n 2_o 575_o b_o how_o that_o which_o be_v sin_n become_v no_o sin_n 2_o 475_o a_o sin_n distinguish_v one_o of_o necessity_n the_o other_o of_o plenty_n 3_o 295_o b_o that_o which_o be_v only_a sin_n and_o that_o which_o be_v both_o sin_n and_o the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n 2_o 273_o a_o the_o degree_n thereof_o from_o the_o original_n to_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o same_o 2_o 363_o b_o remissible_a two_o way_n to_o be_v understand_v 2_o 272_o ab_fw-la why_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o punishment_n 2_o 273_o b_o of_o a_o kind_n thereof_o which_o though_o it_o be_v do_v by_o compulsion_n yet_o it_o be_v voluntary_a 2_o 323_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o commit_v a_o less_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o a_o great_a 305_o b_o 306_o ab_fw-la it_o be_v a_o privation_n or_o want_n of_o that_o good_a thing_n which_o the_o law_n prescribe_v 2_o 271_o b_o why_o god_n require_v of_o man_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v utter_o without_o it_o 3_o 55_o a_o whether_o paul_n be_v without_o it_o as_o his_o speech_n import_v 3_o 54_o b_o christ_n die_v not_o altogether_o without_o it_o 3_o 42_o b_o 43_o a_o even_o the_o holy_a be_v subject_a unto_o sinne._n 3_o 55_o a_o who_o be_v to_o be_v repute_v without_o it_o and_o how_o 3_o 77_o b_o 78_o b_o whether_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o in_o adam_n 3_o 26_o a_o jerom_n against_o manicheus_fw-la who_o say_v that_o we_o therefore_o can_v resist_v it_o for_o that_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n create_v evil_a by_o a_o evil_a god_n two_o 274_o a_o necessity_n take_v not_o away_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o 3_o 21_o b_o remissible_a and_o irremissible_a 2_o 272_o a_o a_o examination_n of_o this_o definition_n that_o it_o be_v whatsoever_o withstand_v the_o law_n of_o god_n 2_o 271_o b_o the_o horriblenesse_n thereof_o set_v open_a 2_o 619_o b_o the_o proper_a cause_n of_o sin_n be_v inward_a to_o wit_v the_o naughty_a will_n of_o man_n 1_n 181_o a_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o death_n where_o note_v contrary_a opinion_n confute_v 2_o 246_o a_o 247_o a_o what_o the_o first_o ground_n thereof_o be_v 4_o 108_o b_o it_o lie_v asleep_a in_o infant_n say_v augustine_n and_o why_o 2_o 224_o a_o by_o adam_n as_o by_o the_o common_a root_n and_o mass_n it_o enter_v 2_o 242_o a_o the_o effect_n which_o follow_v it_o 3_o 203_o a_o the_o devil_n no_o perfect_a cause_n but_o a_o allure_a or_o persuade_v cause_n thereof_o 1_n 184_o b_o how_o by_o sin_n all_o thing_n be_v subject_a unto_o vanity_n a_o notable_a place_n 2_o 247_o b_o 248_o a_o of_o the_o guiltiness_n thereof_o or_o bond_n unto_o punishment_n 1_n 188a_o god_n be_v not_o the_o proper_a cause_n but_o the_o remooâing_n or_o prohibit_v cause_n of_o it_o and_o how_o 1_n 181_o a_o whether_o that_o of_o adam_n do_v any_o way_n depend_v of_o god_n will_n 1_o 204_o ab_fw-la a_o objection_n that_o if_o god_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n thereof_o than_o he_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o allthing_n 3_o 198_o a_o why_o god_n take_v not_o away_o sin_n since_o he_o hate_v it_o a_o excellent_a place_n teach_v by_o similitude_n 1_o 191_o b_o how_o it_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o second_o cause_n 1_n 189_o b_o it_o be_v no_o imperfection_n in_o god_n that_o he_o can_v make_v it_o and_o why_o he_o can_v make_v it_o 1_n 190_o ab_fw-la the_o proper_a and_o true_a cause_n thereof_o particular_o what_o they_o be_v 1_n 190_o b_o of_o the_o subject_n whereunto_o the_o deformity_n of_o it_o do_v clean_o 1_n 188_o ab_fw-la three_o consideration_n touch_v the_o proposition_n that_o it_o depend_v on_o god_n 1_o 188_o a_o how_o god_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o deficient_a cause_n thereof_o 1_n 187_o a_o a_o error_n that_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n unless_o it_o be_v voluntary_a 2_o 213_o b_o 214_o a_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o sacrament_n pertain_v to_o the_o first_o table_n 2_o 332_o a_o a_o reason_n why_o man_n can_v choose_v but_o sinne._n 2_o 254_o b_o whatsoever_o want_v his_o due_a perfection_n be_v sinne._n 265_o b_o death_n have_v no_o right_a where_o there_o be_v no_o sinne._n 2_o 217_o a_o the_o sin_n of_o imitation_n can_v be_v do_v away_o by_o baptism_n 2_o 216_o a_o it_o be_v only_a sin_n whereby_o we_o resist_v god_n and_o how_o general_a it_o be_v 2_o 607_o b_o inclination_n to_o sin_n and_o not_o actual_a sin_n only_o suffice_v to_o damnation_n prove_v by_o a_o similitude_n 2_o 218._o example_n of_o occasion_n of_o commit_v sin_n 1_o 185_o a_o why_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v sinne._n 2_o 227_o b_o how_o god_n offer_v occasion_n of_o sinne._n 1_o 184_o b_o 185_o a_o a_o oblation_n for_o sin_n be_v call_v sin_n 2_o 609_o a_o the_o pelagian_o say_v that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v count_v sin_n which_o can_v be_v avoid_v confute_v 2_o 239_o ab_fw-la no_o efficient_a but_o deficient_a cause_n of_o sin_n and_o what_o they_o be_v 1_n 184_o ab_fw-la a_o kind_n of_o ignorance_n in_o infant_n count_v sin_n by_o retiâius_n a_o old_a bishop_n 2_o 225_o ab_fw-la the_o error_n of_o the_o libertine_n that_o god_n do_v all_o thing_n in_o we_o and_o therefore_o sin_n be_v nothing_o 1_o 211_o a_o good_a thing_n unto_o the_o wicked_a be_v occasion_n of_o commit_v sin_n prove_v 1_n 185_o a_o how_o these_o word_n that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v count_v sin_n which_o depend_v not_o of_o election_n 2_o 2â6_n ab_fw-la a_o very_a hard_a opinion_n that_o god_n shall_v contaminate_v with_o sin_n a_o soul_n which_o as_o yet_o pertain_v not_o to_o adam_n 2_o 245_o b_o 246_o a_o the_o sin_n of_o imitation_n can_v be_v do_v away_o by_o baptism_n 2_o 216_o a_o a_o answer_n to_o a_o false_a reason_n that_o because_o child_n have_v no_o actual_a sin_n therefore_o they_o have_v no_o sin_n 2_o 239_o 239_o a_o how_o paul_n mean_v that_o every_o sin_n be_v without_o the_o body_n 2_o 469_o b_o 470_o a_o josua_n punish_v the_o child_n for_o the_o father_n sin_n contrary_a to_o the_o common_a law_n 2_o 235_o b_o sin_n and_o death_n be_v compare_v together_o as_o the_o cause_n and_o the_o effect_n two_o 244a_v augustine_n sentence_n that_o every_o sin_n be_v the_o
may_v call_v they_o all_o by_o what_o name_n he_o will_v wherefore_o the_o body_n be_v no_o let_n but_o that_o our_o first_o parent_n may_v use_v familiarity_n with_o god_n god_n sin_n remoove_v we_o from_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v sin_n that_o remoove_v we_o from_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n from_o thence_o come_v unto_o we_o the_o darkness_n blindness_n and_o ignorance_n in_o heavenly_a thing_n for_o this_o cause_n be_v we_o transform_v into_o mole_n bat_n and_o owl_n otherwise_o god_n of_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v most_o clear_a yea_o &_o the_o very_a light_n itself_o unless_o the_o fowlenes_n of_o our_o sin_n be_v set_v between_o us._n perhaps_o thou_o will_v say_v it_o have_v be_v sufficient_o declare_v already_o that_o our_o blindness_n spring_v out_o of_o sin_n but_o it_o have_v not_o be_v show_v what_o the_o cause_n be_v that_o man_n be_v so_o afraid_a at_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n yes_o hereupon_o depend_v all_o this_o matter_n for_o man_n because_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o own_o blindness_n they_o be_v swallow_v up_o with_o that_o heavenly_a light_n be_v guilty_a in_o their_o own_o conscience_n do_v fly_v from_o the_o judge_n no_o less_o mighty_a than_o just_a for_o they_o in_o such_o wise_a conceive_v of_o the_o godhead_n that_o they_o know_v that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o pureness_n and_o righteousness_n thereof_o it_o can_v abide_v nothing_o that_o be_v filthy_a and_o unclean_a wherefore_o they_o think_v that_o to_o have_v the_o presence_n of_o god_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o have_v the_o judgement_n prepare_v and_o punishment_n deserve_v present_o to_o be_v lay_v upon_o they_o 8._o gen._n 3_o 7_o and_o 8._o for_o this_o cause_n our_o first_o parent_n hide_v themselves_o immediate_o after_o they_o have_v transgress_v and_o be_v so_o great_o terrify_v at_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n that_o straightway_o they_o decree_v to_o shroud_v themselves_o among_o the_o tree_n in_o paradise_n which_o doubtless_o proceed_v of_o a_o trouble_a conscience_n see_v god_n in_o his_o own_o nature_n do_v cheer_n man_n and_o revive_v they_o as_o the_o author_n of_o all_o manner_n of_o comfort_n wherefore_o it_o be_v manifest_a enough_o that_o these_o inconvenience_n &_o terror_n have_v fall_v out_o not_o by_o any_o fault_n of_o he_o but_o by_o our_o own_o default_n wherefore_o john_n 3._o 1._o john_n 3_o 3._o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o his_o 1._o epistle_n give_v this_o wholesome_a admonition_n that_o he_o which_o hope_v to_o see_v god_n as_o he_o be_v shall_v prepare_v himself_o thereunto_o by_o purifieng_v himself_o even_o as_o he_o be_v clean_a and_o pure_a the_o five_o chapter_n of_o dream_n chief_o out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o judge_n the_o 7._o chapter_n vers_fw-la 13._o the_o jew_n seem_v to_o make_v three_o sort_n of_o dream_n 10._o three_o sort_n of_o dream_n out_o of_o gen_n 28_o verse_n 10._o the_o first_o they_o account_v altogether_o natural_a the_o second_o mere_a divine_a as_o when_o one_o be_v cast_v into_o a_o sleep_n by_o god_n and_o in_o the_o same_o be_v warn_v of_o thing_n secret_a and_o hide_a as_o we_o know_v be_v do_v in_o the_o first_o man_n adam_n 18._o gen._n 2_o 18._o when_o eve_n be_v frame_v out_o of_o his_o side_n for_o the_o lord_n cast_v he_o into_o a_o slumber_n and_o therein_o instruct_v he_o of_o the_o conjunction_n between_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n the_o same_o we_o know_v be_v do_v to_o abraham_n when_o as_o god_n cast_v he_o into_o a_o sleep_n in_o the_o midst_n 12._o gen._n 15_o 12._o between_o the_o piece_n of_o flesh_n and_o tell_v he_o what_o shall_v happen_v unto_o his_o seed_n many_o year_n after_o the_o three_o sort_n of_o dream_n be_v mix_v of_o they_o both_o and_o be_v common_a with_o the_o prophet_n when_o natural_a sleep_n come_v upon_o they_o but_o yet_o god_n be_v present_a with_o they_o in_o their_o sleep_n and_o instruct_v they_o of_o thing_n to_o come_v of_o which_o sort_n be_v that_o of_o jacob_n 11._o gen._n 28_o 11._o about_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o ladder_n and_o see_v we_o purpose_v to_o speak_v somewhat_o large_o of_o dream_n 15._o in_o judg._n 7_o verse_n 13._o look_v in_o 1._o sam._n 28_o verse_n 15._o we_o will_v first_o see_v what_o may_v be_v say_v of_o they_o by_o natural_a reason_n and_o secondlie_o how_o much_o must_v be_v attribute_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n concern_v the_o first_o aristotle_n hypocrates_n galen_n author_n ethnic_n author_n and_o diverse_a other_o famous_a philosopher_n have_v write_v much_o and_o among_o other_o aristotle_n in_o his_o little_a book_n de_fw-fr divinatione_fw-la per_fw-la sommium_fw-la if_o that_o be_v he_o and_o yet_o no_o doubt_n but_o it_o be_v both_o learned_o and_o clarklie_o write_v first_o say_v that_o this_o kind_n of_o divination_n by_o dream_n be_v not_o utterlie_o to_o be_v reject_v because_o common_o very_o much_o be_v attribute_v thereunto_o and_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v receive_v in_o a_o manner_n of_o all_o man_n be_v never_o altogether_o false_a and_o he_o say_v moreover_o that_o there_o be_v many_o dream_n whereof_o there_o may_v be_v yield_v a_o very_a fit_a and_o convenient_a reason_n which_o as_o experience_n teach_v deceive_v not_o man_n but_o fall_v out_o true_a therefore_o it_o be_v not_o well_o to_o despise_v all_o manner_n of_o divination_n by_o dream_n yet_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o be_v well_o advise_v in_o admit_v of_o they_o see_v it_o be_v a_o very_a hard_a matter_n to_o show_v the_o cause_n of_o they_o for_o that_o nature_n on_o this_o behalf_n work_v most_o obscure_o and_o aristotle_n do_v not_o think_v god_n aristotle_n do_v not_o think_v that_o dream_n be_v send_v by_o god_n that_o vision_n be_v send_v by_o god_n say_v that_o if_o they_o be_v send_v by_o he_o he_o will_v give_v they_o to_o such_o as_o be_v good_a and_o wise_a man_n but_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n that_o it_o be_v otherwise_o for_o the_o foolish_a and_o simple_a do_v many_o time_n prevail_v in_o this_o faculty_n moreover_o the_o brute_n beast_n have_v their_o dream_n but_o who_o will_v say_v that_o god_n give_v they_o the_o power_n of_o divination_n neither_o be_v vision_n occupy_v about_o the_o fantasy_n of_o man_n in_o their_o sleep_v to_o this_o end_n that_o thereby_o they_o shall_v prognosticate_v thing_n to_o come_v and_o beside_o if_o god_n do_v send_v such_o vision_n he_o will_v rather_o do_v it_o in_o the_o day_n time_n that_o man_n may_v with_o more_o diligence_n consider_v of_o they_o neither_o can_v we_o easy_o judge_v why_o he_o have_v choose_v the_o night_n for_o such_o a_o purpose_n and_o to_o conclude_v see_v god_n be_v not_o envious_a he_o will_v not_o so_o obscure_o warn_v they_o who_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o thing_n to_o come_v but_o he_o will_v show_v those_o thing_n cléerelie_o &_o plain_o but_o dream_n be_v so_o dark_a and_o obscure_a that_o for_o the_o interpretation_n of_o they_o man_n must_v repair_v to_o prophet_n and_o soothsaier_n these_o thing_n be_v gather_v in_o a_o manner_n out_o of_o aristotle_n whereby_o he_o whole_o transfer_v this_o thing_n from_o god_n unto_o nature_n as_o though_o the_o cause_n of_o dream_n shall_v be_v draw_v from_o thence_o but_o of_o those_o thing_n i_o will_v entreat_v more_o when_o i_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o dream_n according_a to_o divinity_n i_o will_v now_o declare_v what_o he_o have_v of_o this_o matter_n 2_o dream_n say_v he_o be_v either_o sign_n or_o cause_n or_o else_o they_o be_v chanceablie_o and_o by_o fortune_n apply_v to_o those_o thing_n whereunto_o they_o be_v refer_v and_o every_o one_o of_o these_o three_o kind_n be_v thus_o expound_v dream_n a_o peripatetical_a explication_n of_o dream_n he_o say_v that_o dream_n be_v sometime_o sign_n of_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o body_n or_o mind_n for_o by_o they_o be_v declare_v very_o many_o time_n what_o humour_n do_v abound_v bear_v rule_n &_o do_v most_o of_o all_o offend_v in_o man_n body_n move_v according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o humour_n so_o be_v likeness_n move_v for_o show_v &_o likeness_n of_o thing_n be_v raise_v according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o nature_n &_o temperature_n of_o humour_n prevail_a in_o the_o body_n where_o choler_n abound_v there_o flame_n fire_n coal_n lighten_v bralling_n and_o such_o like_a be_v see_v if_o that_o melancholy_n have_v the_o upper_a hand_n than_o smoke_n great_a darkness_n all_o black_a and_o ill_a favour_a thing_n dead_a corpse_n and_o such_o like_a present_v themselves_o but_o phlegm_n raise_v up_o the_o likeness_n of_o shower_n reins_n flood_n water_n hail_n i_o shall_z &_o whatsoever_o else_o have_v plenty_n of_o moisture_n join_v with_o coldness_n by_o blood_n be_v stir_v up_o goodly_a sight_n clear_a white_a and_o
consider_v our_o mind_n and_o determination_n the_o which_o oftentimes_o he_o allow_v but_o on_o the_o other_o part_n he_o have_v before_o his_o eye_n the_o order_n of_o his_o providence_n the_o which_o by_o all_o mean_v he_o will_v to_o be_v sound_a and_o steadfast_a therefore_o he_o sometime_o inspire_v in_o our_o heart_n thing_n which_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n shall_v be_v good_a yet_o for_o all_o that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v bring_v to_o a_o end_n because_o they_o serve_v not_o to_o the_o order_n of_o his_o providence_n so_o we_o say_v that_o the_o prayer_n of_o christ_n wherein_o he_o desire_v to_o escape_v death_n please_v god_n 39_o mat._n 26_o 39_o although_o he_o will_v not_o fulfil_v the_o same_o neither_o do_v christ_n with_o a_o lewd_a or_o corrupt_a will_n but_o with_o a_o righteous_a and_o good_a will_n will_v that_o which_o he_o desire_v but_o the_o providence_n and_o predestination_n of_o god_n remain_v immooveable_a whereby_o he_o have_v decree_v that_o at_o the_o very_a same_o time_n he_o shall_v be_v fasten_v upon_o the_o cross_n for_o our_o salvation_n wherefore_o we_o must_v religious_o and_o godly_a meditate_v many_o thing_n but_o when_o we_o understand_v that_o god_n will_v not_o have_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v our_o cogitation_n must_v be_v apply_v to_o his_o will_n but_o to_o entreat_v of_o this_o thing_n with_o more_o perspicuity_n and_o plainness_n let_v we_o first_o of_o all_o determine_v that_o man_n will_n ought_v after_o some_o sort_n to_o be_v make_v conformable_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n for_o otherwise_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v right_a for_o that_o which_o be_v right_o must_v agree_v with_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o of_o necessity_n that_o what_o god_n will_v have_v to_o be_v do_v shall_v please_v we_o all_o manner_n of_o way_n because_o it_o be_v requisite_a sometime_o that_o the_o same_o shall_v displease_v we_o and_o that_o right_o and_o without_o sin_n which_o thing_n the_o better_a to_o understand_v it_o shall_v be_v show_v by_o example_n moses_n hear_v 32._o exo._n 32_o 32._o that_o god_n will_v root_v out_o his_o people_n he_o otherwise_o will_v and_o sorrow_v excéedinglie_o and_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v he_o resist_v it_o by_o prayer_n also_o samuel_n know_v that_o saul_n be_v reject_v 35._o 1._o sam._n 15_o verse_n 35._o yet_o he_o do_v not_o forthwith_o settle_v his_o mind_n upon_o that_o will_n of_o god_n but_o he_o heavilie_o take_v the_o fall_n of_o that_o king_n &_o for_o that_o cause_n he_o weep_v along_o time_n 6._o jerem._n 28_o 6._o and_o jeremie_n understand_v that_o jerusalem_n shall_v be_v destroy_v and_o he_o lamentablie_o bewail_v the_o ruin_n thereof_o us._n whether_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n contrary_a unto_o the_o decree_n of_o god_n know_v unto_o us._n here_o some_o say_v that_o the_o decree_n or_o pleasure_n of_o god_n be_v either_o know_v to_o we_o or_o else_o unknowen_a when_o it_o shall_v be_v manifest_a unto_o we_o we_o ought_v to_o bend_v our_o will_n unto_o he_o but_o if_o it_o be_v hide_v from_o we_o we_o have_v a_o law_n reveal_v which_o we_o may_v safe_o follow_v indeed_o these_o man_n say_v somewhat_o but_o yet_o this_o say_n of_o they_o do_v not_o full_o satisfy_v for_o jeremie_n and_o christ_n know_v very_o well_o that_o by_o the_o decree_n and_o will_n of_o god_n jerusalem_n shall_v be_v utterlie_o destroy_v yet_o nevertheless_o they_o weep_v for_o the_o cause_n and_o in_o weep_v they_o sin_v not_o moreover_o it_o come_v oftentimes_o to_o pass_v that_o even_o by_o the_o very_a work_n of_o god_n we_o know_v his_o will_n wherein_o yet_o we_o must_v not_o straightwaie_o repose_v ourselves_o for_o sometime_o it_o happen_v that_o the_o son_n see_v the_o father_n die_v which_o son_n if_o he_o be_v godly_a he_o understand_v withal_o that_o god_n will_v be_v that_o he_o shall_v die_v shall_v he_o not_o therefore_o be_v sorrowful_a and_o desire_v that_o his_o life_n may_v still_o be_v prolong_v what_o shall_v then_o be_v do_v when_o such_o thing_n do_v happen_v very_o we_o must_v consider_v what_o be_v meet_v for_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o what_o be_v convenient_a for_o our_o will_n true_o it_o agree_v with_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v work_v according_a to_o his_o goodness_n and_o righteousness_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v benefit_n the_o good_a and_o punish_v the_o wicked_a and_o it_o be_v fit_a for_o our_o will_n that_o it_o shall_v do_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v agreeable_a thereunto_o also_o what_o thing_n be_v agreeable_a to_o our_o nature_n we_o shall_v perceive_v by_o the_o constitution_n thereof_o that_o be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o god_n and_o otherwhile_o also_o by_o a_o inward_a inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o thus_o albeit_o we_o do_v in_o very_a deed_n disagree_v from_o the_o will_n of_o god_n yet_o as_o touch_v the_o form_n and_o efficient_a cause_n we_o agree_v with_o the_o same_o for_o as_o much_o as_o god_n sometime_o will_v two_o thing_n at_o once_o namely_o to_o punish_v a_o city_n a_o nation_n and_o our_o parent_n and_o also_o that_o we_o for_o that_o cause_n shall_v mourn_v neither_o be_v these_o thing_n repugnant_a one_o with_o another_o in_o time_n past_o god_n will_v sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n to_o be_v destroy_v which_o thing_n he_o declare_v unto_o abraham_n abraham_n be_v many_o way_n sorrowful_a and_o he_o entreat_v for_o they_o which_o shall_v be_v destroy_v neither_o be_v we_o to_o think_v that_o abraham_n pour_v out_o his_o prayer_n without_o the_o spiritual_a inspiration_n of_o god_n consider_v in_o gen._n 18_o verse_n 22._o the_o thing_n that_o we_o know_v god_n will_v be_v two_o way_n consider_v 44_o furthermore_n to_o these_o thing_n this_o also_o must_v be_v add_v namely_o that_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o know_v that_o god_n will_v may_v be_v two_o way_n consider_v first_o simple_o and_o absolute_o in_o which_o respect_n we_o must_v do_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o our_o will_n or_o nature_n right_o institute_v or_o else_o we_o must_v behold_v they_o with_o a_o just_a comparison_n unto_o the_o divine_a providence_n whereunto_o if_o we_o confer_v they_o they_o must_v whole_o rest_v thereupon_o because_o as_o augustine_n in_o his_o enchiridion_n say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o wicked_a thing_n to_o strive_v against_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n bréefelie_o it_o be_v our_o part_n in_o all_o thing_n to_o will_v that_o which_o god_n will_v we_o shall_v will_v and_o that_o to_o a_o right_a end_n that_o be_v with_o a_o good_a purpose_n or_o as_o man_n common_o speak_v with_o a_o right_a intent_n although_o as_o touch_v the_o matter_n it_o behoove_v not_o that_o that_o shall_v always_o like_v we_o which_o seem_v meet_a unto_o god_n but_o if_o thou_o demand_v what_o those_o thing_n be_v which_o agree_v with_o our_o nature_n well_o institute_v i_o answer_v thing_n holy_a honest_a and_o just_a wherefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v to_o the_o philippian_n 8._o phili._n 4_o 8._o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v true_a honest_a just_a pure_a profitable_a of_o good_a report_n if_o there_o be_v any_o virtue_n or_o if_o there_o be_v any_o praise_n those_o thing_n think_v upon_o and_o do_v and_o therefore_o david_n when_o he_o determine_v to_o build_v the_o temple_n 1._o 2._o sam._n 7_o 1._o although_o god_n will_v not_o have_v it_o do_v yet_o be_v david_n will_n allow_v as_o just_a and_o right_o our_o of_o doubt_n the_o good_a king_n know_v that_o god_n be_v willing_a to_o have_v a_o temple_n build_v into_o he_o and_o he_o understand_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v at_o jerusalem_n wherefore_o his_o will_n dissent_v not_o from_o godliness_n moreover_o see_v he_o be_v a_o child_n of_o god_n and_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o his_o spirit_n no_o doubt_n but_o god_n inspire_v he_o with_o that_o will_n neither_o must_v we_o mark_v what_o god_n do_v outward_o but_o consider_v what_o he_o do_v within_o we_o and_o then_o we_o must_v follow_v that_o he_o work_v in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o perform_v 13._o phili._n 2_o 13._o indeed_o not_o always_o a_o perfection_n of_o the_o work_n or_o a_o will_n that_o be_v perfect_a and_o sound_a neither_o be_v these_o two_o always_o so_o join_v together_o as_o he_o work_v at_o once_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o perform_v for_o sometime_o he_o only_o work_v to_o will_n and_o grant_v not_o that_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o will_v shall_v come_v to_o effect_v god_n both_o our_o will_n and_o understanding_n must_v be_v conform_v to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o not_o only_o our_o will_n ought_v to_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n but_o also_o our_o understanding_n for_o we_o ought_v to_o understand_v those_o thing_n only_o
nothing_o either_o past_a or_o to_o come_v but_o we_o allege_v nothing_o strange_a from_o the_o scripture_n paul_n say_v that_o god_n have_v predestinate_v we_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lay_v 4._o ephes_n 1_o 4._o if_o they_o believe_v not_o we_o let_v they_o look_v upon_o the_o prophecy_n jacob_n foreshowed_n that_o david_n shall_v be_v king_n 10._o gen_n 49_o 10._o how_o may_v this_o have_v be_v unless_o the_o will_n of_o god_n have_v respect_n unto_o the_o time_n to_o come_v but_o paul_n in_o the_o 11._o to_o the_o roman_n say_v the_o gift_n and_o call_n of_o god_n be_v without_o repentance_n but_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o scripture_n must_v not_o be_v more_o large_o understand_v than_o the_o place_n itself_o wherein_o they_o be_v write_v may_v bear_v for_o otherwise_o we_o may_v be_v soon_o lead_v to_o error_n paul_n entreat_v in_o that_o place_n of_o the_o covenant_n which_o god_n make_v with_o the_o jew_n and_o say_v that_o these_o promise_n can_v be_v void_a and_o that_o it_o can_v be_v but_o that_o many_o of_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v at_o length_n convert_v unto_o christ_n because_o the_o gift_n and_o call_n of_o god_n be_v without_o repentance_n although_o other_o understand_v that_o place_n as_o touch_v the_o gift_n which_o depend_v upon_o the_o eternal_a predestination_n of_o god_n for_o that_o they_o be_v sure_a and_o steadfast_a indeed_o other_o gift_n whether_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o justice_n of_o this_o life_n or_o to_o thing_n which_o be_v temporal_a may_v both_o be_v give_v and_o take_v away_o for_o there_o be_v many_o who_o have_v once_o beléeve_v do_v afterward_o fall_v to_o destruction_n theodoretus_n say_v gift_n be_v without_o repentance_n if_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o be_v consider_v but_o if_o man_n fall_v from_o they_o and_o be_v deprive_v of_o they_o the_o fault_n be_v their_o own_o how_o it_o can_v be_v say_v to_o saul_n that_o his_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v establish_v for_o ever_o the_o same_o be_v before_o appoint_v to_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n 4_o but_o let_v we_o see_v how_o samuel_n say_v 13._o in_o 1._o sam._n 13_o vers_n 13._o the_o lord_n will_v have_v establish_v thy_o kingdom_n for_o ever_o for_o how_o can_v the_o kingdom_n have_v remain_v for_o ever_o in_o the_o family_n of_o saul_n see_v it_o be_v foretold_v before_o of_o jacob_n that_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n and_o that_o god_n decree_v from_o all_o eternity_n that_o he_o will_v give_v the_o kingly_a right_n unto_o the_o house_n of_o david_n here_o we_o may_v not_o answer_v that_o god_n indeed_o have_v so_o decree_v at_o the_o first_o but_o that_o he_o afterward_o change_v his_o mind_n for_o god_n be_v not_o change_v rabbi_n levi_n ben_n gerson_n think_v that_o this_o hebrew_n word_n adolam_n signify_v not_o eternity_n but_o some_o certain_a space_n of_o time_n and_o that_o so_o saul_n may_v reign_v according_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o that_o word_n adolam_n that_o be_v for_o a_o long_a time_n and_o afterward_o that_o david_n may_v succeed_v he_o but_o this_o judgement_n i_o do_v not_o much_o allow_v for_o david_n be_v now_o not_o only_o bear_v but_o be_v also_o of_o ripe_a age_n so_o as_o saul_n may_v not_o reign_v for_o any_o long_a time_n but_o that_o god_n be_v not_o change_v all_o man_n confess_v yet_o all_o man_n not_o after_o one_o and_o the_o same_o manner_n for_o some_o say_v that_o we_o feign_v that_o god_n do_v predestinate_a somewhat_o from_o everlasting_a which_o yet_o he_o execute_v afterward_o that_o say_v they_o be_v absurd_a for_o all_o thing_n be_v present_a unto_o god_n howbeit_o we_o say_v not_o that_o god_n be_v move_v for_o a_o time_n but_o his_o counsel_n be_v from_o everlasting_a but_o this_o we_o say_v that_o when_o a_o thing_n be_v come_v to_o pass_v he_o do_v not_o appoint_v any_o new_a counsel_n paul_n say_v 4._o ephes_n 1_o 4._o that_o he_o be_v choose_v from_o his_o mother_n womb_n and_o that_o we_o be_v predestinate_v before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n these_o thing_n no_o doubt_n be_v everlasting_a in_o god_n but_o in_o the_o thing_n themselves_o they_o be_v predestinate_a long_o before_o they_o be_v make_v but_o if_o they_o will_v cavil_n as_o touch_v predestination_n we_o will_v object_v prophecy_n in_o the_o which_o they_o can_v cavil_v when_o they_o have_v do_v neither_o good_a nor_o evil_a 2._o rom._n 9_o 11._o malac._n 1_o 2._o that_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o election_n may_v abide_v it_o be_v say_v jacob_n have_v i_o love_v but_o esau_n have_v i_o hate_v so_o as_o touch_v the_o kingdom_n to_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n it_o be_v foreshowed_n long_o before_o david_n be_v bear_v who_o first_o reign_v in_o that_o tribe_n how_o then_o do_v samuel_n say_v 13._o 1._o sa._n 13_o 13._o god_n will_v have_v establish_v thy_o kingdom_n for_o ever_o it_o be_v a_o potential_a manner_n of_o speak_v but_o what_o potency_n be_v this_o there_o be_v also_o many_o such_o form_n of_o speak_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 8._o 1_o cor._n 2_o 8._o if_o they_o have_v know_v say_v paul_n they_o will_v never_o have_v crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n but_o it_o be_v predestinate_v from_o the_o beginning_n that_o christ_n shall_v die_v so_o be_v they_o common_o wont_v to_o say_v if_o adam_n have_v not_o sin_v christ_n have_v not_o suffer_v but_o let_v we_o pass_v over_o those_o thing_n and_o let_v we_o examine_v that_o sentence_n which_o we_o have_v in_o hand_n whereby_o the_o same_o be_v well_o understand_v all_o other_o like_o may_v be_v understand_v 5_o and_o first_o let_v we_o see_v whether_o the_o predestination_n of_o god_n touch_v david_n be_v the_o cause_n why_o saul_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o there_o be_v two_o cause_n of_o that_o cast_v out_o one_o the_o provoke_a of_o god_n to_o wit_n the_o sin_n of_o saul_n and_o the_o other_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n but_o provoke_v &_o stir_v up_o by_o sin_n to_o which_o of_o these_o cause_n therefore_o shall_v we_o rather_o ascribe_v the_o cast_n out_o certeinlie_o unto_o sin_n for_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o he_o which_o have_v behave_v himself_o ill_o shall_v be_v remoove_v from_o his_o place_n therefore_o oseas_n say_v of_o the_o o_o israel_n come_v thy_o evil_n indeed_o we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v after_o some_o manner_n the_o cause_n but_o the_o true_a and_o certain_a cause_n be_v sin_n also_o another_o no_o small_a difference_n it_o shall_v be_v if_o we_o compare_v our_o sin_n unto_o the_o punishment_n and_o our_o good_a work_n unto_o the_o reward_n 18._o that_o sin_n deserve_v puââ¦shment_n ãâã_d good_a ãâ¦ã_o no_o ãâ¦ã_o rom._n â_o 18._o for_o our_o sin_n deserve_v punishment_n but_o good_a work_n deserve_v no_o reward_n why_o so_o will_v thou_o say_v because_o there_o be_v a_o proportion_n between_o sin_n &_o punishment_n but_o between_o good_a work_n and_o reward_n there_o be_v none_o for_o the_o passion_n of_o this_o life_n be_v not_o worthy_a of_o the_o glory_n to_o come_v which_o shall_v be_v reveal_v unto_o us._n moreover_o ill_a work_n be_v proper_o of_o ourselves_o but_o good_a work_n be_v not_o but_o of_o god_n wherefore_o eternal_a death_n may_v be_v call_v the_o reward_n of_o sin_n but_o contrariwise_o eternal_a life_n can_v be_v call_v the_o reward_n of_o our_o righteousness_n so_o that_o we_o say_v that_o the_o sin_n of_o saul_n be_v the_o true_a cause_n why_o he_o fall_v from_o the_o kingdom_n but_o his_o good_a work_n can_v never_o have_v be_v a_o cause_n for_o he_o to_o have_v continue_v but_o whether_o do_v this_o counsel_n and_o decree_v lay_v a_o necessity_n upon_o saul_n hereof_o there_o be_v no_o absolute_a necessity_n in_o he_o for_o as_o touch_v the_o inward_a original_n of_o sin_v that_o have_v saul_n in_o himself_o and_o that_o which_o he_o do_v he_o do_v it_o willing_o and_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n indeed_o god_n decree_v the_o kingdom_n unto_o david_n and_o to_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n but_o yet_o so_o as_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v first_o take_v from_o he_o justly_o and_o if_o god_n foresee_v that_o david_n shall_v be_v king_n he_o also_o foresee_v the_o sin_n of_o saul_n wherefore_o he_o see_v the_o one_o thing_n and_o the_o other_o both_o that_o the_o one_o shall_v sin_v and_o the_o other_o shall_v reign_v in_o this_o order_n there_o be_v no_o sin_n commit_v by_o god_n true_a indeed_o it_o be_v that_o god_n may_v in_o such_o sort_n have_v punish_v saul_n as_o he_o will_v not_o take_v the_o kingdom_n from_o he_o for_o he_o many_o way_n punish_v the_o posterity_n of_o david_n when_o
think_v that_o this_o concupiscence_n which_o he_o say_v be_v original_a sin_n be_v voluntary_a he_o will_v answer_v that_o it_o may_v be_v call_v voluntary_a because_o the_o sin_n commit_v by_o our_o first_o parent_n be_v voluntary_a but_o in_o we_o it_o can_v be_v say_v voluntary_a because_o we_o have_v not_o take_v it_o upon_o we_o by_o our_o own_o choice_n unless_o perhaps_o it_o may_v be_v so_o call_v augustine_n pighius_fw-la against_o augustine_n for_o that_o it_o be_v not_o by_o violence_n put_v into_o us._n against_o this_o opinion_n pighius_fw-la inveigh_v for_o thus_o he_o say_v if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n corrupt_a man_n nature_n it_o behoove_v such_o a_o natural_a effect_n to_o be_v in_o sin_n for_o there_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n at_o all_o in_o that_o first_o transgression_n that_o have_v a_o property_n to_o corrupt_v nature_n more_o than_o other_o sin_n have_v wherefore_o it_o shall_v be_v necessary_a to_o confess_v that_o our_o nature_n be_v corrupt_v not_o only_o by_o the_o fault_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n but_o also_o by_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o our_o progenitor_n which_o thing_n seem_v very_o absurd_a unto_o pighius_fw-la that_o we_o shall_v be_v so_o much_o more_o corrupt_a than_o other_o as_o we_o be_v late_a bear_v than_o they_o 10_o but_o this_o chief_a point_n to_o wit_n whether_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o parent_n be_v derive_v from_o one_o to_o another_o unto_o the_o posterity_n i_o will_v for_o this_o time_n omit_v and_o will_v speak_v thereof_o towards_o the_o end_n so_o much_o as_o shall_v be_v think_v meet_a in_o the_o mean_a while_o i_o deny_v that_o which_o this_o man_n take_v for_o a_o ground_n namely_o that_o corruption_n be_v the_o natural_a effect_n of_o sin_n sin_n corruption_n be_v no_o natural_a effect_n of_o sin_n for_o the_o reason_n thereof_o proceed_v rather_o of_o divine_a justice_n by_o which_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o heavenly_a gift_n wherewithal_o man_n be_v endue_v before_o his_o fall_n be_v remoove_v from_o he_o when_o he_o have_v sin_v and_o this_o withdraw_a of_o grace_n proceed_v of_o god_n justice_n although_o the_o blame_n must_v be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o transgression_n of_o the_o first_o man_n lest_o thou_o shall_v straitwaie_o say_v accord_n grace_n be_v withdraw_v corruption_n follow_v of_o his_o own_o accord_n that_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n for_o when_o he_o have_v once_o withdraw_v his_o gift_n wherewith_o he_o beautify_a man_n forthwith_o ensue_v vice_n and_o corruption_n of_o their_o own_o accord_n the_o which_o before_o be_v strange_a from_o the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o man_n this_o man_n demand_v how_o sin_n can_v have_v the_o power_n to_o corrupt_v man_n nature_n whether_o by_o mean_n of_o privation_n or_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o matter_n or_o subject_n of_o privation_n but_o by_o mean_n of_o privation_n he_o think_v it_o unpossible_a to_o be_v for_o that_o be_v nothing_o can_v work_v nothing_o neither_o that_o it_o can_v be_v by_o reason_n of_o that_o action_n which_o be_v subject_a unto_o privation_n as_o be_v the_o wicked_a choice_n through_o the_o will_n of_o the_o first_o man_n for_o he_o say_v that_o adam_n when_o he_o do_v eat_v the_o forbid_a fruit_n desire_v not_o this_o will_n many_o thing_n follow_v man_n against_o their_o will_n neither_o be_v it_o his_o will_n to_o corrupt_v his_o own_o nature_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o posterity_n this_o be_v a_o very_a weak_a argument_n for_o oftentimes_o we_o see_v that_o many_o thing_n do_v follow_v man_n against_o their_o will_n andn_o unwares_o which_o thing_n though_o they_o will_v not_o yet_o be_v they_o join_v together_o with_o their_o action_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n they_o which_o load_n themselves_o immoderatelie_o with_o meat_n and_o drink_v do_v it_o not_o upon_o any_o such_o cause_n as_o to_o procure_v unto_o themselves_o the_o gout_n but_o the_o gout_n follow_v of_o it_o own_o accord_n even_o so_o although_o adam_n will_v not_o have_v have_v these_o thing_n happen_v yet_o when_o he_o have_v sin_v they_o happen_v of_o themselves_o but_o he_o say_v that_o see_v this_o concupiscence_n happen_v of_o a_o certain_a necessity_n of_o birth_n and_o not_o by_o choice_n or_o election_n it_o can_v have_v the_o nature_n either_o of_o a_o fault_n or_o sin_n but_o this_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o reason_n that_o he_o make_v a_o less_o &_o light_a matter_n of_o sin_n than_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v for_o he_o will_v sin_v to_o be_v voluntary_a and_o a_o thing_n speak_v do_v or_o lust_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o if_o he_o take_v the_o same_o to_o be_v iniquity_n 4._o 1._o john_n 3_o 4._o as_o john_n have_v describe_v it_o he_o shall_v perceive_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o concupiscence_n for_o it_o be_v a_o unjust_a thing_n 25._o in_o concupiscence_n be_v find_v the_o nature_n of_o sin_n look_v after_o in_o part_n 2._o place_n 2._o art_n 25._o that_o the_o body_n shall_v not_o obey_v the_o mind_n in_o honest_a thing_n &_o that_o the_o lust_n shall_v be_v at_o variance_n with_o the_o mind_n and_o seek_v to_o have_v dominion_n over_o it_o that_o reason_n shall_v strive_v against_o god_n and_o despise_v his_o commandment_n these_o thing_n be_v unjust_a come_v they_o willing_o or_o come_v they_o necessary_o doubtless_o they_o be_v sin_n but_o do_v not_o this_o pighius_fw-la which_o object_v these_o thing_n perceive_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a also_o for_o he_o to_o appoint_v that_o the_o posterity_n of_o adam_n be_v guilty_a of_o his_o sin_n and_o that_o whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o which_o thing_n be_v special_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o prophet_n ezechiel_n 20._o ezec._n 18_o 20._o the_o son_n shall_v not_o bear_v the_o father_n iniquity_n and_o the_o soul_n that_o sin_v than_o same_o shall_v die_v own_o according_a to_o pighius_fw-la child_n shall_v bear_v their_o father_n offence_n not_o their_o own_o which_o doubtless_o will_v be_v false_a if_o we_o believe_v pighius_fw-la see_v child_n do_v die_v and_o be_v guilty_a of_o eternal_a damnation_n although_o they_o have_v sin_v nothing_o at_o all_o unto_o which_o absurdity_n we_o be_v not_o drive_v which_o we_o do_v put_v in_o every_o man_n that_o be_v bear_v the_o fault_n and_o the_o cause_n wherefore_o he_o die_v and_o be_v condemn_v also_o unto_o pighius_fw-la it_o seem_v a_o reproachful_a and_o blasphemous_a thing_n against_o god_n that_o he_o suffer_v sin_n to_o be_v sow_v in_o new_a bear_v babe_n see_v they_o can_v do_v withal_o but_o be_v bear_v and_o affect_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o we_o see_v all_o other_o man_n to_o be_v bear_v and_o affect_v but_o let_v paul_n make_v answer_n to_o this_o objection_n which_o say_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n o_o man_n 20._o rom._n 9_o 20._o who_o be_v thou_o that_o make_v answer_v unto_o god_n have_v not_o the_o potter_n power_n of_o the_o clay_n to_o make_v of_o one_o lump_n one_o vessel_n to_o honour_n and_o another_o to_o dishonour_v let_v esaie_n also_o answer_v which_o say_v 9_o esaie_n 45_o 9_o that_o it_o be_v not_o convenient_a for_o one_o potsherd_v to_o dispute_v with_o another_o touch_v the_o workmanship_n of_o their_o maker_n god_n be_v not_o such_o a_o one_o as_o aught_o to_o be_v bring_v into_o order_n by_o our_o reason_n which_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v if_o we_o shall_v measure_v his_o justice_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o our_o judgement_n see_v there_o be_v no_o day_n pass_v over_o wherein_o there_o happen_v not_o somewhat_o in_o the_o government_n or_o worldly_a thing_n that_o we_o blame_v and_o that_o do_v not_o content_a and_o satisfy_v our_o own_o wisdom_n when_o i_o pray_v shall_v we_o count_v god_n to_o be_v just_a for_o who_o be_v able_a to_o declare_v the_o cause_n why_o grace_n be_v not_o so_o much_o give_v unto_o he_o which_o perish_v everlastinglie_o as_o to_o another_o which_o be_v save_v 11_o i_o know_v that_o these_o man_n have_v be_v accustom_v to_o say_v that_o god_n do_v nothing_o there_o uniustlie_o because_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o any_o law_n and_o that_o he_o distribute_v one_o and_o the_o like_a grace_n unto_o all_o man_n but_o here_o certeinlie_o humane_a wisdom_n will_v not_o stay_v itself_o for_o it_o will_v complain_v and_o say_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o deal_v alike_o towards_o all_o though_o not_o by_o the_o precept_n of_o man_n law_n yet_o by_o the_o law_n of_o his_o own_o goodness_n moreover_o what_o humane_a wisdom_n can_v see_v what_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n be_v that_o some_o be_v take_v away_o while_o they_o be_v yet_o infant_n or_o child_n lest_o afterward_o their_o heart_n shall_v be_v pervert_v with_o lewdness_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n do_v attain_v
take_v away_o and_o those_o thing_n which_o remain_v be_v not_o impute_v unto_o we_o to_o our_o eternal_a destruction_n but_o every_o thing_n ought_v to_o be_v consider_v by_o that_o which_o it_o be_v of_o itself_o wherefore_o if_o it_o be_v demand_v of_o we_o us._n that_o which_o remain_v after_o regeneration_n be_v sin_n but_o be_v not_o impute_v to_o us._n whether_o it_o be_v sin_n that_o remain_v in_o the_o person_n regenerate_v we_o will_v answer_v it_o be_v sin_n but_o and_o if_o thou_o shall_v at_o any_o time_n read_v that_o it_o be_v not_o sin_n that_o thou_o must_v understand_v to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o guiltiness_n of_o sin_n but_o of_o this_o matter_n we_o will_v speak_v more_o at_o large_a in_o another_o place_n 5._o look_v part_n 2_o place_n 15_o art_n 5._o but_o at_o the_o time_n of_o death_n this_o kind_n of_o sin_n shall_v altogether_o be_v abolish_v for_o in_o the_o bless_a resurrection_n we_o shall_v have_v a_o new_a make_v body_n and_o a_o body_n make_v fit_a for_o eternal_a felicity_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n while_o we_o live_v here_o our_o old_a man_n and_o natural_a corruption_n do_v continual_o pine_v away_o that_o final_o at_o the_o time_n of_o death_n it_o cease_v to_o be_v at_o all_o now_o have_v we_o see_v these_o three_o thing_n how_o original_a sin_n be_v derive_v whereby_o it_o be_v take_v away_o and_o what_o we_o be_v to_o determine_v touch_v the_o remnant_n of_o the_o same_o 33_o now_o let_v we_o speak_v of_o the_o punishment_n sin_n what_o punishment_n be_v for_o original_a sin_n some_o of_o the_o schoole-divines_a think_v the_o same_o shall_v be_v without_o feel_v the_o pelagian_o judge_v that_o such_o shall_v only_o be_v banish_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o appoint_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o but_o pighius_fw-la add_v this_o also_o that_o those_o shall_v be_v bless_v with_o a_o certain_a natural_a happiness_n which_o die_v have_v but_o this_o sin_n only_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n with_o all_o their_o hart_n with_o all_o their_o mind_n and_o with_o all_o their_o strength_n and_o shall_v set_v forth_o his_o name_n and_o praise_n and_o although_o he_o dare_v not_o teach_v these_o thing_n for_o any_o certainty_n yet_o he_o allow_v they_o as_o very_o likely_a but_o augustine_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la ad_fw-la petrum_fw-la and_o elsewhere_o not_o once_o adjudge_v young_a infant_n to_o hellfire_n if_o they_o so_o die_v not_o regenerate_v and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v seem_v to_o favour_v his_o part_n for_o in_o the_o last_o judgement_n there_o shall_v be_v but_o only_o a_o double_a sentence_n pronounce_v there_o be_v no_o three_o place_n appoint_v between_o the_o save_a and_o condemn_v the_o papist_n also_o notwithstanding_o that_o they_o think_v there_o shall_v be_v a_o purgatory_n until_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n yet_o do_v not_o appoint_v any_o mean_a place_n between_o both_o after_o that_o day_n and_o it_o be_v write_v evident_o that_o they_o which_o believe_v not_o in_o christ_n 36._o john_n 3_o 36._o not_o only_o shall_v not_o have_v eternal_a life_n but_o also_o that_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n rest_v upon_o they_o 3._o ephes_n 2_o 3._o and_o while_o we_o be_v enemy_n unto_o christ_n we_o be_v call_v the_o child_n of_o wrath_n and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o god_n do_v punish_v those_o with_o who_o he_o be_v angry_a we_o will_v therefore_o say_v with_o augustine_n and_o with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o they_o must_v be_v punish_v but_o of_o the_o kind_n and_o manner_n of_o punishment_n we_o be_v able_a to_o define_v nothing_o but_o that_o whereas_o there_o be_v diverse_a sort_n of_o punishment_n in_o hell_n for_o so_o the_o scripture_n affirm_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o some_o than_o for_o othersome_a it_o be_v credible_a concern_v these_o that_o see_v unto_o original_a corruption_n they_o join_v not_o actual_a sin_n they_o shall_v be_v the_o easy_o punish_v i_o always_o except_o the_o child_n of_o the_o elect_a for_o we_o doubt_v not_o to_o number_v they_o among_o the_o company_n of_o beléever_n although_o they_o as_o yet_o beléeve_v not_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o age_n even_o as_o they_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o infidel_n be_v reckon_v among_o the_o unbeléever_n although_o of_o themselves_o they_o withstand_v not_o the_o faith_n so_o as_o the_o child_n of_o the_o godly_a depart_v without_o baptism_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o covenant_n that_o god_n have_v make_v with_o their_o parent_n may_v be_v save_v if_o they_o apperteine_a to_o the_o number_n of_o such_o as_o be_v predestinate_a also_o i_o do_v except_v all_o other_o if_o any_o there_o be_v which_o by_o the_o secret_a counsel_n of_o god_n belong_v unto_o predestination_n sin_n argument_n of_o the_o pelagian_n against_o original_a sin_n 34_o now_o these_o thing_n thus_o order_v we_o will_v come_v to_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o pelagian_n whereby_o they_o think_v themselves_o able_a to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o original_a sin_n the_o first_o of_o their_o argument_n be_v that_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o god_n will_v still_o persecute_v the_o sin_n of_o adam_n see_v he_o punish_v the_o same_o sufficient_o long_a ago_o especial_o for_o that_o the_o prophet_n nahum_n say_v 9_o nahum_n 1_o 9_o say_v that_o god_n will_v not_o twice_o judge_v for_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o thing_n i_o know_v some_o do_v answer_v that_o god_n do_v not_o twice_o give_v judgement_n upon_o that_o sin_n but_o once_o only_o for_o that_o under_o one_o judgement_n he_o comprehend_v adam_n and_o all_o his_o posterity_n but_o that_o the_o matter_n may_v be_v the_o more_o plain_o declare_v i_o say_v that_o in_o every_o one_o of_o we_o so_o often_o as_o we_o be_v punish_v there_o be_v a_o cause_n why_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v punish_v and_o that_o therefore_o in_o every_o person_n be_v condemn_v not_o the_o fault_n of_o another_o similitude_n how_o be_v understand_v the_o revenge_n of_o adam_n sin_n in_o us._n a_o similitude_n but_o his_o own_o proper_a fault_n but_o and_o if_o we_o read_v that_o god_n do_v revenge_n adam_n fault_n in_o we_o that_o must_v be_v so_o understand_v because_o our_o corruption_n have_v the_o original_n from_o he_o even_o as_o if_o one_o be_v sick_a of_o the_o plague_n do_v infect_v other_o and_o they_o die_v but_o if_o a_o man_n will_v say_v that_o they_o perish_v through_o the_o contagion_n of_o he_o from_o who_o they_o do_v draw_v their_o infection_n that_o must_v be_v so_o understand_v because_o he_o be_v the_o first_o which_o bring_v the_o plague_n and_o infect_v other_o with_o the_o same_o but_o that_o sentence_n of_o the_o prophet_n nahum_n make_v nothing_o unto_o this_o purpose_n indeed_o jerom_n when_o he_o interprete_v that_o place_n say_v that_o by_o those_o word_n martion_n the_o heretic_n be_v confute_v for_o he_o false_o accuse_v god_n that_o he_o seem_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o be_v cruel_a &_o a_o revenger_n because_o he_o do_v bring_v most_o cruel_a punishment_n upon_o man_n that_o thing_n jerom_n say_v must_v not_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o cruelty_n but_o unto_o benignity_n for_o it_o be_v not_o for_o any_o other_o cause_n that_o god_n do_v so_o gréevouslie_o punish_v man_n among_o the_o sodomite_n in_o the_o general_a flood_n and_o at_o other_o time_n but_o to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v not_o perish_v everlastinglie_o for_o he_o be_v once_o for_o all_o revenge_v upon_o they_o lest_o afterward_o he_o shall_v punish_v they_o again_o but_o the_o same_o jerom_n because_o perhaps_o he_o see_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o very_o firm_a object_v against_o himself_o by_o these_o word_n it_o may_v seem_v that_o it_o be_v well_o with_o adulterer_n if_o they_o be_v take_v tarde_fw-la for_o so_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o while_o they_o receive_v temporal_a punishment_n they_o escape_v the_o everlasting_a pain_n of_o hell_n wherefore_o he_o answer_v that_o the_o judge_n of_o this_o world_n can_v prevent_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n neither_o that_o it_o must_v be_v think_v that_o sin_n be_v blot_v out_o by_o a_o easy_a punishment_n which_o do_v deserve_v a_o gréevous_a and_o long_o continue_a pain_n in_o these_o word_n of_o jerom_n death_n in_o the_o time_n of_o jerom_n adulterer_n be_v punish_v with_o death_n two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v note_v one_o be_v that_o in_o those_o day_n adultery_n be_v punish_v with_o death_n another_o be_v that_o that_o first_o interpretation_n seem_v not_o to_o satisfy_v he_o whereupon_o he_o bring_v another_o exposition_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o god_n will_v signify_v unto_o we_o by_o these_o word_n that_o the_o assyrian_n shall_v not_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o after_o the_o lead_v away_o often_o tribe_n they_o shall_v also_o enjoy_v the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n as_o they_o
be_v due_a as_o a_o reward_n wherefore_o where_o no_o sin_n be_v there_o death_n can_v have_v no_o place_n for_o this_o only_a appertain_v unto_o the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o die_v a_o innocent_a for_o he_o die_v for_o our_o sin_n 25._o rom._n 4_o 25._o but_o we_o therefore_o die_v because_o we_o be_v not_o without_o sin_n and_o if_o it_o be_v so_o then_o let_v we_o see_v what_o our_o adversary_n can_v allege_v why_o infant_n which_o be_v now_o bear_v anew_o in_o christ_n do_v die_v for_o actual_a sin_n they_o have_v not_o and_o the_o guiltiness_n or_o blame_n of_o original_a sin_n be_v take_v away_o there_o remain_v only_a lust_n and_o corruption_n of_o nature_n not_o whole_o amend_v &_o corrupt_a motion_n which_o augustine_n in_o his_o eleven_o book_n of_o confession_n say_v be_v find_v in_o infant_n and_o he_o both_o confess_v and_o accuse_v they_o as_o sin_n and_o therefore_o see_v these_o be_v sin_n they_o do_v not_o uniustlie_o die_v for_o they_o 31._o unto_o what_o kind_n of_o sin_n natural_a lust_n and_o the_o first_o motion_n unto_o evil_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v a_o distinction_n of_o sin_n mat._n 12_o 31._o forsomuch_o then_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o most_o substantial_a reason_n that_o the_o corrupt_a lust_n which_o remain_v in_o we_o after_o baptism_n be_v sin_n now_o it_o rest_v that_o we_o see_v unto_o what_o kind_n or_o part_n of_o sin_n they_o belong_v sin_n may_v seem_v thus_o to_o be_v divide_v that_o there_o be_v one_o thing_n which_o may_v be_v forgive_v and_o another_o thing_n which_o can_v transgression_n against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o be_v never_o forgive_v be_v sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o if_o sin_n may_v be_v forgive_v that_o may_v be_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n for_o either_o it_o be_v so_o forgive_v as_o we_o must_v of_o necessity_n altogether_o depart_v from_o it_o which_o we_o see_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o sore_a and_o gréevous_a sin_n which_o paul_n say_v do_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o common_o be_v call_v mortal_a 9_o 1._o cor._n 6_o 9_o or_o else_o be_v so_o forgive_v as_o we_o depart_v not_o from_o they_o partly_o through_o ignorance_n ingraff_v in_o we_o and_o partly_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o infirmity_n wherewith_o we_o be_v infect_v and_o those_o be_v call_v small_a or_o venial_a sin_n without_o the_o which_o man_n life_n can_v here_o be_v lead_v paul_n have_v put_v a_o notable_a difference_n between_o these_o sin_n when_o he_o exhort_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o suffer_v sin_n to_o reign_v in_o us._n 1â_n rom._n 6_o 1â_n and_o of_o this_o three_o kind_n of_o sin_n the_o apostle_n complain_v when_o he_o say_v o_o unhappy_a man_n that_o i_o be_o 24._o rom._n 7_o 24._o who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o the_o body_n of_o this_o death_n and_o of_o these_o sin_n do_v we_o mean_v when_o we_o teach_v 23._o lust_n and_o the_o first_o motion_n unto_o evil_n be_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n mortal_a rom._n 5_o 23._o that_o the_o work_n of_o man_n notwithstanding_o they_o be_v godly_a man_n be_v not_o without_o deadly_a sin_n for_o that_o we_o do_v nothing_o without_o this_o kind_n of_o defect_n and_o such_o kind_n of_o defect_n be_v deadly_a because_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n they_o deserve_v death_n for_o the_o reward_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n further_o also_o for_o that_o so_o long_o as_o we_o carry_v about_o with_o we_o these_o blemish_n of_o corruption_n we_o can_v enjoy_v the_o life_n eternal_a for_o so_o long_o be_v we_o exclude_v from_o it_o until_o by_o death_n we_o have_v put_v off_o all_o corruption_n moreover_o it_o be_v write_v curse_v be_v every_o one_o which_o abide_v not_o in_o all_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o word_n of_o this_o law_n and_o he_o which_o complain_v with_o paul_n that_o he_o do_v not_o the_o good_a which_o he_o will_v do_v not_o perform_v all_o the_o thing_n which_o the_o law_n require_v damnation_n by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n they_o be_v not_o impute_v to_o damnation_n nor_o be_v not_o utterlie_o without_o curse_n though_o the_o same_o through_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v not_o impute_v unto_o he_o unto_o eternal_a destruction_n 27_o and_o so_o do_v the_o man_n of_o our_o part_n speak_v of_o the_o good_a work_n of_o godly_a person_n not_o that_o either_o we_o deny_v good_a work_n or_o that_o we_o think_v not_o that_o the_o good_a work_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o man_n regenerate_v be_v please_v unto_o god_n but_o that_o our_o uncleanness_n and_o impurity_n may_v be_v acknowledge_v to_o the_o perceive_v whereof_o we_o be_v blockish_a and_o more_o than_o blind_a wherefore_o set_v aside_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n other_o sin_n be_v divide_v into_o three_o degree_n in_o the_o first_o be_v covet_v or_o lust_n which_o be_v ingraff_v in_o we_o remissible_a three_o degree_n of_o sin_n remissible_a secondlie_o out_o of_o it_o do_v spring_v continual_o the_o first_o motion_n and_o impulsion_n unto_o diverse_a sort_n of_o wickedness_n thirdlie_o come_v a_o consent_n of_o the_o will_n and_o break_v forth_o into_o act_n paul_n assign_v these_o three_o degree_n when_o he_o say_v 12._o rom._n 6_o 12._o let_v not_o sin_n reign_v in_o your_o mortal_a body_n that_o you_o shall_v obey_v the_o lust_n thereof_o sin_n which_o ought_v not_o to_o reign_v in_o we_o be_v the_o ingraff_v lust_n and_o corruption_n of_o nature_n the_o first_o motion_n be_v the_o lust_n of_o concupiscence_n which_o spring_n from_o thence_o the_o which_o we_o be_v admonish_v not_o to_o obey_v then_o be_v add_v obedience_n which_o do_v consummate_v and_o make_v perfect_a the_o sin_n which_o be_v common_o call_v actual_a sin_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v sin_n the_o lust_n in_o nature_n belong_v unto_o original_a sin_n but_o that_o the_o corruption_n of_o nature_n appertain_v to_o original_a sin_n again_o that_o sin_n unto_o the_o which_o come_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o will_n they_o call_v actual_a but_o there_o be_v a_o doubt_n touch_v those_o first_o motion_n by_o mean_n whereof_o we_o through_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o a_o new_a blame_n and_o bond_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n whether_o they_o be_v to_o be_v refer_v unto_o original_a sin_n or_o unto_o actual_a sin_n sure_o they_o be_v between_o both_o and_o they_o take_v somewhat_o of_o each_o part_n for_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o by_o they_o we_o do_v work_v covet_v or_o desire_v any_o thing_n they_o have_v some_o consideration_n of_o actual_a sin_n and_o paul_n use_v the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n signify_v some_o action_n but_o on_o the_o other_o part_n because_o we_o suffer_v this_o kind_n of_o motion_n against_o our_o will_n therefore_o therein_o they_o communicate_v with_o original_a sin_n for_o that_o sin_n be_v not_o take_v by_o choice_n and_o of_o our_o own_o accord_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d jerom_n upon_o the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n make_v a_o distinction_n between_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d say_v he_o do_v signify_v the_o first_o motion_n after_o that_o the_o consent_n of_o will_n be_v come_v unto_o they_o and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d when_o they_o do_v move_v and_o stir_v up_o from_o the_o beginning_n and_o he_o add_v that_o although_o they_o have_v a_o fault_n in_o they_o yet_o be_v they_o not_o hold_v for_o great_a fault_n but_o the_o passion_n be_v to_o be_v count_v for_o a_o sin_n here_o thou_o must_v note_v that_o jerom_n confess_v that_o the_o first_o motion_n have_v the_o blame_n of_o sin_n although_o they_o be_v not_o count_v for_o crime_n that_o be_v although_o by_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v not_o impute_v unto_o death_n or_o else_o although_o in_o man_n judgement_n they_o be_v not_o count_v for_o a_o crime_n and_o sin_n be_v again_o divide_v into_o that_o which_o be_v only_a sin_n and_o into_o that_o which_o be_v both_o sin_n sin_n an_o other_o distinction_n of_o sin_n &_o also_o the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n of_o which_o distinction_n augustine_n make_v mention_v upon_o 57_o psalm_n for_o he_o say_v that_o the_o first_o fall_v away_o from_o god_n be_v sin_n only_o but_o those_o sin_n which_o follow_v be_v both_o sin_n and_o the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n until_o the_o time_n that_o man_n come_v unto_o hell_n fire_n wherefore_o what_o evil_n soever_o be_v commit_v between_o the_o first_o apostasy_n or_o fall_v away_o and_o the_o time_n of_o hell_o fire_n the_o same_o as_o well_o be_v sin_n as_o also_o the_o punishment_n take_v for_o other_o sin_n that_o have_v paul_n unto_o the_o roman_n very_o well_o declare_v 21._o rom._n 1_o 21._o for_o first_o he_o say_v
that_o which_o he_o think_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o do_v we_o make_v intercession_n for_o sin_n and_o not_o for_o thing_n permit_v us._n wherefore_o this_o place_n make_v much_o against_o our_o adversary_n and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v sin_n it_o be_v manifest_o prove_v by_o this_o history_n but_o this_o do_v they_o earnest_o indevor_n to_o excuse_v i_o will_v to_o god_n they_o will_v diligent_o mark_v in_o that_o action_n that_o which_o there_o naaman_n feel_v and_o if_o they_o shall_v fall_v as_o he_o fear_v to_o fall_v let_v they_o not_o cloak_v it_o with_o a_o vain_a defence_n but_o let_v they_o crave_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o the_o prayer_n of_o godly_a man_n whereby_o that_o which_o they_o have_v do_v amiss_o may_v be_v free_o forgive_v they_o neither_o do_v elizaeus_n as_o they_o persuade_v themselves_o give_v naaman_n the_o syrian_a idol_n elizeus_fw-la give_v naaman_n no_o access_n unto_o idol_n liberty_n to_o go_v unto_o the_o idol_n only_o he_o say_v go_v in_o peace_n which_o also_o be_v a_o accustom_a kind_n of_o salutation_n in_o those_o day_n neither_o be_v it_o lawful_a to_o gather_v any_o other_o thing_n by_o those_o word_n than_o that_o the_o prophet_n promise_v to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v desire_v of_o he_o namely_o to_o pray_v unto_o god_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o that_o man_n first_o to_o strengthen_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o fall_v secondlie_o that_o if_o he_o sin_v his_o fault_n may_v be_v forgive_v he_o 2_o baruch_n 6_o 2_o 29_o also_o they_o use_v to_o object_v certain_a word_n out_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o prophet_n jeremie_n the_o which_o be_v write_v at_o the_o end_n of_o a_o little_a book_n entitle_v baruch_n the_o word_n be_v these_o in_o babylon_n you_o see_v god_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n bear_v upon_o man_n shoulder_n force_v a_o fear_n out_o of_o the_o heathen_a beware_v that_o you_o follow_v not_o the_o gentile_n when_o you_o shall_v see_v a_o heap_n of_o people_n worship_v as_o well_o before_o as_o behind_o but_o say_v in_o your_o heart_n o_o lord_n it_o be_v thou_o only_o that_o aught_o to_o be_v worship_v by_o these_o word_n do_v our_o nicodemites_n think_v it_o to_o be_v sufficient_a that_o they_o which_o be_v present_a at_o idolatrous_a worshipping_n do_v say_v in_o their_o heart_n o_o lord_n it_o be_v thou_o only_o that_o aught_o to_o be_v worship_v but_o they_o shall_v more_o attentivelie_o ponder_v that_o the_o prophet_n if_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n that_o speak_v those_o word_n which_o i_o therefore_o speak_v because_o the_o little_a book_n of_o baruch_n be_v not_o canonical_a apocryphal_a the_o book_n of_o baruch_n be_v apocryphal_a nor_o find_v in_o the_o hebrew_n give_v not_o the_o jew_n liberty_n to_o go_v into_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o idol_n &_o so_o to_o be_v present_a at_o profane_a and_o idolatrous_a rite_n that_o they_o shall_v then_o talk_v secret_o within_o themselves_o unto_o the_o true_a god_n but_o he_o speak_v of_o those_o image_n which_o be_v carry_v about_o the_o city_n for_o that_o be_v the_o manner_n among_o the_o babylonian_n as_o the_o history_n of_o daniel_n declare_v which_o testify_v that_o the_o image_n of_o nabuchadnezar_a be_v open_o carry_v about_o in_o great_a pomp_n with_o instrument_n of_o music_n and_o with_o song_n at_o the_o hear_n whereof_o all_o man_n be_v command_v to_o worship_v the_o image_n that_o they_o behold_v which_o the_o companion_n of_o daniel_n will_v not_o do_v of_o those_o image_n i_o say_v it_o be_v write_v in_o that_o epistle_n and_o the_o godly_a be_v faithful_o admonish_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o worship_v or_o adore_v those_o thing_n which_o the_o ethniks_n do_v both_o behind_o and_o before_o they_o nay_o rather_o in_o detestation_n of_o their_o wicked_a worship_n let_v they_o say_v at_o the_o leastwise_o in_o their_o hart_n o_o lord_n it_o be_v thou_o only_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v worship_v these_o same_o meeting_n happen_v by_o chance_n in_o the_o city_n can_v not_o be_v avoid_v the_o godly_a therefore_o be_v to_o be_v admonish_v how_o they_o shall_v behave_v themselves_o in_o such_o meeting_n 30_o but_o these_o man_n be_v shameless_a do_v procee_v forward_o importunatlie_o and_o demand_v how_o chance_n daniel_n be_v not_o cast_v into_o the_o burn_a furnace_n with_o his_o fellow_n when_o as_o like_v punishment_n be_v provide_v for_o all_o which_o will_v not_o worship_v the_o image_n of_o nabuchadnezar_a 5._o dan._n 3_o 5._o wherefore_o these_o man_n imagine_v that_o daniel_n make_v a_o show_n as_o though_o he_o do_v worship_v it_o and_o for_o that_o cause_n the_o chaldaean_n meddle_v not_o with_o he_o and_o they_o say_v also_o that_o they_o may_v lawful_o do_v that_o which_o they_o think_v this_o holy_a prophet_n of_o god_n do_v they_o consider_v not_o that_o they_o fall_v into_o a_o false_a kind_n of_o reason_n which_o common_o be_v call_v non_fw-la causa_fw-la ut_fw-la causa_fw-la which_o be_v when_o that_o which_o be_v not_o a_o cause_n be_v put_v for_o a_o cause_n fellow_n why_o daniel_n be_v not_o cast_v into_o the_o furnace_n together_o with_o his_o fellow_n for_o there_o may_v be_v very_o many_o other_o cause_n why_o daniel_n be_v not_o then_o punish_v peradventure_o he_o meet_v not_o the_o image_n which_o be_v carry_v about_o or_o if_o at_o any_o time_n he_o meet_v it_o the_o chaldaean_n mark_v not_o what_o he_o do_v or_o else_o be_v apprehend_v and_o keep_v be_v not_o accuse_v because_o the_o king_n bear_v he_o incredible_a good_a will_n image_n daniel_n dissemble_v not_o the_o worship_v of_o of_o the_o image_n but_o we_o must_v not_o believe_v that_o the_o man_n for_o fear_n of_o punishment_n or_o death_n will_v dissemble_v the_o worship_v of_o the_o image_n against_o the_o law_n and_o against_o piety_n since_o it_o be_v afterward_o declare_v that_o for_o godliness_n sake_n he_o be_v throw_v among_o the_o lion_n see_v now_o there_o be_v many_o cause_n to_o let_v that_o he_o be_v not_o deliver_v to_o be_v burn_v in_o the_o flame_n of_o fire_n with_o his_o fellow_n why_o do_v these_o man_n than_o lie_v hold_v only_o of_o one_o cause_n and_o that_o such_o a_o cause_n as_o be_v unworthy_a and_o full_a of_o reproach_n for_o such_o a_o holy_a man_n because_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o suspicion_n once_o offer_v we_o in_o any_o respect_n of_o such_o a_o matter_n 31_o they_o think_v with_o themselves_o that_o they_o speak_v handsome_o to_o the_o purpose_n and_o that_o they_o cunning_o defend_v their_o do_n when_o they_o allege_v that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n 23._o verse_n 23._o the_o 21_o chapter_n where_o it_o be_v declare_v that_o paul_n by_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n take_v upon_o he_o a_o vow_n and_o four_o other_o man_n with_o he_o and_o purify_v themselves_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n if_o the_o apostle_n of_o god_n say_v they_o will_v use_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n already_o abolish_v we_o also_o may_v be_v suffer_v sometime_o to_o admit_v rite_n &_o ceremony_n so_o long_a time_n receive_v and_o to_o be_v present_a at_o they_o but_o to_o make_v this_o matter_n more_o plain_a we_o must_v understand_v that_o this_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o paul_n preach_v 28._o rom_n 3_o 28._o we_o think_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o work_n 17._o gala._n 3_o 20._o rom._n 1_o 17._o as_o many_o as_o be_v under_o the_o law_n be_v under_o the_o curse_n the_o just_a man_n shall_v live_v by_o his_o faith_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o first_o time_n of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n condemn_v not_o the_o ceremony_n &_o law_n appertein_v to_o the_o hebrews_n unless_o they_o be_v retain_v with_o such_o a_o faith_n and_o mind_n as_o if_o justification_n shall_v come_v by_o they_o and_o this_o doctrine_n of_o he_o have_v he_o very_o manifest_o set_v forth_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o where_o he_o say_v 4._o gal._n 5_o 2._o 4._o you_o which_o be_v circumcise_v have_v fall_v both_o from_o christ_n and_o from_o grace_n for_o christ_n be_v make_v of_o none_o effect_v unto_o you_o if_o you_o shall_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n as_o though_o he_o will_v say_v these_o thing_n of_o moses_n do_v not_o alienate_v you_o from_o christ_n except_o you_o exercise_v they_o with_o this_o mind_n and_o purpose_n that_o thereby_o you_o may_v be_v justify_v take_v away_o this_o opinion_n and_o the_o apostle_n commend_v good_a work_n and_o as_o for_o civil_a and_o accustom_a ordinance_n so_o they_o be_v just_a and_o not_o idolatrous_a he_o suffer_v still_o in_o their_o own_o place_n neither_o do_v he_o let_v but_o that_o the_o legal_a ceremony_n may_v still_o be_v use_v 28._o
wretch_n always_o keep_v close_a and_o nourish_v within_o themselves_o against_o god_n and_o never_o show_v it_o but_o when_o they_o come_v to_o misfortune_n then_o break_v they_o out_o into_o blasphemy_n wherewith_o they_o either_o slander_n god_n as_o cruel_a or_o else_o the_o evil_n which_o they_o suffer_v they_o impute_v unto_o the_o star_n and_o unto_o evil_a man_n who_o they_o blame_v and_o curse_v without_o end_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n and_o as_o a_o mad_a dog_n bit_v the_o stone_n which_o be_v throw_v at_o he_o and_o let_v they_o alone_o unhurt_a which_o throw_v the_o stone_n so_o these_o man_n neither_o look_v into_o their_o own_o sin_n neither_o yet_o consider_v they_o the_o just_a cause_n whereby_o god_n do_v prolong_v his_o help_n but_o most_o unwiselie_o tempt_v god_n the_o remedy_n must_v be_v so_o apply_v that_o we_o set_v before_o our_o eye_n the_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o the_o steadfast_a faithfulness_n which_o he_o have_v hitherto_o use_v towards_o all_o the_o godly_a and_o towards_o us._n which_o if_o we_o shall_v repeat_v in_o our_o mind_n we_o shall_v not_o be_v provoke_v to_o tempt_v he_o but_o rather_o we_o will_v turn_v ourselves_o to_o most_o earnest_a prayer_n whereby_o we_o shall_v obtain_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v profitable_a to_o salvation_n shall_v be_v give_v we_o in_o due_a time_n 56_o beside_o these_o two_o kind_n of_o tempt_a god_n god_n there_o be_v another_o three_o kind_n of_o tempt_a god_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a other_o most_o wicked_a of_o all_o which_o proceed_v only_o of_o impudency_n and_o contempt_n for_o there_o be_v some_o which_o of_o set_a purpose_n do_v go_v on_o in_o provoke_v and_o stir_v up_o god_n by_o their_o sin_n of_o which_o wickedness_n the_o apostle_n make_v mention_n in_o his_o 1._o epistle_n to_o the_o corinth_n when_o he_o say_v 22._o 1._o co._n 10_o 22._o be_v we_o strong_a than_o christ_n neither_o do_v peter_n though_o he_o deal_v more_o mild_o than_o we_o have_v declare_v much_o disagree_v from_o this_o signification_n when_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n he_o say_v wherefore_o do_v you_o tempt_v god_n 10._o acts._n 15_o 10._o that_o you_o will_v lay_v a_o yoke_n upon_o the_o faithful_a which_o neither_o we_o nor_o our_o father_n be_v able_a to_o bear_v as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v this_o be_v to_o provoke_v god_n unto_o battle_n as_o though_o they_o challenge_v great_a strength_n unto_o themselves_o than_o god_n will_v grant_v unto_o their_o father_n in_o the_o observation_n of_o ceremony_n as_o concern_v the_o first_o of_o these_o three_o temptation_n god_n âow_o the_o israelite_n tempt_v god_n the_o israelite_n tempt_v god_n for_o when_o as_o they_o have_v sufficient_o wherewithal_o to_o sustain_v their_o live_n they_o will_v have_v have_v god_n to_o prepare_v flesh_n and_o fish_n for_o they_o from_o heaven_n also_o they_o tempt_v god_n in_o the_o second_o manner_n for_o when_o they_o have_v need_n of_o help_n they_o expect_v not_o the_o opportunity_n appoint_v by_o god_n neither_o abstein_v they_o from_o the_o three_o manner_n when_o as_o by_o accustom_v themselves_o to_o sin_n they_o provoke_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n of_o curiosity_n 57_o curiosity_n 16._o in_o 1._o sam._n 6_o verse_n 16._o be_v too_o much_o endeavour_n to_o know_v thing_n forbid_v and_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n as_o touch_v the_o ark_n 20._o num._n 4_o 20._o god_n forbid_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v see_v it_o only_o the_o priest_n do_v fold_v the_o same_o in_o clothes_n afterward_o be_v cover_v and_o folden_v up_o they_o deliver_v it_o to_o the_o son_n of_o caath_n to_o be_v carry_v 15._o ibidem_fw-la 15._o for_o if_o the_o levite_n have_v see_v the_o same_o they_o have_v die_v so_o god_n forbid_v that_o the_o people_n shall_v approach_v to_o the_o mount_n or_o to_o behold_v what_o be_v do_v near_o unto_o it_o 12._o exo._n 19_o 12._o it_o be_v enough_o for_o they_o to_o be_v afraid_a at_o the_o lightning_n and_o thunder_n 18._o exo._n 20_o 18._o yea_o and_o now_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o search_v over-curiouslie_a even_o of_o thing_n beside_o the_o purpose_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d for_o when_o peter_n have_v demand_v as_o touch_v john_n 21_o john_n 21_o 21_o what_o shall_v this_o man_n do_v christ_n answer_v what_o be_v that_o unto_o thou_o follow_v thou_o i_o for_o while_o we_o have_v our_o mind_n occupy_v in_o these_o thing_n the_o time_n for_o better_a cogitation_n be_v lose_v but_o on_o the_o other_o part_n also_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o do_v not_o overlightlie_a receive_v whatsoever_o be_v lay_v before_o we_o for_o that_o come_v of_o a_o certain_a foolish_a inconstancy_n but_o we_o must_v be_v steadfast_a and_o constant_a and_o not_o be_v move_v with_o every_o wind_n of_o new_a doctrine_n prudentlie_o do_v the_o thessalonian_o who_o will_v confer_v with_o the_o scripture_n 12._o acts._n 11_o 12._o and_o see_v whether_o those_o thing_n be_v true_a which_o be_v speak_v of_o s._n paul_n for_o upon_o another_o occasion_n christ_n say_v 39_o john_n 5_o 39_o search_v the_o scripture_n when_o the_o papist_n perceive_v that_o their_o strange_a wonder_n be_v not_o beléeve_v of_o we_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n &_o his_o blood_n do_v lie_v hide_v under_o the_o show_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n they_o cry_v out_o that_o we_o be_v overcurious_a and_o that_o of_o we_o be_v renew_v that_o jewish_a say_n how_o but_o fool_n as_o they_o be_v they_o may_v have_v remember_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n even_o the_o godly_a man_n have_v oftentimes_o ask_v how_o 15._o of_o the_o question_n how_o exod._n 4_o 10._o judg._n 6_o 15._o moses_n desire_v by_o prayer_n to_o be_v rid_v of_o his_o ambassage_n and_o allege_v the_o stammer_n of_o his_o speech_n and_o how_o say_v he_o shall_v pharaoh_n hear_v i_o and_o gedeon_n how_o can_v i_o deliver_v israel_n see_v i_o be_o the_o lest_o of_o all_o my_o tribe_n and_o abraham_n o_o that_o ishmael_n may_v live_v in_o thy_o sight_n 18._o gen._n 17_o 18._o and_o how_o shall_v i_o know_v that_o i_o shall_v possess_v the_o land_n of_o chanaan_n and_o sara_n laugh_v at_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n concern_v the_o seed_n and_o the_o bless_a virgin_n how_o say_v she_o shall_v this_o be_v 34._o luke_n 1_o 34._o and_o jeremie_n say_v 6._o jere._n 1_o 6._o that_o he_o be_v a_o child_n and_o can_v not_o speak_v i_o know_v indeed_o that_o of_o these_o some_o be_v reproove_v and_o some_o praise_v for_o abraham_n by_o that_o faith_n be_v justify_v and_o the_o bless_a virgin_n hear_v bless_a art_n thou_o 45._o luk._n 1_o 45._o which_o have_v believe_v but_o moses_n be_v blame_v and_o that_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o at_o the_o last_o god_n be_v angry_a with_o he_o then_o this_o be_v the_o difference_n 14._o exod._n 4_o 14._o that_o they_o which_o through_o unbeléefe_n ask_v the_o question_n how_o do_v offend_v and_o sin_n but_o they_o which_o desire_n that_o by_o this_o mean_v their_o infirmity_n may_v be_v strengthen_v or_o they_o which_o only_o inquire_v of_o the_o way_n and_o manner_n because_o they_o see_v that_o they_o themselves_o must_v have_v to_o do_v in_o the_o matter_n they_o sin_v not_o at_o all_o the_o virgin_n demand_v by_o what_o mean_v she_o shall_v bring_v forth_o a_o son_n whether_o natural_o or_o above_o nature_n neither_o be_v she_o for_o this_o cause_n unfaithful_a neither_o be_v she_o reproove_v but_o when_o a_o man_n sin_v in_o this_o matter_n it_o can_v be_v perceive_v by_o the_o word_n themselves_o for_o all_o man_n after_o one_o manner_n say_v how_o but_o god_n be_v chéeflie_o the_o knower_n of_o the_o hart_n &_o he_o understand_v with_o what_o mind_n every_o word_n be_v speak_v we_o also_o through_o thing_n go_v afore_o and_o follow_v after_o may_v méetlie_o well_o understand_v a_o man_n meaning_n but_o now_o if_o these_o man_n be_v not_o to_o be_v reproove_v which_o demand_v how_o in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n how_o much_o less_o shall_v we_o be_v blame_v if_o in_o their_o lie_n and_o vain_a devise_n we_o do_v ask_v how_o and_o undoubted_o peter_n command_v we_o to_o be_v ready_a to_o render_v a_o account_n of_o all_o our_o doctrine_n but_o these_o man_n can_v make_v no_o manner_n of_o reckon_n of_o their_o mystery_n they_o say_v it_o be_v a_o tradition_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o ask_v if_o so_o the_o case_n stand_v we_o must_v yield_v but_o as_o i_o have_v say_v this_o easiness_n of_o give_v credit_n be_v no_o less_o a_o fault_n than_o that_o curiosity_n whereof_o i_o begin_v to_o speak_v the_o five_o chapter_n the_o second_o precept_n which_o concern_v image_n in_o treat_v upon_o this_o place_n end_n in_o 1._o king_n 7._o at_o the_o end_n it_o seem_v good_a
he_o can_v make_v good_a but_o as_o concern_v the_o everlasting_a punishment_n because_o those_o do_v hurt_v for_o evermore_o every_o man_n do_v justly_o suffer_v they_o according_a to_o his_o evil_a desert_n no_o man_n say_v he_o suffer_v those_o punishment_n for_o a_o other_o man_n fault_n and_o even_o this_o also_o he_o write_v in_o his_o first_o book_n the_o 10._o chapter_n against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o law_n &_o the_o prophet_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n say_v he_o but_o in_o this_o life_n one_o be_v afflict_v for_o a_o other_o and_o against_o julian_n the_o pelagian_n the_o sixth_o book_n &_o 12._o chap._n he_o distinguish_v the_o state_n of_o the_o people_n &_o some_o he_o say_v be_v regenerate_v in_o christ_n but_o that_o other_o be_v not_o yet_o regenerate_v regennerate_a man_n distinguish_v into_o regennerate_a and_o not_o regennerate_a and_o of_o they_o which_o be_v not_o regenerate_v their_o sin_n be_v visit_v upon_o the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n to_o wit_n upon_o all_o the_o posterity_n and_o he_o allude_v unto_o original_a sin_n which_o from_o adam_n be_v spread_v over_o all_o posterity_n but_o thou_o will_v say_v why_o then_o punish_v he_o to_o the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n the_o same_o father_n answer_v in_o the_o 42._o question_n upon_o deuteronomie_n number_n the_o number_n of_o seven_o betoken_v a_o complete_a number_n because_o three_o being_n join_v with_o the_o number_n of_o four_o make_v the_o number_n of_o seven_o which_o be_v a_o complete_a number_n so_o as_o by_o name_v the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v unto_o every_o generation_n which_o kind_n of_o speech_n amos_n use_v 3._o amos._n 1_o 3._o for_o three_o wickedness_n say_v he_o &_o for_o four_o i_o will_v not_o be_v turn_v augustine_n therefore_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n concern_v the_o punish_n of_o the_o father_n iniquity_n upon_o the_o child_n unto_o the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n of_o they_o which_o be_v not_o regenerate_v for_o the_o law_n say_v he_o speak_v of_o they_o which_o be_v under_o the_o law_n but_o ezechiel_n and_o jeremie_n speak_v of_o man_n which_o be_v bear_v anew_o and_o of_o the_o gift_n of_o regeneration_n to_o be_v give_v by_o christ_n but_o man_n which_o be_v regenerate_v shall_v be_v judge_v every_o one_o after_o his_o own_o merit_n and_o not_o according_a to_o other_o man_n sin_n and_o so_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o bear_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o father_n but_o the_o soul_n which_o sin_v the_o same_o shall_v die_v but_o before_o regeneration_n original_a sin_n infect_v and_o destroy_v all_o posterity_n 44_o this_o distinction_n of_o augustine_n i_o disallow_v not_o yet_o doubt_v i_o whether_o it_o be_v sufficient_o apply_v unto_o the_o sense_n of_o ezechiel_n and_o jeremie_n both_o those_o prophet_n write_v the_o selfsame_o word_n thing_n ezechiel_n and_o jeremie_n be_v in_o sundry_a place_n write_v both_o one_o thing_n the_o father_n do_v eat_v sour_a grape_n and_o the_o child_n tooth_n be_v set_v on_o edge_n when_o as_o nevertheless_o the_o one_o be_v in_o jewrie_n and_o the_o other_o be_v lead_v away_o into_o babylon_n which_o be_v a_o good_a argument_n that_o they_o speak_v both_o with_o one_o spirit_n but_o augustine_n say_v that_o the_o exposition_n of_o ezechiel_n must_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o 31._o chapter_n of_o jeremie_n for_o there_o it_o be_v add_v after_o those_o word_n behold_v the_o day_n will_v come_v that_o i_o will_v make_v a_o new_a covenant_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o all_o that_o whole_a place_n be_v to_o be_v apply_v to_o regeneration_n so_o that_o by_o these_o word_n of_o jeremie_n the_o say_n of_o ezechiel_n must_v be_v interpret_v concern_v the_o regenerate_a by_o this_o mean_n that_o father_n think_v that_o the_o question_n be_v answer_v but_o i_o when_o i_o more_o diligent_o consider_v of_o that_o chapter_n of_o ezechiel_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o it_o speak_v of_o the_o pain_n and_o affliction_n of_o this_o life_n for_o wherefore_o do_v the_o people_n complain_v say_v the_o father_n do_v eat_v sour_a grape_n and_o the_o child_n tooth_n be_v set_v on_o edge_n do_v they_o complain_v of_o the_o pain_n of_o hell_n no_o very_o but_o because_o they_o be_v carry_v away_o captive_a into_o babylon_n and_o there_o live_v in_o bondage_n they_o complain_v that_o god_n do_v deal_v over_o hardly_o that_o whereas_o their_o father_n have_v be_v idolater_n yet_o they_o which_o have_v not_o offend_v shall_v be_v punish_v concern_v those_o punishment_n the_o people_n lament_v so_o as_o it_o be_v needful_a that_o the_o prophet_n shall_v answer_v for_o those_o thing_n the_o soul_n of_o the_o father_n be_v i_o and_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o son_n be_v i_o the_o soul_n that_o sin_v the_o same_o shall_v die_v wherefore_o these_o thing_n have_v respect_n to_o the_o punishment_n of_o this_o life_n albeit_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o they_o may_v be_v transfer_v also_o unto_o spiritual_a punishment_n but_o that_o be_v not_o but_o by_o the_o way_n of_o argue_v a_o minori_fw-la ad_fw-la maius_fw-la that_o be_v from_o the_o less_o to_o the_o great_a which_o be_v after_o this_o sort_n god_n have_v not_o altogether_o lay_v temporal_a punishment_n upon_o the_o innocent_n for_o other_o sin_n therefore_o much_o less_o the_o spiritual_a and_o everlasting_a pain_n jerom._n jerom._n 45_o jerom_n when_o he_o interprete_v ezechiel_n have_v a_o solution_n the_o which_o afterward_o augustine_n also_o follow_v as_o we_o will_v declare_v when_o the_o place_n serve_v but_o the_o interpreter_n do_v vary_v because_o the_o matter_n be_v obscure_a and_o thereof_o come_v a_o difficulty_n because_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o god_n afflict_v some_o for_o other_o man_n cause_n 25._o gen._n 9_o 25._o for_o where_o as_o cham_n have_v disclose_v the_o shame_n of_o his_o father_n noah_n yet_o be_v the_o curse_n transfer_v unto_o chenaan_n his_o son_n 1._o gen._n 19_o 1._o and_o when_o the_o sodomite_n have_v gréevouslie_o sin_v the_o child_n also_o together_o with_o the_o father_n be_v burn_v again_o when_o david_n have_v commit_v adultery_n 15._o 2._o sa._n 12_o 15._o god_n cause_v that_o the_o child_n beget_v in_o that_o adultery_n shall_v die_v wherefore_o in_o a_o matter_n so_o obscure_a jerom_n indeed_o bring_v his_o own_o exposition_n but_o yet_o he_o show_v what_o other_o man_n think_v concern_v this_o question_n first_o he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v many_o which_o understand_v that_o place_n of_o the_o law_n namely_o that_o god_n do_v persecute_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o child_n unto_o the_o three_o &_o four_o generation_n to_o be_v allegoricallie_o speak_v touch_v every_o particular_a soul_n or_o man_n that_o sin_v for_o they_o be_v certain_a rash_a onset_n impulsion_n and_o forcement_n unto_o evil_n or_o as_o other_o say_v first_o motion_v afterward_o follow_v deliberation_n as_o when_o one_o have_v determine_v with_o himself_o that_o he_o will_v do_v naught_o thirdlie_o when_o this_o determination_n be_v perform_v fourthly_a there_o follow_v a_o glorieng_n in_o wickedness_n when_o one_o do_v satisfy_v and_o well_o please_v himself_o in_o sin_n so_o after_o a_o sort_n there_o be_v reckon_v four_o generation_n but_o god_n be_v so_o merciful_a that_o in_o the_o first_o and_o second_o generation_n that_o be_v in_o rash_a onset_n and_o deliberation_n he_o be_v silent_a and_o make_v as_o though_o he_o know_v not_o but_o the_o three_o and_o the_o four_o that_o be_v the_o commit_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o glorieng_n therein_o he_o punish_v when_o as_o both_o a_o man_n do_v evil_a and_o glori_v in_o his_o sin_n and_o will_v not_o repent_v wherefore_o they_o say_v that_o god_n revenge_v upon_o the_o branch_n not_o upon_o the_o root_n for_o a_o man_n as_o they_o think_v if_o he_o neither_o do_v evil_a nor_o yet_o boast_v of_o evil_a may_v be_v save_v although_o otherwise_o he_o as_o well_o lu_v as_o deliberate_v to_o do_v evil_a neither_o do_v they_o otherwise_o interpret_v paul_n to_o timothy_n when_o he_o say_v 15_o 1._o tim._n 2_o 15_o that_o a_o woman_n shall_v be_v save_v by_o procreation_n of_o child_n if_o so_o be_v she_o abide_v firm_a in_o the_o faith_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v her_o soul_n shall_v be_v save_v if_o she_o work_v well_o although_o she_o have_v naughty_a motion_n and_o cogitation_n this_o interpretation_n i_o allow_v not_o first_o because_o it_o be_v allegorical_a see_v god_n especial_o in_o the_o law_n speak_v plain_o and_o manifest_o secondlie_o for_o that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n certainty_n allegory_n have_v no_o certainty_n if_o they_o shall_v be_v turn_v to_o allegory_n will_v become_v altogether_o uncerteine_a last_o because_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o be_v speak_v for_o those_o forcement_n and_o
the_o child_n do_v suffer_v punishment_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o their_o parent_n they_o have_v not_o whereof_o to_o complain_v undoubted_o they_o owe_v this_o duty_n unto_o their_o parent_n for_o even_o this_o that_o they_o be_v they_o have_v it_o from_o they_o wherefore_o if_o they_o leave_v their_o life_n for_o their_o sake_n they_o have_v no_o injury_n do_v unto_o they_o for_o they_o yield_v that_o unto_o they_o which_o they_o receive_v of_o they_o if_o god_n shall_v say_v unto_o they_o i_o will_v use_v your_o punishment_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o your_o parent_n they_o can_v by_o no_o right_n refuse_v the_o same_o john_n teach_v that_o every_o one_o so_o ought_v to_o love_v his_o brother_n 16._o 1._o joh._n 3_o 16._o as_o he_o shall_v be_v ready_a to_o yield_v his_o life_n for_o he_o and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o life_n must_v be_v yield_v for_o a_o brother_n how_o much_o rather_o for_o a_o father_n god_n use_v diverse_a instrument_n wherewith_o he_o draw_v man_n unto_o he_o why_o then_o may_v he_o not_o use_v either_o the_o sickness_n or_o the_o death_n of_o child_n for_o the_o chastisement_n or_o salvation_n of_o parent_n 5._o augustine_n josua_n 7_o 5._o augustine_n in_o his_o eight_o question_n upon_o josua_n which_o we_o have_v oftentimes_o allege_v it_o be_v meet_a say_v he_o that_o the_o lesser_a part_n shall_v suffer_v punishment_n for_o the_o great_a great_a the_o less_o part_n suffer_v punishment_n for_o the_o great_a as_o in_o that_o history_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v for_o the_o sacrilege_n which_o achan_n have_v commit_v a_o few_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o host_n and_o the_o whole_a multitude_n be_v assoil_v herby_n be_v understand_v how_o great_a the_o wrath_n and_o vengeance_n of_o god_n have_v be_v if_o the_o whole_a multitude_n have_v sin_v when_o as_o the_o sin_n of_o one_o alone_o be_v so_o costly_a and_o plutarch_n in_o the_o same_o book_n which_o i_o cite_v a_o little_a before_o say_v that_o thus_o the_o emperor_n do_v in_o their_o camp_n for_o if_o there_o be_v any_o fault_n general_o commit_v by_o they_o all_o they_o take_v the_o ten_o of_o the_o multitude_n soldier_n a_o custom_n of_o tithing_n of_o soldier_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o by_o the_o punishment_n of_o a_o few_o the_o rest_n may_v be_v assoil_v and_o so_o one_o do_v suffer_v for_o the_o fault_n of_o another_o but_o as_o it_o have_v be_v say_v god_n do_v injury_n to_o no_o man_n for_o he_o that_o die_v be_v subject_a to_o death_n and_o god_n direct_v his_o death_n to_o a_o good_a end_n namely_o that_o he_o may_v help_v other_o that_o be_v that_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o may_v call_v home_o either_o parent_n or_o prince_n to_o repentance_n or_o else_o to_o establish_v discipline_n those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v say_v must_v not_o be_v understand_v concern_v spiritual_a and_o eternal_a punishment_n for_o as_o touch_v they_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v punish_v for_o his_o own_o fault_n 49_o now_o be_v we_o to_o expound_v the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o law_n i_o say_v he_o be_o a_o jealous_a god_n and_o visit_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o child_n unto_o the_o three_o &_o four_o generation_n of_o they_o which_o hate_v i_o these_o latter_a word_n jerom_n jerom._n jerom._n upon_o the_o 18._o chapter_n of_o ezechiel_n note_v diligent_o and_o augustine_n also_o in_o the_o question_n upon_o josua_n already_o allege_v augustine_n augustine_n of_o they_o say_v god_n which_o hate_v i_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o will_v not_o touch_v the_o innocent_n but_o i_o will_v be_v avenge_v upon_o the_o iniquity_n of_o they_o which_o imitate_v evil_a parent_n and_o hate_v i_o after_o the_o like_a manner_n he_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v do_v well_o unto_o the_o child_n and_o childer_n child_n even_o to_o a_o thousand_o generation_n but_o to_o who_o even_o to_o they_o he_o say_v which_o love_v i_o wherefore_o if_o the_o father_n be_v wicked_a and_o the_o son_n good_a his_o father_n wickedness_n shall_v do_v he_o no_o harm_n but_o if_o the_o father_n be_v good_a and_o the_o son_n wicked_a his_o father_n godliness_n shall_v not_o avail_v he_o and_o therefore_o say_v jerom_o god_n punish_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o child_n not_o because_o they_o have_v evil_a parent_n but_o because_o they_o do_v imitate_v their_o father_n the_o word_n themselves_o do_v sufficient_o declare_v that_o the_o law_n must_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o original_a sin_n but_o of_o that_o sin_n which_o they_o call_v actual_a for_o then_o the_o son_n shall_v bear_v the_o iniquity_n of_o his_o father_n when_o he_o sin_v in_o like_a manner_n as_o his_o father_n do_v also_o the_o word_n of_o ezechiel_n can_v be_v understand_v as_o touch_v original_a sin_n as_o the_o word_n which_o follow_v do_v easy_o declare_v albeit_o that_o which_o be_v say_v to_o wit_n the_o soul_n which_o sin_v the_o same_o shall_v die_v may_v be_v understand_v even_o of_o original_a sin_n sin_n every_o man_n have_v in_o he_o his_o own_o original_a sin_n since_o every_o man_n have_v in_o himself_o a_o nature_n corrupt_a and_o prone_a unto_o evil_n wherefore_o every_o one_o do_v bear_v his_o own_o sin_n for_o although_o that_o that_o sin_n be_v originallie_o draw_v from_o the_o parent_n yet_o be_v it_o now_o become_v our_o own_o but_o thou_o will_v say_v see_v it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o law_n of_o they_o that_o hate_v i_o sure_o since_o infant_n do_v not_o hate_n god_n therefore_o it_o can_v perteine_v unto_o they_o i_o answer_v indeed_o they_o do_v not_o hate_n god_n in_o act_n but_o by_o natural_a corruption_n and_o proneness_n unto_o evil_n so_o the_o wolf_n that_o be_v grow_v devour_v the_o sheep_n but_o the_o wolf_n whelp_n do_v not_o so_o not_o because_o he_o have_v not_o the_o disposition_n of_o his_o dam_n but_o because_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v it_o and_o thus_o much_o concern_v the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n but_o for_o what_o cause_n it_o be_v say_v unto_o the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n and_o not_o unto_o the_o five_o and_o sixth_o generation_n why_o the_o scripture_n mention_v the_o four_o generation_n we_o have_v hear_v what_o augustine_n have_v answer_v but_o in_o my_o judgement_n we_o may_v much_o more_o fit_o say_v that_o the_o parent_n may_v live_v unto_o the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n god_n therefore_o will_v so_o punish_v the_o father_n in_o the_o three_o &_o four_o generation_n as_o some_o feel_v of_o that_o punishment_n of_o the_o posterity_n may_v come_v to_o they_o while_o they_o shall_v be_v yet_o live_v and_o that_o they_o may_v see_v the_o calamity_n of_o their_o childers_n child_n &_o the_o child_n of_o they_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v not_o make_v mention_n beyond_o those_o generation_n when_o their_o posterity_n be_v evil_a and_o be_v punish_v by_o god_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o the_o parent_n be_v punish_v in_o they_o chrysostome_n on_o genesis_n chrysost_n chrysost_n homily_n 29._o interpret_n these_o word_n curse_v be_v chenaan_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o be_v not_o chenaan_n say_v he_o that_o sin_v 25._o gen._n 9_o 25._o but_o his_o father_n cham._n he_o answer_v true_a indeed_o it_o be_v but_o i_o be_o take_v that_o curse_n far_o more_o gréevouslie_o than_o if_o he_o himself_o have_v be_v afflict_v such_o be_v the_o natural_a work_n and_o affection_n in_o father_n that_o they_o be_v more_o disquiet_v with_o the_o affliction_n of_o their_o child_n than_o with_o their_o own_o so_o i_o be_o perceive_v that_o not_o only_o his_o son_n shall_v be_v evil_a and_o subject_a to_o the_o curse_n but_o also_o that_o he_o himself_o shall_v be_v punish_v in_o he_o severity_n exod._n 34_o 7._o a_o sentence_n unto_o mercy_n not_o unto_o severity_n 50_o now_o remain_v to_o be_v declare_v why_o this_o also_o namely_o visit_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o child_n be_v recite_v before_o moses_n among_o the_o title_n of_o god_n mercy_n see_v it_o seem_v to_o have_v respect_n unto_o the_o severity_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o nay_o rather_o if_o the_o place_n be_v more_o narrow_o sift_v we_o shall_v see_v the_o same_o to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o his_o mercy_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o sin_n be_v commit_v god_n in_o his_o own_o right_n may_v by_o &_o by_o take_v vengeance_n but_o so_o good_a be_v he_o that_o he_o will_v defer_v it_o until_o the_o three_o &_o four_o generation_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o call_v home_o the_o father_n to_o repentance_n by_o the_o admonition_n of_o the_o prophet_n by_o preach_n by_o benefit_n and_o many_o other_o mean_n last_o of_o all_o when_o it_o be_v come_v to_o the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n and_o the_o man_n nothing_o the_o
better_a he_o execute_v punishment_n and_o even_o then_o he_o use_v not_o affliction_n medicine_n god_n use_v affliction_n as_o a_o medicine_n as_o the_o uttermost_a punishment_n but_o rather_o as_o a_o medicine_n who_o see_v not_o that_o all_o this_o be_v a_o work_n of_o great_a mercy_n just_o therefore_o and_o upon_o good_a cause_n be_v these_o word_n number_v among_o the_o title_n of_o god_n mercy_n and_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o prophet_n together_o with_o the_o people_n be_v oftentimes_o afflict_v 15_o ezech._n 1_o 11._o dan_o 1_o 6._o jere._n 37_o 15_o for_o ezechiel_n and_o daniel_n be_v lead_v away_o into_o captivity_n and_o jeremie_n be_v cast_v into_o prison_n and_o turmoil_v many_o &_o marvelous_a way_n in_o time_n of_o the_o siege_n and_o afterward_o go_v to_o egypt_n with_o the_o hebrews_n be_v slay_v for_o on_o this_o sort_n god_n will_v have_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v that_o good_a man_n may_v not_o only_o order_v their_o own_o conversation_n aright_o but_o that_o also_o by_o patient_a suffering_n of_o gréevous_a thing_n they_o may_v warn_v and_o amend_v the_o wicked_a for_o with_o they_o they_o live_v together_o in_o one_o commonweal_n and_o church_n and_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n member_n of_o one_o body_n wherefore_o good_a man_n ought_v thus_o to_o think_v with_o themselves_o if_o god_n have_v afflict_v they_o we_o also_o shall_v be_v vex_v together_o with_o they_o we_o shall_v be_v all_o wrap_v under_o one_o punishment_n therefore_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o travel_v for_o they_o by_o reprove_v and_o pray_v for_o their_o salvation_n be_v neglect_v it_o will_v bring_v evil_a also_o unto_o us._n after_o this_o sort_n must_v augustine_n be_v understand_v when_o he_o say_v that_o god_n by_o this_o mean_n establish_v discipline_n for_o if_o the_o people_n be_v afflict_v for_o their_o king_n and_o the_o son_n for_o the_o father_n than_o it_o behoove_v that_o all_o man_n labour_n and_o be_v diligent_a one_o for_o a_o other_o yet_o do_v not_o good_a man_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n live_v without_o sin_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o god_n can_v find_v cause_n to_o punish_v they_o howbeit_o the_o painful_a thing_n punishment_n the_o affliction_n of_o the_o godly_a can_v proper_o be_v call_v punishment_n which_o happen_v to_o the_o godly_a as_o it_o have_v be_v say_v can_v proper_o be_v call_v punishment_n but_o rather_o exercise_n of_o faith_n for_o by_o that_o mean_v god_n do_v through_o make_v trial_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v against_o they_o it_o turn_v to_o their_o good_a moreover_o he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o express_v in_o themselves_o jesus_n christ_n their_o first_o beget_v brother_n which_o bear_v the_o sin_n of_o other_o in_o himself_o for_o even_o this_o be_v a_o certain_a portion_n of_o christ_n his_o cross_n though_o they_o be_v not_o so_o innocent_a as_o christ_n be_v neither_o do_v their_o cross_n work_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o redeem_n of_o sin_n daniel_n be_v in_o captivity_n thus_o confess_v his_o sin_n 5._o dan_o 9_o 5._o we_o have_v sin_v say_v he_o and_o deal_v uniustlie_o etc._n etc._n he_o say_v not_o they_o have_v sin_v but_o we._n and_o esaie_n say_v 6_o esaie_n 64_o 6_o all_o our_o righteousness_n be_v like_a unto_o filthy_a rag_n indeed_o in_o saint_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a righteousness_n but_o no_o such_o whereof_o they_o may_v boast_v before_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n wherefore_o if_o they_o suffer_v some_o punishment_n they_o have_v no_o just_a cause_n to_o complain_v 51_o but_o thou_o will_v say_v wherefore_o be_v god_n say_v to_o revenge_n on_o they_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o man_n when_o as_o they_o themselves_o also_o do_v sin_n he_o shall_v rather_o be_v say_v to_o punish_v their_o sin_n than_o the_o sin_n of_o their_o parent_n i_o answer_v because_o when_o god_n have_v long_o and_o many_o day_n expect_v their_o father_n repentance_n &_o yet_o perceive_v no_o amendment_n &_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n be_v come_v at_o the_o length_n he_o pour_v out_o his_o wrath_n on_o the_o child_n now_o they_o be_v say_v to_o suffer_v for_o their_o parent_n because_o have_v it_o not_o be_v that_o the_o wickedness_n of_o their_o parent_n have_v go_v before_o their_o punishment_n may_v have_v be_v delay_v long_o but_o now_o since_o they_o happen_v to_o be_v in_o the_o three_o or_o four_o generation_n the_o nature_n of_o god_n justice_n suffer_v not_o that_o the_o punishment_n shall_v be_v long_o defer_v and_o although_o themselves_o deserve_v those_o evil_n yet_o in_o that_o they_o be_v correct_v in_o the_o three_o &_o four_o generation_n they_o owe_v it_o to_o their_o parent_n and_o so_o god_n do_v terrify_v the_o parent_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v stay_v themselves_o from_o wickedness_n if_o not_o for_o god_n cause_n or_o their_o own_o sake_n yet_o at_o the_o lest_o wise_a for_o their_o posterity_n sake_n he_o make_v also_o the_o child_n afraid_a lest_o they_o shall_v imitate_v the_o sin_n of_o their_o parent_n that_o the_o punishment_n due_a unto_o the_o parent_n may_v not_o be_v renew_v upon_o they_o and_o it_o be_v no_o injustice_n that_o the_o child_n suffer_v somewhat_o for_o their_o parent_n for_o even_o for_o their_o father_n sake_n they_o receive_v inheritance_n and_o be_v endue_v with_o honour_n and_o renown_n before_o other_o for_o god_n not_o only_o give_v good_a success_n unto_o david_n but_o favour_v his_o posterity_n also_o for_o his_o sake_n since_o the_o kingdom_n do_v continue_v in_o his_o family_n by_o the_o space_n of_o four_o hundred_o year_n parent_n as_o touch_v eternal_a salvation_n the_o child_n be_v not_o punish_v for_o their_o parent_n but_o as_o touch_v eternal_a salvation_n neither_o do_v the_o father_n suffer_v punishment_n for_o their_o child_n nor_o yet_o the_o child_n for_o their_o father_n but_o many_o spiritual_a gift_n be_v by_o good_a parent_n obtain_v for_o their_o child_n for_o paul_n say_v in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinth_n the_o 7._o chapter_n otherwise_o your_o child_n shall_v be_v unclean_a but_o now_o they_o be_v holy_a wherefore_o of_o godly_a parent_n the_o child_n have_v some_o holiness_n and_o some_o spiritual_a gift_n as_o that_o place_n teach_v on_o the_o contrary_a part_n by_o evil_a parent_n many_o such_o good_a thing_n be_v hinder_v neither_o be_v they_o be_v evil_a and_o impenitent_a hear_v of_o god_n when_o they_o desire_v spiritual_a gift_n for_o their_o child_n but_o it_o come_v oftentimes_o to_o pass_v through_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n that_o of_o good_a parent_n be_v bear_v evil_a child_n and_o of_o ill_a parent_n good_a child_n as_o ezechias_n a_o good_a king_n have_v the_o wicked_a king_n achas_n to_o his_o father_n and_o contrariwise_o the_o same_o ezechias_n a_o very_a godly_a prince_n beget_v manasses_n a_o most_o wicked_a and_o cruel_a king_n the_o same_o also_o i_o may_v say_v of_o josias_n this_o happen_v thus_o lest_o wickedness_n shall_v grow_v out_o of_o measure_n if_o continual_o evil_a child_n shall_v be_v beget_v of_o evil_a parent_n god_n work_v therein_o who_o make_v the_o child_n bear_v of_o a_o evil_a father_n to_o become_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o he_o show_v therewithal_o that_o his_o goodness_n can_v not_o be_v hinder_v by_o the_o parent_n good_a why_o good_a child_n be_v bear_v of_o ill_a parent_n and_o ill_o of_o good_a though_o they_o be_v evil_a furthermore_o evil_a child_n be_v bear_v of_o good_a parent_n that_o grace_n may_v be_v confirm_v and_o lest_o that_o the_o good_a behaviour_n of_o the_o child_n shall_v be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o nature_n which_o they_o take_v from_o their_o parent_n for_o god_n will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v acknowledge_v his_o gift_n that_o we_o be_v save_v 52_o one_o only_a thing_n be_v to_o be_v add_v to_o this_o question_n propose_v namely_o that_o indeed_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o god_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v to_o punish_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o child_n but_o unto_o man_n this_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o in_o deuteronomie_n the_o 24._o chapter_n it_o be_v plain_o say_v let_v not_o the_o father_n be_v punish_v for_o the_o child_n 16._o verse_n 16._o nor_o yet_o the_o child_n for_o the_o parent_n which_o must_v be_v understand_v so_o that_o the_o father_n consent_v not_o unto_o the_o son_n nor_o the_o son_n unto_o the_o father_n wherefore_o if_o achan_n have_v be_v call_v into_o the_o place_n of_o judgement_n and_o unto_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n he_o alone_o shall_v have_v perish_v by_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o the_o law_n and_o not_o his_o child_n together_o with_o he_o but_o god_n have_v this_o law_n peculiar_a unto_o himself_o who_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v otherwise_o howbeit_o he_o sometime_o also_o
he_o that_o be_v a_o forswearer_n do_v always_o beguile_v and_o deceive_v which_o be_v to_o seduce_v the_o reason_n of_o man_n politic_a governement_n and_o commonweal_n also_o be_v overthrow_v unless_o we_o stand_v unto_o our_o oath_n &_o covenant_n and_o this_o the_o hebrews_n in_o a_o certain_a apollogie_n of_o they_o do_v declare_v who_o write_v that_o when_o the_o table_n be_v give_v upon_o mount_n sina_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o law_n be_v make_v concern_v perjury_n the_o whole_a world_n be_v shake_v enemy_n faith_n or_o promise_n must_v be_v keep_v even_o with_o enemy_n let_v every_o one_o therefore_o beware_v of_o it_o and_o let_v he_o keep_v faith_n even_o with_o his_o enemy_n with_o thief_n and_o murderer_n though_o it_o be_v with_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o good_n or_o life_n for_o this_o cause_n regulus_n be_v commend_v who_o return_v to_o the_o carthaginian_n although_o he_o know_v that_o at_o his_o return_n he_o shall_v suffer_v most_o gréevous_a punishment_n for_o he_o mind_v to_o satisfy_v his_o oath_n augustine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la not_o without_o just_a cause_n set_v forth_o his_o praise_n albeit_o his_o counsel_n whereby_o he_o hinder_v the_o peace_n can_v be_v praise_v or_o allow_v but_o in_o that_o he_o will_v in_o any_o wise_a keep_v his_o oath_n inviolate_a even_o to_o the_o hazard_n of_o his_o own_o life_n do_v not_o that_o deserve_v very_o great_a admiration_n neither_o be_v it_o any_o let_v which_o some_o man_n say_v that_o by_o return_v unto_o thief_n murderer_n and_o cruel_a man_n if_o a_o man_n know_v for_o a_o certainty_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v slay_v be_v to_o cast_v himself_o into_o danger_n and_o to_o tempt_v god_n for_o this_o man_n be_v now_o already_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n deliver_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o enemy_n neither_o do_v he_o escape_v thence_o without_o use_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n wherefore_o it_o behoove_v he_o to_o return_v lest_o god_n shall_v be_v have_v in_o derision_n unless_o it_o have_v be_v reveal_v unto_o he_o that_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n swear_v deceitful_a word_n in_o swear_v 9_o moreover_o we_o offend_v in_o a_o oath_n if_o a_o man_n use_v crafty_a and_o deceitful_a word_n purpose_v to_o take_v they_o according_a as_o he_o himself_o understand_v they_o and_o not_o as_o it_o seem_v to_o the_o ear_n of_o they_o which_o stand_v by_o such_o a_o man_n be_v not_o exempt_v from_o perjury_n for_o a_o oath_n be_v devise_v to_o finish_v controversy_n hebrews_n 6._o 16._o heb._n 6_o 16._o not_o to_o sow_v they_o and_o to_o stir_v they_o up_o more_o neither_o ought_v we_o to_o use_v this_o remedy_n to_o the_o deceive_a and_o beguile_v of_o mind_n which_o serve_v to_o the_o establish_n of_o they_o far_o be_v it_o that_o deceit_n shall_v arise_v from_o thence_o where_o truth_n ought_v most_o of_o all_o to_o show_v itself_o swear_n of_o rash_a swear_n also_o let_v we_o take_v heed_n of_o a_o other_o defect_n in_o swear_v namely_o that_o we_o swear_v not_o often_o for_o light_a cause_n and_o rash_o be_v urge_v thereunto_o by_o no_o necessity_n whereby_o the_o word_n of_o god_n may_v be_v of_o the_o less_o estimation_n seldom_o therefore_o must_v any_o swear_n be_v use_v and_o that_o for_o weighty_a cause_n and_o so_o shall_v we_o the_o better_o avoid_v perjury_n yea_o and_o augustine_n in_o the_o 28._o sermon_n de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la apostoli_fw-la write_v that_o christ_n and_o james_n the_o apostle_n forbid_v a_o oath_n not_o to_o the_o end_n they_o will_v utterlie_o take_v away_o the_o same_o from_o the_o affair_n of_o man_n but_o because_o we_o may_v beware_v of_o perjury_n in_o not_o swear_v upon_o light_a occasion_n 10_o last_o in_o a_o oath_n let_v we_o avoid_v this_o that_o we_o swear_v it_o not_o by_o the_o name_n of_o idol_n for_o that_o be_v forbid_v in_o the_o 23._o chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la and_o in_o the_o 23._o chapter_n of_o josua_n 2_o exo._n 23_o 13._o look_v in._n 2._o sam._n 23._o 12._o josu_fw-la 23_o 2_o and_o god_n will_v have_v we_o to_o swear_v by_o his_o own_o name_n for_o herein_o the_o worship_v of_o god_n be_v intermingle_v which_o shall_v not_o be_v attribute_v unto_o idol_n howbeit_o augustine_n in_o his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la publicolam_fw-la grant_v unto_o the_o faithful_a that_o when_o need_n shall_v require_v they_o may_v take_v a_o oath_n of_o the_o infidel_n in_o the_o name_n of_o their_o idol_n for_o otherwise_o there_o can_v be_v no_o peace_n nor_o truce_n confirm_v with_o they_o in_o a_o oath_n there_o be_v chéeflie_o this_o confirmation_n of_o the_o will_n which_o be_v a_o certain_a good_a thing_n that_o we_o may_v use_v when_o we_o have_v need_n and_o whereas_o they_o offer_v not_o the_o same_o but_o under_o the_o name_n of_o idol_n it_o gréeve_v we_o and_o if_o it_o lie_v in_o we_o to_o amend_v it_o we_o will_v willing_o do_v it_o once_o say_v he_o we_o read_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v do_v by_o jacob_n when_o he_o take_v a_o oath_n of_o laban_n 57_o gen._n 31_o 57_o laban_n swear_v by_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n and_o by_o the_o god_n of_o nachor_n his_o father_n and_o by_o the_o god_n of_o their_o father_n but_o whereas_o they_o be_v idolater_n in_o babel_n and_o in_o mesopotamia_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o that_o oath_n be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o name_n of_o strange_a god_n as_o aben-ezra_n do_v testify_v upon_o that_o place_n but_o if_o so_o be_v thou_o will_v say_v that_o there_o the_o name_n of_o faithful_a abraham_n be_v mingle_v with_o the_o other_o it_o make_v no_o matter_n at_o all_o because_o he_o join_v unto_o he_o nachor_n and_o the_o father_n of_o they_o that_o thou_o maââ¦_n understand_v abraham_n to_o be_v there_o comprehend_v under_o the_o name_n of_o that_o worship_a under_o the_o which_o he_o live_v in_o his_o own_o country_n with_o his_o parent_n which_o be_v idolater_n as_o we_o read_v in_o last_o of_o josua_n but_o jacob_n swear_v by_o the_o true_a god_n 2._o ibidem_fw-la 2._o who_o he_o call_v the_o fear_n of_o isaak_n wherefore_o every_o one_o swear_v there_o according_a to_o his_o own_o religion_n these_o thing_n be_v speak_v probable_o howbeit_o i_o know_v that_o some_o of_o the_o father_n be_v of_o the_o mind_n that_o laban_n swear_v there_o by_o the_o true_a god_n but_o augustine_n in_o the_o place_n which_o i_o have_v now_o allege_v make_v for_o i_o 35._o in_o 1._o sam._n 25_o vers_fw-la 35._o 11_o but_o it_o appear_v that_o abigael_n seem_v to_o swear_v by_o a_o creature_n and_o hereof_o the_o papist_n gather_v saint_n whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o swear_v by_o saint_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o swear_v by_o saint_n but_o that_o we_o may_v understand_v with_o how_o great_a reason_n they_o affirm_v it_o we_o must_v call_v to_o mind_n what_o be_v a_o oath_n a_o oath_n therefore_o be_v a_o call_n to_o record_n of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n end_n look_v the_o question_n after_o the_o common_a place_n of_o the_o mass_n in_o the_o addition_n at_o the_o end_n to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o either_o we_o have_v speak_v or_o promise_v when_o god_n be_v call_v to_o be_v a_o witness_n there_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o even_o that_o worship_n which_o be_v most_o high_a and_o singular_a for_o so_o we_o testify_v that_o god_n be_v present_a everywhere_a and_o see_v all_o thing_n and_o will_v punish_v if_o a_o man_n do_v offend_v and_o this_o be_v fit_a for_o none_o but_o for_o god_n only_o for_o saint_n neither_o be_v in_o every_o place_n nor_o yet_o see_v all_o thing_n and_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o all_o worship_v shall_v proceed_v of_o faith_n which_o faith_n of_o necessity_n be_v none_o insomuch_o as_o touch_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o saint_n we_o can_v learn_v nothing_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n why_o then_o do_v we_o call_v they_o to_o witness_v of_o who_o we_o know_v not_o whether_o we_o be_v hear_v further_o they_o can_v punish_v who_o they_o will_v wherefore_o these_o thing_n apperteine_a unto_o god_n only_o thus_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o sixth_o of_o deuteronomie_n 5._o deut._n 6_o 5._o thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o thou_o shall_v worship_v and_o thou_o shall_v swear_v by_o his_o name_n here_o there_o be_v a_o oath_n join_v unto_o the_o worship_v of_o god_n foolish_o therefore_o and_o ungodlie_a do_v socrates_n oath_n socrates_n oath_n the_o manicheis_n oath_n when_o he_o swear_v by_o a_o dog_n and_o a_o goose_n and_o the_o manicheis_n also_o when_o they_o swear_v by_o the_o light_n jerom._n jerom._n jerom_n upon_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n in_o matthew_n thou_o shall_v not_o swear_v neither_o by_o heaven_n
every_o one_o of_o mankind_n to_o show_v himself_o before_o the_o lord_n and_o that_o at_o those_o certain_a and_o determinate_a feast_n which_o i_o have_v before_o mention_v but_o the_o woman_n forsomuch_o as_o either_o they_o be_v great_a with_o child_n or_o else_o may_v easy_o be_v hinder_v upon_o other_o just_a cause_n be_v not_o bind_v so_o to_o do_v howbeit_o when_o they_o have_v no_o other_o impediment_n they_o come_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n end_n in_o gen._n 40._o at_o the_o end_n 6_o but_o to_o celebrate_v solemn_o the_o day_n of_o a_o man_n birth_n it_o have_v be_v a_o custom_n of_o all_o nation_n and_o in_o my_o judgement_n it_o be_v not_o do_v amiss_o so_o that_o there_o be_v use_v a_o godly_a modesty_n sure_o it_o be_v a_o notable_a gift_n that_o we_o may_v be_v reckon_v among_o the_o number_n of_o god_n creature_n and_o who_o doubt_v but_o that_o it_o be_v well_o do_v to_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n for_o it_o and_o in_o thanksgiving_a to_o testify_v the_o ioifulnesse_n of_o mind_n by_o a_o outward_a token_n of_o some_o modest_a banquet_n the_o use_n of_o honest_a pleasure_n be_v such_o as_o they_o have_v always_o godliness_n join_v with_o they_o but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v we_o remember_v that_o which_o we_o see_v happen_v in_o the_o banquet_n of_o herod_n when_o he_o celebrate_v his_o birth_n day_n for_o he_o use_v thing_n which_o be_v not_o decent_a namely_o the_o dansing_n of_o young_a woman_n and_o rash_a swear_n whereof_o follow_v that_o cruel_a example_n 6._o matth._n 14_o 6._o so_o as_o he_o strike_v off_o the_o head_n of_o john_n this_o be_v not_o to_o give_v god_n thanks_o for_o his_o great_a benefit_n but_o to_o serve_v the_o belly_n and_o greedy_a desire_n further_o it_o must_v not_o be_v allow_v in_o christian_n that_o they_o shall_v keep_v in_o solemn_a remembrance_n the_o original_n of_o their_o flesh_n and_o yet_o be_v forgetful_a of_o their_o regeneration_n in_o christ_n this_o benefit_n ought_v chéeflie_o to_o stick_v in_o our_o mind_n that_o we_o be_v plant_v and_o ingraff_v into_o christ_n the_o eight_o chapter_n the_o five_o precept_n of_o the_o honour_n of_o superior_n 12_o in_o râm_n 12_o honour_n be_v here_o take_v not_o only_o for_o a_o certain_a outward_a reverence_n wherewith_o we_o reverence_v the_o estate_n of_o our_o neighbour_n but_o also_o for_o the_o outward_a help_n sustentation_n and_o aid_n wherewith_o we_o reléeve_v they_o which_o have_v need_n but_o it_o have_v also_o other_o signification_n so_o therefore_o parent_n must_v be_v honour_v for_o which_o act_n reward_n be_v not_o only_o promise_v but_o be_v also_o give_v contrariwise_o we_o know_v that_o cham_n suffer_v punishment_n 27._o gen._n 9_o 27._o who_o have_v his_o father_n in_o derision_n wherefore_o in_o they_o must_v honour_n be_v do_v unto_o the_o image_n of_o god_n for_o this_o cause_n solomon_n 22_o in_o 1._o king_n 2_o verse_n 22_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o hear_v that_o his_o mother_n be_v present_a he_o rise_v up_o and_o go_v to_o meet_v she_o and_o receive_v she_o reverentlie_o have_v regard_n to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n honour_v thy_o father_n and_o thy_o mother_n but_o some_o man_n will_v say_v be_v it_o séemelie_o for_o he_o be_v a_o king_n to_o reverence_v she_o gellius_n aulus_n gellius_n aulus_n gellius_n in_o his_o second_o book_n entitle_v noctium_fw-la atticarum_fw-la the_o second_o chapter_n dispute_v of_o this_o matter_n say_v that_o once_o the_o precedent_n of_o creta_n come_v with_o his_o father_n to_o athens_n and_o go_v to_o taurus_n the_o philosopher_n &_o that_o there_o be_v bring_v a_o seat_n which_o be_v prepare_v man_n whether_o a_o son_n be_v place_v as_o magistrate_n ought_v to_o give_v place_n to_o his_o father_n be_v a_o private_a man_n the_o philosopher_n bid_v the_o father_n of_o the_o precedent_n to_o sit_v down_o who_o answer_v let_v rather_o this_o man_n sit_v point_v to_o his_o son_n for_o say_v he_o he_o be_v a_o magistrate_n of_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n but_o taurus_n say_v sit_v thou_o down_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n till_o we_o shall_v discuss_v among_o ourselves_o whether_o it_o become_v rather_o thou_o or_o he_o to_o sit_v see_v thou_o be_v his_o father_n and_o he_o a_o magistrate_n of_o the_o roman_a commonweal_n wherefore_o the_o father_n sit_v down_o and_o the_o son_n also_o sit_v have_v another_o stool_n bring_v for_o he_o then_o after_o much_o talk_n the_o opinion_n of_o taurus_n be_v that_o in_o public_a place_n and_o office_n the_o jurisdiction_n of_o parent_n be_v compare_v with_o their_o child_n place_v in_o authority_n cease_v for_o a_o while_n and_o for_o a_o time_n give_v place_n but_o that_o out_o of_o public_a action_n and_o public_a place_n public_a honour_n cease_v between_o they_o and_o that_o the_o son_n must_v give_v place_n unto_o his_o parent_n further_o the_o same_o author_n add_v a_o example_n of_o quintus_n fabius_n maximus_n who_o be_v make_v consul_n and_o his_o father_n come_v on_o horseback_n to_o meet_v he_o command_v he_o by_o a_o officer_n to_o light_v down_o which_o thing_n he_o not_o only_o take_v not_o in_o ill_a part_n but_o he_o reioise_v in_o his_o son_n which_o know_v how_o to_o exercise_v with_o authority_n and_o manful_o the_o office_n commit_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n wherefore_o if_o solomon_n do_v the_o part_n of_o a_o private_a man_n honour_v his_o mother_n he_o commit_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v meet_v for_o he_o give_v a_o due_a honour_n unto_o his_o mother_n he_o sit_v down_o in_o his_o throne_n and_o command_v that_o his_o mother_n shall_v sit_v down_o in_o a_o most_o honourable_a place_n by_o he_o but_o as_o touch_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v declare_v by_o she_o he_o refer_v they_o not_o to_o her_o judgement_n but_o he_o himself_o give_v sentence_n not_o expect_v the_o consent_n of_o his_o mother_n so_o as_o when_o child_n that_o be_v in_o office_n of_o authority_n be_v compare_v together_o with_o their_o parent_n the_o comparison_n be_v of_o two_o kind_n of_o paternitie_n for_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o son_n as_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n be_v make_v the_o father_n even_o of_o his_o own_o father_n when_o notwithstanding_o as_o touch_v nature_n he_o be_v a_o son_n wherefore_o he_o ought_v to_o judge_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v either_o speak_v or_o propound_v by_o his_o faither_o 6._o 1_o king_n 1_o 6._o 2_o furthermore_o let_v not_o parent_n be_v over_o mild_a towards_o their_o child_n indeed_o child_n be_v the_o bowel_n of_o their_o parent_n wherefore_o they_o can_v be_v correct_v of_o they_o without_o great_a sorrow_n to_o themselves_o which_o nevertheless_o must_v be_v light_o pass_v over_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o the_o safety_n of_o their_o child_n but_o this_o do_v not_o helie_n child_n in_o .1_o sam._n 2_o 22._o helie_n be_v too_o mild_a towards_o his_o child_n who_o over_o favourablie_o rebuke_v his_o child_n for_o he_o shall_v have_v set_v every_o one_o of_o their_o fault_n effectual_o before_o their_o eye_n since_o it_o be_v a_o light_a matter_n unto_o they_o and_o of_o small_a force_n to_o their_o hear_n when_o their_o fault_n be_v reckon_v up_o general_o than_o when_o every_o particular_a crime_n be_v with_o authority_n object_v against_o they_o and_o when_o they_o be_v sharpelie_o reckon_v up_o one_o by_o one_o they_o move_v they_o after_o a_o more_o vehement_a sort_n moreover_o he_o do_v not_o reproove_v they_o by_o avouch_v any_o thing_n but_o only_o under_o condition_n so_o say_v he_o the_o talk_n go_v so_o it_o be_v report_v unto_o i_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v if_o the_o thing_n be_v true_a which_o i_o hear_v you_o do_v gréevouslie_o offend_v but_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v this_o be_v your_o wickedness_n these_o be_v your_o fault_n thus_o hainouslie_o do_v you_o offend_v undoubted_o they_o which_o coldlie_o and_o mild_o do_v admonish_v seek_v nothing_o but_o to_o avoid_v ill_a will_n that_o helie_n use_v not_o severity_n and_o correction_n enough_o hereby_o it_o appear_v in_o that_o he_o be_v for_o the_o same_o cause_n reproove_v afterward_o both_o by_o the_o man_n of_o god_n 13._o 1._o sam._n 2_o 27_o and_o .3_o 13._o and_o by_o samuel_n which_o will_v not_o have_v happen_v if_o he_o in_o reprove_v his_o child_n have_v use_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o not_o the_o tenderness_n of_o a_o father_n the_o man_n be_v old_a and_o at_o that_o time_n man_n be_v wont_v to_o be_v more_o incline_v unto_o mercy_n josephus_n say_v that_o he_o from_o that_o time_n forward_o do_v weep_v in_o a_o manner_n always_o for_o that_o he_o expect_v a_o most_o certain_a punishment_n to_o be_v do_v upon_o his_o child_n by_o god_n chrysost_n chrysost_n chrysostome_n against_o the_o
of_o debt_n shall_v kill_v himself_o he_o also_o be_v pardon_v and_o in_o the_o code_n de_fw-fr illis_fw-la qui_fw-la possunt_fw-la facere_fw-la testamentum_fw-la if_o one_o shall_v lawful_o make_v his_o testament_n and_o afterward_o kill_v himself_o it_o be_v a_o doubt_n whether_o that_o testament_n ought_v to_o be_v of_o force_n and_o it_o be_v answer_v in_o like_a manner_n but_o if_o he_o be_v take_v in_o the_o crime_n or_o make_v guilty_a it_o shall_v not_o stand_v and_o as_o we_o have_v in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr re_fw-mi militari_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n omne_fw-la delictum_fw-la if_o a_o soldier_n will_v kill_v himself_o and_o can_v if_o he_o do_v the_o same_o either_o through_o irksomeness_n of_o life_n or_o impatientnesse_n of_o sorrow_n or_o else_o for_o shame_n he_o also_o be_v pardon_v yet_o so_o as_o he_o be_v discharge_v from_o the_o war_n and_o let_v go_v with_o shame_n but_o if_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o excuse_v himself_o he_o be_v punish_v by_o death_n in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr iniusto_fw-la &_o fracto_fw-la testamento_fw-la in_o the_o law_n si_fw-mi exhaeredato_fw-mi filio_fw-la in_o the_o paraph_n irritum_fw-la all_o these_o have_v see_v that_o it_o be_v sin_n for_o a_o man_n to_o kill_v himself_o but_o the_o athenians_n decree_v more_o sharpelie_o as_o touch_v this_o matter_n for_o they_o ordain_v that_o he_o which_o so_o die_v shall_v not_o be_v bury_v in_o the_o territory_n of_o athens_n they_o do_v not_o only_o confiscate_v his_o good_n but_o also_o they_o will_v have_v his_o body_n carry_v forth_o of_o their_o bound_n and_o why_o the_o roman_n deal_v more_o mild_o i_o perceive_v not_o unless_o perhaps_o they_o remember_v that_o they_o have_v in_o their_o city_n such_o as_o be_v lucretia_n caro_n and_o curtius_n who_o they_o will_v not_o number_v among_o the_o wicked_a by_o these_o so_o many_o argument_n i_o think_v it_o be_v evident_a enough_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o any_o man_n to_o kill_v himself_o neither_o for_o the_o escape_n of_o tyranny_n nor_o yet_o for_o obtain_v of_o immortality_n which_o thing_n cleombrotus_n ambraciota_n do_v themselves_o contrary_a example_n of_o they_o that_o have_v kill_v themselves_o 15_o but_o there_o be_v object_v unto_o we_o the_o example_n of_o cato_n of_o curtius_n of_o lucretia_n and_o of_o jonas_n which_o will_v himself_o to_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o sea_n and_o of_o razis_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o maâchabeis_n &_o of_o certain_a holy_a woman_n who_o memory_n be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o church_n who_o for_o defence_n of_o their_o chastity_n and_o religion_n slay_v themselves_o cato_n kill_v himself_o himself_o why_o cato_n kill_v himself_o lest_o he_o shall_v come_v into_o the_o power_n of_o a_o tyrant_n but_o if_o example_n ought_v to_o take_v place_n we_o also_o may_v object_v example_n of_o patriarch_n apostl_n and_o martyr_n who_o suffer_v patient_o all_o manner_n of_o most_o gréevous_a torment_n yet_o do_v they_o never_o kill_v themselves_o and_o these_o insomuch_o as_o they_o be_v our_o own_o citizen_n they_o shall_v more_o move_v we_o by_o their_o example_n than_o do_v stranger_n and_o foreigner_n especial_o see_v the_o act_n of_o these_o man_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o eternal_a law_n and_o express_v will_n of_o god_n and_o as_o touch_v cato_n particular_o augustine_n answer_v in_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la that_o that_o be_v not_o fortitude_n but_o weakness_n of_o courage_n for_o that_o he_o can_v not_o endure_v adversity_n the_o same_o augustine_n in_o the_o 19_o book_n and_o four_o chapter_n marvele_v at_o the_o stoic_n who_o do_v place_v the_o bless_a state_n in_o virtue_n and_o reckon_v not_o misfortune_n among_o evil_a thing_n and_o yet_o think_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v shun_v even_o by_o death_n for_o what_o reason_n say_v he_o be_v this_o that_o calamity_n be_v not_o evil_a and_o yet_o must_v be_v avoid_v even_o by_o death_n o_o goodly_a felicity_n say_v he_o which_o must_v be_v perform_v by_o the_o help_n of_o death_n and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o life_n be_v bless_v we_o ought_v to_o abide_v therein_o but_o if_o we_o will_v finish_v and_o perform_v the_o same_o by_o death_n it_o be_v not_o happy_a for_o what_o felicity_n be_v this_o that_o can_v be_v overcome_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o you_o will_v deny_v to_o be_v evil_a cato_n say_v he_o kill_v himself_o do_v he_o it_o patient_o or_o unpatientlie_o sure_o unpatientlie_o and_o in_o bitterness_n of_o mind_n for_o his_o patience_n be_v vanquish_v through_o the_o authority_n of_o caesar_n other_o thus_o excuse_v he_o as_o though_o by_o his_o example_n he_o will_v teach_v how_o mischéevous_a a_o thing_n tyranny_n shall_v be_v in_o a_o free_a commonweal_n and_o that_o the_o public_a freedom_n of_o our_o native_a country_n ought_v to_o be_v more_o dear_a unto_o we_o than_o life_n itself_o indeed_o our_o life_n must_v be_v spend_v for_o the_o liberty_n of_o citizen_n yet_o that_o must_v be_v in_o battle_n and_o conflict_n but_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o any_o man_n to_o kill_v himself_o by_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o warn_v the_o people_n of_o their_o duty_n by_o all_o just_a mean_n but_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o teach_v they_o by_o naughty_a example_n and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o cato_n be_v so_o careful_a of_o his_o country_n what_o profit_n do_v he_o to_o it_o by_o die_v by_o his_o life_n he_o may_v peradventure_o have_v profit_v the_o same_o but_o be_v dead_a he_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n do_v it_o a_o thousand_o way_n better_o do_v our_o paul_n for_o he_o when_o he_o be_v in_o prison_n and_o have_v suffer_v many_o most_o bitter_a punishment_n and_o will_v have_v account_v it_o great_a advantage_n if_o he_o may_v have_v die_v yet_o because_o he_o see_v that_o he_o may_v profit_v other_o he_o reject_v his_o own_o commodity_n and_o for_o other_o man_n sake_n desire_v to_o remain_v alive_a this_o undoubted_o be_v the_o part_n of_o a_o good_a citizen_n to_o think_v upon_o the_o public_a utility_n of_o his_o own_o citizen_n but_o cato_n before_o he_o shall_v die_v warn_v his_o son_n that_o he_o shall_v hope_v well_o of_o caesar_n and_o join_v himself_o unto_o he_o if_o this_o be_v dishonest_a by_o what_o reason_n persuade_v he_o his_o son_n if_o it_o be_v honest_a why_o do_v not_o he_o himself_o take_v the_o counsel_n that_o he_o give_v his_o son_n but_o it_o seem_v that_o caesar_n sufficient_o perceive_v with_o what_o mind_n cato_n do_v this_o for_o when_o he_o hear_v that_o he_o be_v dead_a he_o envy_v say_v he_o my_o glory_n he_o will_v not_o have_v i_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o his_o safety_n but_o he_o be_v ashamed_a to_o live_v in_o that_o city_n which_o shall_v be_v hold_v with_o the_o rule_n of_o a_o tyrant_n howbeit_o he_o shall_v have_v consider_v that_o that_o sin_n be_v none_o of_o his_o own_o but_o a_o other_o man_n and_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v ashamed_a of_o our_o own_o sin_n and_o not_o of_o other_o man_n unless_o they_o be_v such_o sin_n as_o be_v gather_v by_o our_o own_o default_n see_v cato_n procure_v not_o that_o tyranny_n unto_o caesar_n but_o ever_o as_o caesar_n grow_v in_o honour_n so_o he_o put_v himself_o against_o he_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o he_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o a_o other_o man_n fault_n but_o it_o be_v a_o very_a great_a matter_n say_v they_o that_o a_o man_n can_v kill_v himself_o i_o grant_v yet_o sin_n also_o be_v very_o great_a greatness_n may_v be_v no_o less_o consider_v in_o vice_n than_o in_o virtue_n but_o these_o man_n forsomuch_o as_o they_o be_v ethnik_n if_o they_o can_v be_v persuade_v by_o our_o example_n yet_o at_o the_o least_o wise_a let_v they_o acknowledge_v their_o own_o example_n whereof_o there_o be_v many_o find_v in_o the_o ancient_a history_n marcus_n artilius_fw-la regulus_n will_v not_o slay_v himself_o regulus_n m._n regulus_n but_o choose_v rather_o to_o return_v unto_o carthage_n when_o he_o know_v he_o shall_v go_v to_o most_o extreme_a punishment_n whether_o of_o these_o two_o seem_v to_o be_v of_o the_o great_a courage_n undoubted_o regulus_n since_o cato_n be_v overcome_v with_o impatience_n also_o lucretia_n be_v object_v lucretia_n of_o lucretia_n be_v object_v but_o augustine_n say_v that_o she_o can_v not_o abide_v the_o note_n of_o unchastitie_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n she_o kill_v herself_o for_o sextus_n tarqvinius_n enter_v into_o her_o chamber_n in_o the_o night_n with_o his_o sword_n draw_v threaten_a that_o he_o will_v slay_v she_o unless_o she_o will_v yield_v to_o he_o and_o that_o he_o will_v place_v a_o servant_n slay_v in_o one_o bed_n with_o she_o as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v take_v in_o adultery_n with_o she_o here_o do_v she_o first_o begin_v to_o deliberate_v
they_o shall_v deal_v more_o mild_o they_o threaten_v that_o they_o will_v kill_v themselves_o and_o when_o it_o be_v object_v by_o our_o man_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a they_o use_v to_o fly_v to_o that_o example_n which_o we_o have_v mention_v of_o razis_n 37_o 2._o ma._n 14_o 37_o and_o unto_o the_o place_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n if_o i_o shall_v give_v my_o body_n that_o i_o be_v burn_v and_o have_v not_o charity_n 3_o 1._o cor._n 13_o 3_o it_o profit_v i_o nothing_o wherefore_o it_o be_v lawful_a say_v they_o so_o it_o be_v do_v in_o charity_n donatist_n another_o argument_n of_o the_o donatist_n for_o paul_n reprove_v not_o the_o same_o save_v where_o charity_n fail_v but_o they_o fond_o and_o unlearnedlie_o deprave_a the_o word_n of_o paul_n for_o they_o as_o augustine_n say_v be_v thus_o to_o be_v mean_v if_o of_o necessity_n we_o must_v either_o die_v or_o else_o admit_v some_o mischéevous_a act_n it_o be_v much_o better_a for_o a_o godly_a man_n to_o die_v yet_o not_o so_o as_o any_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o his_o own_o death_n but_o to_o be_v ready_a to_o abide_v any_o thing_n do_v by_o the_o tyrant_n and_o executioner_n so_o may_v it_o seem_v that_o those_o fellow_n of_o daniel_n deliver_v themselves_o when_o they_o say_v 18._o dan_o 3_o 18._o that_o they_o will_v rather_o die_v than_o worship_v the_o image_n of_o nabuchadnezar_a and_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o have_v give_v himself_o for_o our_o salvation_n yet_o say_v paul_n 8._o rom._n 5_o 8._o if_o a_o man_n even_o so_o give_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v burn_v of_o a_o tyrant_n if_o it_o be_v not_o in_o charity_n it_o shall_v profit_v he_o nothing_o yet_o this_o also_o do_v the_o donatist_n vaunt_n donatist_n another_o argument_n of_o the_o donatist_n that_o man_n have_v free_a will_n in_o his_o own_o matter_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o man_n to_o kill_v himself_o if_o he_o will_n but_o this_o be_v ridiculous_a &_o vain_a since_o our_o will_n must_v evermore_o be_v draw_v back_o from_o sin_n for_o this_o both_o the_o holy_a scripture_n exhort_v and_o good_a magistrate_n and_o godly_a parent_n in_o their_o subject_n and_o child_n do_v the_o same_o 17_o but_o jerom_n upon_o jonas_n say_v that_o it_o be_v our_o part_n not_o violent_o to_o pluck_v death_n unto_o we_o but_o with_o a_o good_a courage_n to_o suffer_v it_o when_o it_o be_v offer_v unless_o perhaps_o it_o be_v chastity_n whether_o selfe-death_n may_v be_v lawful_a for_o keep_v of_o chastity_n where_o chastity_n be_v put_v in_o danger_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o one_o to_o kill_v himself_o for_o preserve_v of_o chastity_n of_o the_o same_o opinion_n ambrose_n seem_v to_o be_v in_o his_o three_o book_n de_fw-fr virginibus_fw-la for_o so_o he_o write_v of_o pelagia_n the_o virgin_n that_o the_o tormentor_n threaten_v she_o that_o unless_o she_o will_v worship_v idol_n example_n example_n they_o will_v ravish_v she_o and_o that_o she_o to_o avoid_v as_o well_o the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o cast_v herself_o down_o headlong_o this_o act_n do_v ambrose_n commend_v and_o he_o add_v that_o her_o mother_n do_v escape_v away_o with_o other_o two_o daughter_n and_o that_o when_o in_o fly_v away_o they_o be_v hinder_v by_o a_o river_n they_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n rush_v headlong_o into_o the_o same_o and_o by_o that_o mean_v they_o be_v drown_v eusebius_n also_o in_o his_o eight_o book_n and_o 15._o chapter_n when_o he_o reckon_v up_o the_o lewd_a lust_n of_o maxentius_n say_v that_o he_o bear_v inordinate_a love_n unto_o a_o certain_a matron_n of_o rome_n of_o singular_a beauty_n privily_o send_v minister_n of_o his_o lewdness_n to_o bring_v she_o unto_o he_o who_o have_v bind_v her_o husband_n and_o use_v all_o threaten_n towards_o he_o last_o obtain_v of_o he_o that_o he_o yield_v his_o wife_n unto_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o tyrant_n but_o she_o as_o though_o she_o will_v seem_v to_o obey_v when_o she_o have_v obtain_v a_o time_n to_o make_v herself_o ready_a be_v retire_v into_o a_o parlour_n do_v thrust_v herself_o through_o with_o a_o sword_n and_o that_o fact_n be_v not_o blame_v but_o rather_o allow_v example_n augustin_n opinion_n touch_v these_o example_n here_o augustine_n somewhat_o doubt_v what_o answer_n to_o make_v first_o he_o say_v that_o on_o the_o one_o part_n he_o see_v that_o law_n of_o god_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v and_o on_o the_o other_o part_n that_o they_o be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o church_n as_o martyr_n as_o touch_v the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o be_v resolve_v and_o concern_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n it_o may_v be_v that_o god_n by_o some_o revelation_n make_v it_o be_v know_v that_o their_o do_n please_v he_o and_o that_o they_o be_v stir_v by_o the_o motion_n and_o instinct_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o by_o the_o special_a counsel_n of_o god_n and_o like_v to_o this_o be_v that_o which_o we_o read_v to_o be_v do_v by_o samson_n 28._o jud._n 16_o 28._o in_o the_o book_n of_o judge_n but_o by_o augustine_n leave_n this_o comparison_n do_v not_o sufficient_o agree_v for_o as_o touch_v samson_n that_o he_o be_v set_v on_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n it_o be_v certain_a also_o god_n restore_v his_o strength_n unto_o he_o which_o he_o before_o have_v take_v away_o and_o samson_n when_o he_o die_v do_v call_v upon_o the_o lord_n 32._o heb._n 11_o 32._o and_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n give_v he_o a_o testimony_n of_o faith_n and_o godliness_n and_o reckon_v he_o in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o can_v not_o be_v say_v of_o these_o virgin_n for_o they_o have_v no_o testimony_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 13_o exod._n 20_o 13_o augustine_n add_v that_o that_o law_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v be_v certain_a and_o well_o know_v but_o no_o man_n must_v be_v persuade_v to_o kill_v himself_o through_o a_o divine_a motion_n unless_o he_o know_v and_o have_v a_o certain_a trial_n that_o it_o be_v the_o motion_n of_o god_n indeed_o i_o confess_v that_o god_n sometime_o do_v certain_a thing_n by_o extraordinary_a mean_n for_o he_o command_v the_o hebrews_n to_o rob_v the_o egyptian_n 1._o exod._n 11_o 2._o gen._n 22._o 1._o and_o abraham_n to_o kill_v his_o son_n yet_o may_v we_o not_o hereby_o pronounce_v any_o thing_n more_o than_o we_o see_v be_v evident_a by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n very_o i_o for_o my_o part_n can_v not_o allow_v of_o the_o fact_n of_o these_o virgin_n for_o whether_o they_o be_v do_v by_o the_o motion_n of_o god_n i_o know_v not_o neither_o do_v i_o think_v that_o the_o same_o can_v certeinlie_o enough_o be_v know_v of_o any_o yet_o may_v it_o be_v that_o they_o acknowledge_v their_o sin_n before_o they_o depart_v out_o of_o their_o life_n and_o that_o god_n forgive_v they_o undoubted_o the_o endeavour_n of_o defend_v chastity_n and_o religion_n be_v very_o laudable_a yet_o must_v we_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o defend_v the_o same_o by_o good_a mean_n and_o right_a consideration_n those_o virgin_n which_o do_v these_o thing_n be_v praise_v admit_v they_o be_v so_o but_o sometime_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v amiss_o be_v praise_v also_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v such_o as_o in_o commend_v thereof_o we_o can_v not_o be_v deceive_v 18_o i_o know_v there_o be_v some_o of_o the_o latter_a writer_n which_o thus_o decree_n that_o if_o any_o man_n himself_o whether_o for_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n glory_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o one_o to_o kill_v himself_o for_o his_o own_o sake_n because_o he_o can_v not_o endure_v either_o sharpness_n of_o punishment_n or_o reproach_n do_v kill_v himself_o he_o sin_v very_o gréevouslie_o but_o that_o if_o he_o only_o lie_v before_o his_o eye_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n because_o he_o perceive_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o shall_v suffer_v will_v redound_v to_o his_o dishonour_n he_o may_v so_o be_v excuse_v 30._o jud._n 16_o 30._o for_o so_o samson_n kill_v himself_o because_o he_o see_v that_o his_o misery_n be_v a_o dishonour_n unto_o god_n 43._o 2._o mach._n 14._o verse_n 43._o and_o that_o same_o razis_n also_o &_o those_o other_o woman_n which_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o do_v so_o likewise_o but_o this_o distinction_n do_v not_o weaken_v the_o truth_n which_o we_o defend_v for_o it_o be_v a_o steadfast_a and_o everlasting_a rule_n 8._o rom._n 3_o 8._o that_o we_o must_v not_o commit_v evil_a that_o good_a may_v come_v thereof_o yea_o and_o the_o martyr_n also_o can_v easy_o perceive_v that_o their_o death_n will_v redound_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n name_n yet_o be_v there_o none_o of_o they_o that_o kill_v himself_o 16_o 2._o sam._n 1_o 16_o even_o so_o may_v that_o
but_o as_o it_o command_v when_o it_o be_v overcome_v 41_o but_o some_o think_v one_o whether_o the_o power_n of_o desire_n &_o of_o anger_n be_v all_o one_o that_o the_o power_n of_o desire_v and_o of_o be_v angry_a be_v all_o one_o because_o contrary_n belong_v all_o unto_o one_o faculty_n but_o thing_n agreeable_a unto_o nature_n and_o thing_n hurtful_a to_o the_o same_o be_v contrary_a and_o therefore_o they_o be_v both_o object_n of_o one_o part_n of_o the_o mind_n as_o white_a and_o black_a be_v object_n of_o the_o sight_n a_o right_a and_o crooked_a line_n be_v object_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o science_n namely_o of_o the_o science_n mathematical_a and_o a_o whole_a and_o a_o sick_a man_n be_v object_n of_o physic_n hereunto_o we_o answer_v that_o the_o object_n of_o the_o angry_a and_o of_o the_o desire_a power_n be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v distinguish_v by_o that_o which_o be_v agreeable_a and_o that_o which_o be_v hurtful_a but_o that_o either_o of_o these_o part_n have_v respect_n unto_o good_a and_o evil_a howbeit_o not_o after_o the_o like_a manner_n the_o power_n which_o desire_v have_v respect_n unto_o good_a and_o to_o evil_a absolute_o that_o be_v to_o wit_n that_o it_o may_v attain_v the_o one_o and_o avoid_v another_o nevertheless_o otherwhile_o impediment_n and_o thing_n that_o do_v corrupt_v it_o do_v fall_v out_o between_o so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o difficult_a thing_n to_o obtain_v this_o or_o to_o avoid_v that_o and_o there_o do_v the_o power_n of_o anger_n show_v itself_o for_o the_o overcome_v of_o these_o difficulty_n it_o wrestle_v and_o it_o earnest_o resist_v the_o impediment_n to_o the_o intent_n we_o may_v either_o apprehend_v the_o good_a or_o avoid_v the_o evil_a according_a as_o we_o do_v desire_n so_o then_o the_o object_n of_o the_o angry_a power_n be_v good_a and_o evil_a according_a as_o the_o thing_n difficult_a and_o hard_o offer_v itself_o hope_n be_v chéefelie_o a_o affection_n of_o the_o angry_a power_n for_o it_o be_v carry_v unto_o that_o which_o be_v good_a but_o yet_o a_o good_a that_o be_v absent_a to_o the_o obtain_n whereof_o must_v be_v devour_v the_o impediment_n of_o expectation_n yea_o the_o power_n and_o the_o difficulty_n of_o the_o impediment_n must_v be_v overcome_v but_o in_o what_o order_n those_o faculty_n shall_v be_v place_v among_o themselves_o it_o hereby_o appear_v in_o that_o the_o force_n of_o the_o angry_a power_n begin_v at_o the_o power_n of_o desire_n and_o end_v also_o at_o the_o same_o for_o when_o any_o man_n have_v a_o injury_n do_v unto_o he_o he_o be_v sad_a but_o the_o affect_v of_o sadness_n pertain_v to_o the_o faculty_n of_o desire_n against_o this_o evil_a whereby_o the_o offend_a party_n be_v make_v sad_a to_o the_o intent_n it_o may_v be_v avoid_v do_v anger_n interpose_v itself_o which_o by_o revenge_n covet_v to_o repulse_v that_o evil_n but_o revenge_n as_o we_o all_o know_v be_v a_o hard_a matter_n which_o when_o it_o be_v perform_v then_o succéede_v gladness_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o power_n of_o desire_n and_o there_o we_o cease_v to_o be_v angry_a wherefore_o the_o power_n of_o anger_n be_v a_o defender_n and_o also_o a_o striver_n against_o and_o do_v resist_v the_o desire_a part_n for_o the_o angry_a part_n fly_v from_o labour_n and_o grief_n but_o the_o part_n desire_v overcom_v they_o endure_v they_o and_o enter_v into_o they_o whether_o it_o will_v or_o no_o and_o when_o the_o one_o of_o they_o enforce_v her_o action_n the_o other_o contrariwise_o do_v slacken_v it_o they_o which_o lust_n very_o inordinatelie_o after_o woman_n be_v not_o angry_a with_o they_o and_o they_o which_o be_v angry_a with_o they_o be_v less_o inflame_v with_o the_o desire_n of_o they_o wherefore_o the_o object_n of_o the_o angry_a part_n offend_v the_o desire_a part_n because_o as_o we_o say_v right_o now_o it_o fly_v from_o labour_n and_o difficulty_n whereunto_o the_o angry_a part_n offer_v itself_o &_o make_v itself_o ready_a to_o get_v the_o victory_n and_o it_o be_v a_o manifest_a thing_n that_o of_o those_o two_o power_n of_o the_o mind_n the_o angry_a part_n come_v the_o near_a unto_o reason_n for_o it_o be_v a_o helper_n of_o the_o same_o to_o execute_v wholesome_a counsel_n but_o the_o desire_a part_n come_v near_a to_o the_o sense_n and_o to_o deal_v by_o example_n in_o a_o matter_n which_o yet_o i_o think_v be_v plain_a enough_o boldness_n and_o fear_n be_v part_n of_o this_o mind_n be_v affect_n for_o boldness_n do_v affect_v a_o good_a thing_n which_o be_v difficult_a but_o fear_n fly_v a_o evil_a thing_n which_o be_v hard_o to_o be_v avoid_v for_o we_o fear_v not_o the_o evil_n which_o urge_v we_o not_o and_o may_v easy_o be_v avoid_v and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o affect_v in_o general_a whereof_o not_o only_o the_o moral_a philosopher_n dispute_v but_o also_o the_o natural_a philosopher_n and_o the_o physician_n and_o rhetorician_n 42_o now_o to_o set_v aside_o natural_a philosopher_n and_o physician_n affection_n how_o rhetorician_n dispose_v themselves_o in_o the_o move_n of_o man_n affection_n i_o will_v speak_v somewhat_o of_o rhetorician_n they_o doubtless_o as_o aristotle_n testify_v in_o his_o second_o book_n of_o rhetoriks_n do_v first_o endeavour_n by_o argument_n to_o make_v man_n believe_v that_o those_o thing_n be_v true_a which_o they_o affirm_v and_o then_o do_v they_o consider_v of_o the_o mind_n and_o affection_n of_o the_o judge_n and_o of_o those_o which_o hear_v they_o for_o that_o carry_v a_o great_a weight_n unto_o the_o cause_n for_o they_o which_o favour_v he_o that_o be_v guilty_a do_v believe_v that_o either_o he_o sin_v not_o or_o else_o that_o he_o make_v a_o very_a small_a fault_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o they_o shall_v hate_v he_o they_o think_v with_o themselves_o that_o either_o he_o be_v no_o innocent_a at_o all_o or_o else_o that_o he_o be_v most_o guilty_a of_o all_o these_o affection_n unless_o that_o a_o orator_n can_v change_v qualify_v or_o turn_v unto_o the_o contrary_a he_o shall_v labour_v in_o vain_a wherefore_o aristotle_n teach_v that_o three_o thing_n there_o must_v be_v consider_v first_o who_o they_o be_v that_o be_v prone_a to_o be_v affect_v either_o this_o way_n or_o that_o secondlie_o towards_o who_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o be_v so_o affect_v and_o final_o for_o what_o cause_v their_o affection_n be_v move_v either_o one_o way_n or_o a_o other_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o these_o thing_n be_v know_v they_o may_v easy_o make_v they_o serve_v their_o purpose_n but_o there_o be_v some_o which_o think_v affection_n whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o orator_n to_o judge_v man_n affection_n that_o this_o be_v not_o just_a or_o to_o be_v permit_v that_o in_o plead_v of_o cause_n affection_n shall_v be_v move_v since_o that_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o judge_n in_o discern_v aught_o to_o be_v at_o quiet_a which_o can_v come_v to_o pass_v if_o the_o affect_n be_v trouble_v by_o a_o artificial_a speech_n of_o orator_n howbeit_o they_o which_o speak_v this_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o they_o distinguish_v not_o the_o nature_n of_o affect_n by_o the_o use_n of_o they_o because_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o nature_n of_o affection_n be_v good_a albeit_o that_o the_o use_n of_o they_o be_v otherwhile_o good_a and_o otherwhile_o evil_a also_o sword_n be_v make_v of_o iron_n which_o be_v a_o good_a creature_n of_o god_n do_v serve_v sometime_o to_o a_o just_a use_n and_o sometime_o to_o a_o unjust_a and_o wherein_o i_o beseech_v you_o shall_v the_o orator_n offend_v if_o when_o in_o a_o good_a and_o just_a cause_n he_o shall_v see_v the_o judge_n ill_o affect_v towards_o the_o party_n accuse_v he_o do_v temper_v he_o with_o the_o art_n of_o eloquence_n and_o do_v draw_v he_o unto_o a_o contrary_a mind_n yea_o and_o stir_v up_o the_o motion_n of_o his_o hart_n to_o decree_v gravelie_o and_o justly_o here_o undoubted_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o offence_n commit_v but_o humane_a affection_n shall_v be_v direct_v unto_o the_o end_n prescribe_v unto_o they_o for_o otherwhile_o the_o auditory_a and_o also_o the_o judge_n become_v cold_a as_o unto_o who_o it_o shall_v not_o suffice_v to_o have_v show_v what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v unless_o they_o be_v draw_v thereunto_o by_o stir_v they_o up_o with_o a_o very_a vehement_a affect_v but_o those_o orator_n be_v to_o be_v reprehend_v and_o restrain_v which_o to_o this_o end_n direct_a eloquence_n for_o the_o move_n of_o affection_n that_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o judge_n may_v be_v disquiet_v and_o that_o they_o may_v not_o see_v what_o be_v just_a but_o yet_o for_o these_o man_n ill_a demeanour_n must_v not_o that_o profitable_a cunning_n be_v banish_v from_o the_o affair_n of_o man_n for_o so_o ought_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o
for_o even_o as_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v sodden_a have_v a_o pleasant_a taste_n so_o have_v raw_a thing_n a_o unpleasantnesse_n join_v with_o they_o together_o with_o a_o certain_a taste_n that_o be_v horrible_a those_o be_v savage_a and_o cruel_a which_o do_v torment_n without_o a_o cause_n as_o though_o they_o be_v delit_v with_o the_o torment_n of_o other_o man_n even_o as_o beast_n that_o know_v not_o goodness_n and_o honesty_n but_o have_v only_o respect_n unto_o sweetness_n and_o commodity_n either_o for_o that_o the_o sight_n of_o blood_n be_v delitefull_a or_o else_o because_o they_o will_v be_v feed_v with_o flesh_n now_o since_o cruelty_n consist_v in_o this_o that_o therein_o be_v a_o go_v beyond_o the_o measure_n of_o right_a reason_n let_v we_o see_v whether_o david_n and_o other_o have_v pass_v the_o bound_n of_o reason_n certes_o they_o follow_v a_o mediocrity_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o do_v belong_v unto_o punish_v justice_n for_o those_o be_v worthy_a of_o the_o great_a punishment_n david_n follow_v reason_n but_o yet_o a_o divine_a reason_n the_o which_o reason_n alone_o be_v call_v good_a god_n stir_v he_o up_o unto_o these_o thing_n not_o without_o a_o cause_n and_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o he_o since_o he_o be_v a_o grand_a capteine_n to_o follow_v that_o reason_n which_o god_n have_v show_v unto_o he_o 53_o that_o the_o ammonite_n be_v most_o wicked_a man_n we_o may_v know_v it_o by_o many_o cause_n first_o of_o all_o they_o against_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n shame_v the_o ambassador_n of_o david_n in_o cut_v short_a their_o beard_n and_o garment_n they_o give_v a_o ill_a judgement_n of_o the_o most_o godly_a king_n david_n namely_o that_o he_o have_v send_v that_o ambassage_n with_o a_o feign_a hart_n not_o to_o comfort_v the_o son_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o ammonite_n which_o be_v dead_a but_o to_o destroy_v he_o again_o when_o the_o head_n city_n be_v besiege_v and_o that_o they_o have_v slay_v urias_n and_o other_o valiant_a man_n they_o also_o vaunt_v against_o god_n this_o do_v nathan_n declare_v 14._o 2._o sa._n 12_o 14._o because_o thou_o have_v provoke_v my_o enemy_n say_v he_o to_o speak_v evil_a of_o i_o the_o child_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o thou_o shall_v be_v slay_v if_o god_n slay_v the_o child_n of_o david_n because_o david_n have_v give_v a_o occasion_n of_o blaspheme_a god_n how_o much_o more_o gréevouslie_o be_v they_o to_o be_v punish_v which_o do_v this_o thing_n and_o further_o whereas_o they_o have_v do_v injury_n unto_o david_n yet_o do_v they_o first_o move_v war_n against_o he_o and_o neither_o will_v they_o only_o hurt_v david_n but_o they_o also_o solicit_v other_o of_o his_o subject_n and_o tributary_n to_o forsake_v he_o they_o disquiet_v all_o those_o region_n of_o syria_n and_o mesopotamia_n and_o that_o which_o be_v most_o of_o all_o they_o burn_v their_o son_n and_o daughter_n for_o their_o idol_n sake_n which_o they_o worship_v and_o what_o marvel_n be_v it_o if_o they_o be_v throw_v into_o the_o same_o fornace_n like_v the_o punishment_n of_o like_a for_o like_v wherein_o they_o throw_v their_o own_o child_n this_o be_v a_o punishment_n of_o like_a for_o like_v and_o always_o in_o those_o punishment_n which_o be_v not_o reproove_v in_o the_o scripture_n we_o must_v fly_v unto_o this_o namely_o that_o god_n govern_v those_o father_n some_o to_o make_v these_o punishment_n the_o less_o say_v that_o all_o be_v not_o so_o handle_v but_o the_o signor_n and_o prince_n only_o which_o be_v as_o the_o stay_n and_o succour_v of_o the_o people_n but_o josephus_n say_v that_o they_o be_v all_o rid_v out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o the_o scripture_n also_o seem_v to_o make_v it_o a_o general_a punishment_n howbeit_o i_o will_v think_v that_o some_o be_v except_v for_o in_o the_o 17._o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o book_n of_o samuel_n we_o read_v 37._o 2._o sa._n 17_o 37._o that_o sobi_n the_o son_n of_o king_n nahas_n do_v help_v david_n when_o he_o be_v drive_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n by_o absolom_n whereupon_o it_o be_v gather_v that_o the_o one_o son_n of_o king_n nahas_n be_v slay_v and_o that_o the_o other_o be_v by_o david_n make_v ruler_n of_o the_o country_n these_o thing_n be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o be_v woonder_v at_o in_o he_o see_v he_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o true_a david_n which_o at_o the_o last_o day_n shall_v say_v unto_o all_o man_n go_v you_o curse_a into_o everlasting_a fire_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n those_o punishment_n which_o god_n shall_v lay_v upon_o the_o wicked_a in_o hell_n be_v not_o cruel_a they_o shall_v be_v as_o it_o be_v intolerable_a punishment_n but_o yet_o they_o procee_v of_o a_o right_a punish_a justice_n he_o say_v in_o the_o gospel_n 41._o matt._n 25._o 41._o bring_v you_o unto_o i_o all_o they_o which_o will_v not_o have_v i_o reign_v over_o they_o and_o slay_v they_o in_o my_o sight_n here_o let_v magistrate_n learn_v to_o have_v a_o regard_n unto_o right_a reason_n when_o the_o guilty_a be_v deliver_v to_o they_o to_o be_v punish_v it_o must_v not_o gréeve_v their_o mind_n to_o execute_v those_o punishment_n which_o be_v just_a and_o command_v to_o be_v do_v of_o envy_n 54_o now_o come_v we_o to_o envy_v 1._o in_o judg._n 8_o verse_n 1._o the_o same_o do_v cicero_n think_v shall_v rather_o be_v call_v inuidentia_fw-la than_o inuidia_fw-la the_o which_o word_n inuidentia_fw-la we_o may_v in_o english_a call_v envy_v or_o enuiousnesse_n differ_v wherein_o envy_n and_o enuiousnes_n do_v differ_v because_o among_o the_o latinist_n those_o that_o be_v envy_v be_v say_v to_o suffer_v envy_n but_o envy_v belong_v to_o they_o which_o pine_v away_o with_o this_o kind_n of_o grief_n and_o therefore_o he_o think_v that_o envy_n or_o envy_v be_v so_o call_v because_o they_o which_o be_v envious_a do_v look_v too_o narrow_o to_o other_o man_n prosperity_n wherefore_o envy_n a_o definition_n of_o envy_n envy_n be_v a_o grief_n take_v at_o the_o prosperity_n of_o other_o man_n especial_o of_o they_o which_o have_v be_v of_o like_a degree_n with_o us._n for_o a_o poor_a man_n envy_v not_o a_o king_n nor_o yet_o beggar_n noble_a man_n envy_n be_v of_o equal_n and_o such_o as_o be_v like_a unto_o ourselves_o and_o likeness_n be_v consider_v in_o kindred_n riches_n beauty_n age_n wit_n dignity_n and_o such_o like_a the_o cause_n of_o envy_v be_v not_o in_o respect_n that_o we_o be_v afraid_a of_o harm_n to_o come_v unto_o we_o by_o such_o man_n as_o we_o do_v envy_n for_o that_o be_v fear_v but_o that_o man_n of_o a_o certain_a hatred_n and_o stomach_n can_v abide_v the_o prosperity_n of_o other_o especial_o of_o their_o like_a and_o equal_n this_o work_v envy_n envy_n be_v always_o have_v in_o evil_a thing_n and_o it_o be_v gréevouslie_o reprehend_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n because_o it_o be_v most_o plain_o repugnant_a unto_o charity_n itself_o for_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 4._o 1._o cor._n 13_o 4._o the_o 13._o chapter_n the_o apostle_n say_v charity_n envy_v not_o for_o paul_n in_o that_o place_n do_v not_o take_v this_o greek_a word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o his_o proper_a signification_n but_o unto_o the_o galathian_o he_o have_v more_o plain_o forbid_a envy_n 26._o gal._n 5_o 26._o say_v be_v not_o desirous_a of_o vain_a glory_n provoke_v one_o another_o and_o envy_v one_o another_o in_o which_o place_n not_o only_a envy_n be_v reproove_v but_o also_o the_o mother_n thereof_o be_v show_v 1._o look_v in_o gen._n 26_o 24._o and_o in_o 2._o king_n 6_o 16._o judg._n 8_o 1._o that_o be_v to_o wit_n the_o desire_n of_o glory_n and_o this_o may_v we_o also_o note_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o judge_n for_o the_o ephrait_n envy_v gedeon_n because_o the_o glory_n of_o so_o great_a a_o victory_n seem_v to_o have_v come_v unto_o he_o and_o this_o affect_v bear_v rule_v in_o all_o those_o thing_n wherein_o we_o desire_v to_o excel_v neither_o yet_o do_v it_o forbear_v virtue_n for_o he_o that_o be_v envious_a will_v not_o have_v his_o equal_n and_o such_o as_o be_v like_a unto_o he_o to_o excel_v in_o any_o ornament_n of_o virtue_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o envy_n be_v conversant_a among_o such_o as_o be_v alike_o be_v that_o although_o the_o prosperous_a fortune_n of_o our_o equal_n and_o they_o that_o be_v like_o we_o do_v not_o pluck_v any_o of_o our_o good_n from_o we_o nor_o make_v we_o less_o than_o we_o be_v yet_o the_o envious_a man_n do_v so_o conceive_v of_o other_o man_n good_n as_o if_o by_o they_o his_o honour_n and_o dignity_n his_o gain_n and_o other_o ornament_n shall_v be_v diminish_v thing_n a_o envious_a man_n be_v call_v a_o
conspire_v new_a matter_n and_o at_o last_o alienate_v themselves_o from_o the_o commonweal_n they_o also_o see_v a_o great_a danger_n to_o hang_v thereupon_o lest_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v just_a and_o seveare_a in_o give_v of_o judgement_n because_o he_o will_v gratify_v his_o kinsfolk_n more_o than_o other_o last_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v free_a for_o they_o to_o have_v marriage_n within_o the_o province_n because_o magistrate_n may_v in_o a_o manner_n compel_v they_o of_o the_o province_n to_o contract_v matrimony_n either_o with_o themselves_o or_o with_o their_o friend_n 25._o felix_n be_v marry_v to_o a_o jew._n acts._n 24_o 25._o we_o see_v also_o this_o excellent_a law_n violate_v for_o felix_n which_o govern_v jury_n under_o nero_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o 24._o chapter_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v drusilla_n a_o jew_n to_o wife_n but_o what_o need_n be_v it_o to_o rehearse_v that_o these_o law_n of_o less_o weight_n be_v not_o observe_v when_o as_o that_o people_n have_v shake_v off_o even_o those_o law_n which_o we_o call_v moral_a and_o be_v know_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n cicero_n declare_v in_o his_o oration_n for_o cluentius_n that_o sassia_n cicero_n cicero_n a_o certain_a wicked_a woman_n be_v so_o inflame_v with_o wicked_a lust_n that_o she_o instigate_v her_o son_n in_o law_n aurius_n melinus_fw-la sassia_n the_o prodigious_a love_n of_o sassia_n to_o who_o she_o have_v before_o marry_v her_o daughter_n to_o refuse_v his_o wife_n that_o he_o may_v take_v she_o to_o wife_n in_o steed_n of_o her_o daughter_n which_o at_o the_o length_n she_o bring_v to_o pass_v and_o whereas_o that_o deed_n be_v account_v full_a of_o dishonesty_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o punish_v by_o the_o law_n neither_o do_v we_o read_v that_o the_o matrimony_n which_o cicero_n affirm_v be_v unluckilie_o contract_v without_o order_n or_o authority_n be_v dissolve_v by_o the_o power_n and_o commandment_n of_o the_o magistrate_n wherefore_o there_o be_v here_o also_o offer_v a_o good_a reason_n why_o god_n will_v again_o inculcate_v by_o a_o new_a law_n those_o thing_n which_o by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n be_v judge_v to_o be_v honest_a for_o the_o bound_n bar_n &_o closure_n of_o nature_n be_v break_v by_o the_o impotent_a lust_n of_o man_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v to_o be_v make_v sure_a by_o another_o bond_n for_o the_o israelit_n be_v no_o more_o shamefast_a in_o keep_v of_o natural_a honesty_n than_o the_o roman_n be_v 44_o neither_o be_v this_o to_o be_v forget_v that_o god_n have_v certain_a proper_a thing_n in_o his_o law_n which_o may_v be_v call_v peculiar_a see_v all_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n but_o the_o hebrews_n only_o for_o he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o to_o contract_v matrimony_n with_o the_o chanaanit_n 16_o exod._n 34_o 16_o ammorhite_n jebusit_n for_o other_o people_n seem_v not_o to_o have_v be_v bind_v to_o that_o law_n neither_o shall_v we_o at_o this_o day_n if_o there_o be_v such_o nation_n still_o be_v let_v but_o that_o we_o may_v join_v ourselves_o in_o matrimony_n with_o they_o although_o the_o cause_n of_o that_o law_n ought_v at_o this_o day_n to_o be_v hold_v which_o cause_n be_v augustine_n the_o godly_a must_v not_o join_v in_o marriage_n with_o the_o ungodlie_a augustine_n that_o matrimony_n shall_v not_o be_v contract_v with_o they_o that_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a religion_n for_o we_o must_v beware_v that_o the_o godly_a be_v not_o join_v with_o the_o wicked_a i_o know_v that_o augustine_n concern_v unlawful_a marriage_n write_v to_o pollentius_fw-la in_o the_o second_o book_n and_o de_fw-fr sermone_fw-la domini_fw-la in_o monte_fw-fr that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o place_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n wherein_o by_o express_a word_n matrimony_n with_o infidel_n be_v forbid_v but_o of_o this_o matter_n i_o will_v not_o write_v much_o at_o this_o present_a see_v i_o have_v large_o entreat_v thereof_o upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n this_o will_v i_o say_v moreover_o that_o a_o good_a man_n in_o contract_v of_o matrimony_n aught_o to_o follow_v chéeflie_o that_o which_o be_v honest_a &_o not_o light_o to_o depart_v from_o commendable_a order_n &_o usual_a custom_n which_o be_v not_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o if_o there_o happen_v peradventure_o any_o doubt_n let_v he_o not_o think_v it_o much_o to_o ask_v his_o magistrate_n otherwise_o he_o shall_v rash_o put_v forth_o himself_o his_o wife_n and_o his_o child_n into_o danger_n for_o if_o he_o be_v marry_v in_o any_o of_o the_o degree_n prohibit_v he_o shall_v not_o be_v count_v a_o husband_n but_o a_o whooremonger_n and_o his_o wife_n shall_v be_v call_v a_o harlot_n and_o the_o child_n in_o that_o marriage_n beget_v shall_v be_v take_v for_o bastard_n howbeit_o the_o magistrate_n although_o he_o may_v not_o concern_v matrimony_n forbid_v certain_a other_o contract_n beside_o those_o which_o god_n have_v forbid_v yet_o can_v he_o not_o neither_o ought_v he_o to_o remit_v any_o of_o those_o which_o god_n have_v command_v and_o which_o he_o have_v forbid_v by_o his_o law_n yea_o he_o must_v most_o diligent_o take_v heed_n that_o he_o burden_n not_o the_o people_n too_o much_o or_o without_o a_o earnest_a cause_n as_o we_o see_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v do_v who_o have_v two_o way_n sin_v therein_o first_o law_n the_o pope_n have_v two_o way_n err_v touch_v these_o law_n in_o that_o he_o dare_v usurp_v the_o office_n of_o make_v law_n in_o a_o common_a wealth_n which_o undoubted_o pertain_v not_o unto_o he_o secondlie_o because_o in_o his_o law_n he_o follow_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o without_o reason_n forbid_v first_o all_o degree_n even_o to_o the_o seven_o which_o he_o perceive_v afterward_o not_o to_o be_v observe_v and_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v full_a of_o confusion_n he_o restrain_v his_o prohibitious_a to_o the_o four_o degree_n wherein_o he_o be_v constant_a and_o obstinate_a if_o there_o come_v no_o money_n in_o but_o if_o money_n be_v offer_v whereof_o he_o must_v have_v much_o bring_v he_o to_o fill_v his_o greedy_a desire_n he_o dispense_v as_o please_v he_o both_o with_o his_o own_o law_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 45_o this_o also_o must_v be_v know_v that_o god_n have_v in_o his_o law_n another_o decree_n which_o we_o may_v call_v peculiar_a because_o it_o shall_v not_o extend_v to_o other_o nation_n neither_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v in_o force_n at_o all_o time_n 5._o deut._n 25_o 5._o and_o that_o be_v that_o when_o any_o husband_n do_v die_v without_o child_n the_o brother_n that_o remain_v alive_a kin_n of_o marrieng_v a_o widow_n to_o the_o next_o of_o kin_n or_o some_o other_o next_o of_o kin_n shall_v marry_v she_o that_o be_v leave_v so_o that_o the_o first_o which_o shall_v be_v procreate_v of_o that_o marriage_n shall_v be_v count_v the_o son_n of_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a and_o as_o in_o the_o inheritance_n shall_v full_o succeed_v he_o for_o god_n will_v not_o in_o that_o commonweal_n that_o man_n shall_v altogether_o be_v extinguish_v and_o he_o provide_v that_o this_o division_n of_o land_n shall_v be_v keep_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v and_o see_v the_o same_o be_v not_o use_v in_o our_o public_a weal_n neither_o that_o god_n have_v command_v it_o therefore_o it_o do_v nothing_o apperteine_a unto_o us._n wherefore_o we_o must_v keep_v ourselves_o under_o the_o general_a and_o common_a law_n namely_o that_o no_o man_n presume_v to_o marry_v the_o wife_n of_o his_o brother_n be_v dead_a although_o he_o die_v without_o child_n and_o be_v it_o know_v unto_o we_o that_o in_o the_o beginning_n when_o only_o the_o family_n of_o adam_n live_v on_o the_o earth_n brethren_n be_v not_o forbid_v as_o they_o be_v afterward_o for_o brethren_n be_v drive_v of_o necessity_n to_o marry_v their_o sister_n howbeit_o afterward_o when_o as_o man_n be_v increase_v in_o number_n they_o begin_v to_o be_v ashamed_a and_o by_o the_o instinction_n of_o god_n or_o nature_n either_o to_o abstain_v from_o prohibit_v person_n or_o at_o the_o leastwise_o to_o know_v that_o such_o conjunction_n be_v full_a of_o ignominy_n but_o what_o time_n they_o begin_v first_o to_o abstain_v it_o appear_v not_o by_o the_o history_n the_o heathen_a poet_n perhaps_o show_v that_o necessity_n of_o they_o in_o old_a time_n which_o urge_v the_o family_n of_o the_o first_o parent_n to_o match_v the_o brother_n and_o sister_n together_o when_o they_o feign_v that_o their_o god_n have_v their_o sister_n to_o wife_n sister_n the_o god_n of_o the_o ethnik_v marry_v their_o sister_n for_o the_o chief_a of_o they_o namely_o jupiter_n have_v juno_n who_o in_o virgil_n thus_o speak_v of_o herself_o but_o i_o which_o walk_v the_o queen_n of_o god_n both_o
the_o ten_o book_n of_o titus_n livius_n that_o one_o fabius_n gurges_n which_o be_v censor_n have_v condemn_v many_o matron_n of_o adultery_n the_o amercement_n that_o they_o pay_v be_v money_n of_o the_o which_o money_n he_o afterward_o build_v a_o temple_n unto_o venus_n out_o of_o the_o oration_n of_o m._n cato_n which_o be_v rehearse_v by_o aulus_n gellius_n in_o the_o ten_o book_n gellius_n aulus_n gellius_n and_o the_o title_n be_v de_fw-fr dote_v we_o may_v perceive_v that_o before_o the_o law_n julia_n be_v make_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o slay_v both_o the_o adulterer_n and_o the_o adulteress_n augustine_n in_o the_o three_o book_n and_o five_o chapter_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la say_v whoredom_n woman_n bury_v quick_a for_o whoredom_n that_o the_o ancient_a roman_n use_v to_o bury_v the_o vestal_a virgin_n alive_a if_o they_o have_v commit_v whoredom_n but_o that_o they_o do_v not_o deal_v so_o sevearelie_o in_o punish_v of_o adulterer_n he_o say_v that_o they_o rather_o protect_v the_o temple_n of_o their_o idol_n than_o their_o own_o wedlock_n and_o no_o marvel_n it_o be_v for_o they_o worship_v adulterous_a god_n jupiter_n mars_n and_o venus_n after_o that_o time_n be_v the_o law_n julia_n make_v whereof_o there_o be_v mention_n in_o the_o digest_v and_o in_o the_o code_n many_o do_v false_o imagine_v that_o the_o same_o law_n have_v be_v make_v by_o julius_n caesar_n it_o be_v make_v by_o augustus_n who_o be_v also_o call_v julius_n for_o so_o much_o as_o he_o be_v the_o adopt_a son_n and_o heir_n of_o julius_n caesar_n suetonius_n say_v that_o he_o make_v this_o law_n and_o he_o make_v it_o upon_o just_a cause_n for_o his_o daughter_n julia_n and_o a_o néece_n that_o he_o have_v be_v most_o licentious_a monster_n the_o emperor_n use_v to_o call_v they_o his_o rot_a impostem_n when_o he_o have_v make_v the_o law_n there_o be_v bring_v unto_o he_o a_o young_a man_n take_v in_o adultery_n with_o his_o daughter_n julia._n the_o which_o the_o emperor_n take_v in_o so_o evil_a part_n as_o he_o slay_v at_o he_o with_o his_o fist_n the_o young_a man_n with_o a_o loud_a voice_n cry_v out_o thou_o caesar_n only_a have_v set_v down_o this_o law_n caesar_n for_o that_o he_o be_v blame_v as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o inconstant_a man_n will_v not_o eat_v his_o supper_n for_o sorrow_n by_o this_o julian_n law_n where_o first_o husband_n when_o the_o power_n of_o kill_v the_o adulterer_n be_v take_v from_o the_o husband_n in_o the_o time_n of_o cato_n it_o have_v be_v lawful_a to_o thrust_v through_o both_o the_o adulterer_n and_o the_o adulteress_n then_o be_v this_o power_n take_v from_o the_o husband_n and_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o kill_v the_o adulterer_n only_o in_o the_o digest_v ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la in_o the_o law_n marito_fw-la and_o in_o the_o code_n in_o the_o same_o title_n in_o the_o law_n gracchus_n yet_o i_o read_v in_o suetonius_n that_o claudius_n caesar_n kill_v messalina_n under_o the_o name_n of_o adultery_n but_o for_o so_o much_o as_o he_o be_v a_o emperor_n he_o do_v what_o he_o will_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o husband_n to_o kill_v the_o adulterer_n although_o not_o absolute_o but_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v take_v with_o the_o manner_n and_o in_o his_o own_o house_n neither_o may_v he_o do_v it_o to_o every_o one_o but_o to_o one_o of_o the_o common_a sort_n for_o if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o noble_a man_n unto_o who_o he_o ought_v a_o reverence_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a yet_o may_v he_o keep_v he_o shut_v up_o in_o his_o house_n 24._o hour_n until_o he_o do_v bring_v witness_n we_o see_v that_o there_o be_v some_o exception_n of_o person_n why_o leave_n be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o husband_n to_o kill_v his_o wife_n a_o reason_n may_v be_v give_v husband_n do_v sometime_o bear_v hatred_n unto_o their_o wife_n when_o they_o be_v contentious_a or_o deform_a they_o may_v covet_v to_o gain_v a_o dowry_n and_o to_o marry_v a_o other_o woman_n therefore_o the_o law_n will_v not_o condescend_v that_o the_o wife_n shall_v be_v slay_v howbeit_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o father_n of_o the_o adulteress_n to_o slay_v both_o as_o well_o in_o his_o own_o house_n as_o in_o the_o house_n of_o his_o son_n in_o law_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o digest_v ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_n but_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o he_o to_o kill_v the_o adulterer_n unless_o he_o also_o kill_v his_o daughter_n the_o reason_n be_v this_o that_o nature_n teach_v the_o parent_n to_o love_v their_o child_n hearty_o whereby_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o he_o will_v not_o slay_v his_o daughter_n unless_o she_o be_v take_v in_o adultery_n 25_o seneca_n in_o his_o first_o declamation_n seneca_n seneca_n seem_v to_o affirm_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a to_o kill_v they_o both_o for_o he_o put_v this_o case_n a_o certain_a soldier_n which_o have_v lose_v his_o hand_n in_o war_n find_v his_o wife_n to_o have_v fellowship_n with_o a_o adulterer_n even_o while_o the_o act_n be_v commit_v he_o call_v his_o son_n to_o slay_v they_o the_o son_n refuse_v to_o obey_v wherefore_o the_o father_n reject_v his_o son_n it_o be_v demand_v whether_o he_o do_v this_o justly_o or_o no_o but_o perhaps_o seneca_n have_v respect_n unto_o the_o time_n of_o cato_n but_o if_o so_o be_v the_o husband_n when_o he_o be_v in_o a_o fury_n have_v kill_v his_o wife_n be_v a_o adulteress_n he_o by_o the_o roman_a law_n shall_v have_v easy_a punishment_n than_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o absolute_a murtherâe_n for_o he_o fall_v not_o into_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o law_n cornelia_n of_o murderer_n his_o punishment_n be_v erile_fw-la which_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o pandect_n ad_fw-la legem_fw-la corneliam_fw-la de_fw-la sicarijs_fw-la in_o the_o first_o and_o three_o law_n whereupon_o when_o it_o be_v say_v by_o the_o canonist_n the_o 33._o cause_n question_v the_o second_o in_o the_o chapter_n inter_fw-la haec_fw-la that_o sometime_o it_o be_v lawful_a by_o the_o roman_a law_n to_o kill_v a_o wife_n be_v take_v in_o adultery_n &_o not_o by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n you_o must_v understand_v that_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o altogether_o so_o but_o because_o the_o punishment_n be_v light_a after_o a_o sort_n it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v lawful_a or_o else_o perhaps_o they_o which_o make_v those_o canon_n have_v respect_n unto_o the_o law_n of_o lombardie_n in_o the_o which_o that_o be_v lawful_a let_v we_o also_o add_v that_o the_o husband_n may_v by_o the_o roman_a law_n slay_v the_o adulterer_n not_o only_a when_o he_o take_v he_o at_o home_n with_o the_o manner_n so_o as_o he_o can_v not_o deny_v it_o but_o also_o out_o of_o the_o house_n when_o the_o case_n be_v so_o that_o he_o be_v suspect_v and_o that_o the_o husband_n can_v bring_v testimony_n that_o he_o have_v give_v he_o warn_v once_o twice_o &_o thrice_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v communication_n with_o his_o wife_n howbeit_o if_o he_o have_v find_v they_o talk_v familiar_o together_o in_o the_o temple_n or_o place_n of_o prayer_n than_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a so_o to_o do_v but_o they_o be_v deliver_v unto_o the_o bishop_n or_o defender_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o bishop_n be_v many_o way_n against_o the_o put_n of_o they_o to_o death_n neither_o will_v they_o give_v licence_n to_o kill_v they_o it_o seem_v that_o those_o first_o canonist_n be_v lead_v with_o a_o desire_n of_o save_v soul_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o die_v upon_o the_o sudden_a without_o repentance_n the_o latter_a canonist_n favour_v this_o matter_n perhaps_o because_o they_o more_o than_o other_o lie_v in_o wait_n for_o the_o chastity_n of_o other_o man_n wife_n wherefore_o there_o be_v many_o punishment_n for_o adultery_n provide_v by_o this_o law_n julia._n adultery_n the_o effect_n of_o the_o law_n julia_n touch_v adultery_n first_o the_o crime_n be_v bring_v before_o public_a assembly_n the_o accusation_n be_v admit_v not_o rash_o forsooth_o but_o by_o a_o certain_a order_n the_o wife_n if_o she_o accuse_v her_o husband_n of_o adultery_n be_v not_o hear_v but_o she_o herself_o be_v accuse_v the_o first_o place_n be_v give_v to_o the_o husband_n the_o second_o to_o the_o father_n brethren_n and_o uncle_n also_o may_v accuse_v and_o afterward_o at_o certain_a time_n place_n be_v give_v unto_o stranger_n divorsement_n be_v ordain_v between_o they_o they_o lest_o the_o dowry_n and_o donation_n which_o come_v by_o marriage_n both_o the_o adulterer_n and_o adulteress_n become_v infamous_a but_o after_o sundry_a fashion_n the_o adulterer_n not_o unless_o he_o be_v condemn_v the_o adulteress_n so_o soon_o as_o she_o be_v attach_v and_o there_o be_v some_o certain_a peculiar_a thing_n in_o the_o crime_n itself_o accuser_n it_o be_v not_o
justice_n hand_n against_o adultery_n as_o if_o he_o may_v say_v he_o have_v small_a courage_n that_o thrust_v not_o through_o both_o the_o adulterer_n and_o the_o adulteress_n but_o although_o the_o law_n be_v silent_a yet_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n show_v itself_o for_o it_o punish_v adulterer_n with_o madness_n with_o fury_n and_o with_o other_o most_o gréevous_a punishment_n even_o as_o we_o see_v in_o david_n adultery_n a_o distribution_n of_o the_o punishment_n of_o adultery_n these_o thing_n have_v i_o to_o declare_v of_o civil_a punishment_n which_o if_o they_o be_v distribute_v into_o a_o certain_a method_n be_v either_o punishable_a by_o death_n so_o as_o the_o magistrate_n himself_o punish_v they_o or_o it_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v do_v by_o private_a person_n as_o by_o the_o husband_n &_o the_o father_n of_o the_o adulteress_n or_o else_o if_o they_o escape_v the_o punishment_n of_o death_n they_o be_v note_v with_o some_o infamy_n the_o infamy_n be_v sometime_o naked_a without_o outward_a token_n sometime_o it_o have_v certain_a outward_a token_n of_o shame_n otherwhile_o the_o adulteress_n be_v set_v upon_o a_o ass_n and_o crown_v with_o wool_n sometime_o there_o be_v add_v a_o chastise_v of_o the_o body_n the_o wife_n be_v beat_v with_o cudgel_n their_o nose_n be_v cut_v off_o or_o else_o the_o punishment_n be_v of_o a_o other_o kind_n they_o be_v banish_v they_o forfeit_v a_o sum_n of_o money_n they_o lose_v their_o dowry_n they_o be_v divorce_v and_o may_v no_o more_o be_v marry_v 27_o now_o we_o will_v speak_v of_o ecclesiastical_a punishment_n and_o whereas_o many_o thing_n be_v show_v by_o the_o father_n and_o the_o counsel_n we_o will_v use_v this_o method_n that_o first_o we_o will_v declare_v what_o they_o have_v disallow_v in_o the_o civil_a law_n secondlie_o what_o ecclesiastical_a punishment_n they_o themselves_o have_v lay_v upon_o adulterer_n adultery_n they_o allow_v not_o death_n for_o adultery_n first_o the_o punishment_n of_o death_n like_v they_o not_o in_o the_o council_n of_o tribure_n chapter_n 46._o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o if_o a_o adulteress_n shall_v fly_v unto_o the_o church_n she_o may_v not_o be_v deliver_v unto_o her_o husband_n or_o to_o the_o judge_n or_o precedent_n the_o first_o council_n of_o orleans_n which_o be_v hold_v under_o clodovaeus_n in_o the_o 3._o canon_n have_v in_o a_o manner_n decree_v the_o same_o namely_o that_o adulterer_n may_v be_v safe_a if_o they_o fly_v to_o the_o church_n &_o shall_v not_o be_v deliver_v or_o else_o if_o they_o be_v deliver_v they_o shall_v take_v a_o oath_n that_o they_o will_v not_o hurt_v they_o and_o if_o so_o be_v they_o have_v not_o stand_v to_o their_o oath_n but_o violate_v the_o same_o they_o be_v excommunicate_v themselves_o the_o bishop_n challenge_v the_o punishment_n hereof_o to_o themselves_o at_o the_o length_n it_o come_v to_o that_o pass_n that_o the_o bishop_n to_o save_v they_o from_o death_n will_v have_v the_o judgement_n of_o that_o crime_n to_o perteine_v unto_o their_o court._n and_o this_o they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o if_o this_o examination_n be_v permit_v to_o lay_v man_n they_o will_v be_v too_o negligent_a therein_o as_o who_o shall_v say_v that_o they_o themselves_o be_v most_o severe_a and_o what_o i_o beseech_v you_o do_v they_o by_o their_o episcopal_a examination_n they_o set_v a_o fine_a upon_o their_o head_n and_o separate_v they_o from_o the_o marriage_n bed_n hereof_o arise_v innumerable_a whooredome_n yea_o and_o the_o naughty_a man_n themselves_o sometime_o abuse_v these_o wife_n be_v separate_v husband_n they_o allow_v not_o the_o adulteress_n to_o be_v slay_v by_o her_o husband_n moreover_o they_o allow_v not_o that_o the_o adulterer_n or_o the_o adulteress_n shall_v be_v slay_v either_o by_o the_o husband_n or_o father_n of_o this_o mind_n be_v augustine_n in_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr adulterinis_fw-la coniugijs_fw-la ad_fw-la pollentium_fw-la in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o second_o book_n he_o will_v that_o those_o private_a man_n shall_v forgive_v adultery_n commit_v 7._o reasins_z why_o the_o adulteress_n shall_v not_o be_v kill_v by_o her_o husband_n verse_n 7._o these_o reason_n he_o bring_v we_o be_v all_o infect_a with_o sin_n we_o have_v need_n of_o mercy_n therefore_o unto_o sinner_n we_o must_v show_v mercy_n and_o he_o use_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eight_o of_o john_n he_o which_o among_o you_o be_v free_a from_o sin_n let_v he_o cast_v the_o first_o stone_n against_o the_o adulteress_n he_o that_o be_v thus_o urge_v let_v he_o think_v with_o himself_o whether_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o sin_n 12_o matth._n 6_o 12_o forgive_v you_o say_v our_o saviour_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v forgive_v unto_o you_o we_o pray_v forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n even_o as_o we_o forgive_v they_o that_o trespass_n against_o us._n with_o what_o face_n can_v we_o speak_v these_o thing_n if_o we_o be_v so_o cruel_a in_o revenge_n god_n will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n 32_o ezec._n 18_o 32_o but_o that_o he_o shall_v turn_v and_o live_v why_o then_o will_v thou_o his_o death_n these_o reason_n be_v not_o firm_a in_o all_o respect_n for_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v understand_v concern_v civil_a magistrate_n no_o malefactor_n shall_v be_v punish_v and_o to_o what_o end_n shall_v magistrate_n then_o bear_v the_o sword_n as_o touch_v private_a man_n i_o agree_v with_o augustine_n that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o take_v such_o power_n upon_o they_o as_o to_o slay_v the_o adulteress_n and_o the_o adulterer_n if_o any_o man_n will_v say_v the_o public_a law_n do_v there_o give_v authority_n unto_o the_o husband_n objection_n a_o objection_n he_o be_v no_o private_a person_n even_o as_o when_o they_o command_v the_o soldier_n to_o fight_v or_o the_o executioner_n to_o put_v a_o man_n to_o death_n who_o be_v private_a man_n but_o if_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o magistrate_n they_o do_v that_o which_o they_o be_v command_v they_o be_v not_o private_a person_n any_o more_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o traveller_n by_o the_o way_n to_o defend_v himself_o against_o thief_n if_o they_o assail_v he_o if_o he_o slay_v they_o he_o be_v discharge_v for_o the_o magistrate_n at_o such_o a_o time_n arm_v he_o he_o can_v be_v sue_v at_o the_o common_a law_n the_o prince_n will_v not_o that_o his_o subject_n shall_v perish_v i_o answer_v that_o the_o civil_a law_n have_v give_v no_o such_o authority_n to_o the_o husband_n and_o the_o father_n of_o the_o adulteress_n but_o only_o have_v pardon_v their_o grief_n conceive_v they_o command_v not_o that_o this_o shall_v be_v do_v but_o they_o command_v the_o soldier_n and_o executioner_n to_o do_v their_o duty_n wherefore_o the_o similitude_n be_v not_o alike_o so_o also_o it_o may_v be_v answer_v of_o the_o travel_a man_n which_o be_v set_v upon_o by_o thief_n if_o he_o defend_v himself_o with_o a_o mind_n to_o kill_v the_o thief_n he_o be_v not_o absolve_v but_o if_o he_o kill_v he_o by_o chance_n or_o as_o they_o say_v by_o accident_n than_o he_o be_v absolve_v the_o case_n be_v not_o all_o one_o for_o he_o have_v no_o time_n to_o call_v upon_o the_o magistrate_n he_o can_v sue_v he_o at_o the_o law_n but_o the_o husband_n may_v shut_v up_o the_o adulterer_n in_o his_o house_n he_o may_v call_v for_o witness_n and_o deal_v with_o he_o by_o the_o law_n also_o the_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n and_o the_o canonist_n do_v not_o allow_v that_o when_o accusation_n be_v have_v the_o adulterous_a husband_n shall_v be_v hear_v and_o not_o the_o adulterous_a wife_n neither_o will_v they_o allow_v accept_v of_o person_n to_o wit_n that_o only_o the_o common_a person_n and_o not_o the_o noble_a sort_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n 28_o also_o they_o be_v against_o that_o rigour_n that_o if_o the_o adulterer_n or_o adulteress_n escape_v there_o shall_v be_v no_o reconciliation_n have_v augustine_n 30._o look_v art_n 30._o in_o his_o book_n a_o little_a before_o allege_v will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v otherwise_o if_o the_o woman_n say_v he_o repent_v let_v there_o be_v a_o reconciliation_n he_o allege_v reason_n thereof_o god_n must_v be_v follow_v his_o church_n do_v oftentimes_o commit_v fornication_n as_o we_o know_v be_v do_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o judge_n and_o king_n yet_o he_o say_v by_o jeremie_n 1._o jerem._n 3_o 1._o you_o will_v not_o receive_v your_o adulterous_a wife_n i_o do_v otherwise_o the_o same_o do_v hosea_n affirm_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n 3._o hose_n 1_o 14._o and_o 2_o 3._o if_o example_n shall_v bear_v stroke_n david_n do_v so_o michol_n the_o daughter_n of_o saul_n be_v give_v unto_o another_o 14_o 2._o sam._n 3_o 14_o that_o which_o be_v commit_v be_v adultery_n for_o in_o that_o mean_a while_n there_o be_v no_o divorce_n
david_n require_v to_o have_v she_o again_o also_o justinian_n do_v moderate_v that_o austerity_n for_o when_o the_o adulteress_n have_v be_v thrust_v into_o a_o monastery_n the_o husband_n may_v demand_v she_o again_o within_o the_o space_n of_o two_o year_n but_o thou_o will_v tell_v i_o augustine_n say_v she_o be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v my_o wife_n she_o be_v unpure_a and_o pollute_a why_o do_v thou_o cast_v her_o unpure_a which_o have_v repent_v herself_o she_o be_v restore_v unto_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n by_o the_o key_n and_o may_v she_o not_o be_v restore_v to_o thy_o bed_n will_v thou_o have_v thyself_o to_o be_v so_o serve_v on_o this_o wise_a do_v the_o council_n of_o arles_n determine_v which_o we_o read_v in_o the_o extravagant_n de_fw-fr adulterijs_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n si_fw-mi vir_fw-la sciens_fw-la the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n be_v these_o if_o a_o adulteress_n be_v penitent_a the_o man_n ought_v to_o take_v she_o again_o the_o gloss_n say_v be_v it_o the_o part_n of_o honesty_n or_o of_o necessity_n he_o say_v of_o honesty_n i_o infer_v if_o it_o be_v of_o honesty_n in_o respect_n of_o godliness_n it_o be_v also_o of_o necessity_n for_o we_o must_v do_v all_o thing_n which_o apperteine_a to_o honesty_n as_o we_o have_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n to_o the_o philippian_n 8._o phil._n 4_o 8._o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v true_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v honest_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v just_a think_v upon_o they_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o necessity_n because_o he_o can_v be_v compel_v thereto_o by_o a_o outward_a law_n it_o be_v add_v but_o not_o often_o that_o seem_v say_v the_o gloss_n to_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o gospel_n when_o it_o say_v seventie_o time_n seven_o he_o answer_v that_o he_o may_v forgive_v she_o so_o often_o as_o he_o will_v but_o the_o church_n will_v not_o often_o put_v itself_o to_o be_v a_o mean_a for_o the_o obtain_n of_o this_o reconciliation_n lest_o it_o shall_v seem_v to_o open_v a_o window_n unto_o wickedness_n moreover_o the_o church_n think_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v but_o feign_a repentance_n if_o this_o shall_v be_v often_o do_v he_o add_v peradventure_o these_o thing_n be_v speak_v for_o terror_n sake_n but_o if_o so_o be_v she_o do_v not_o repent_v she_o she_o ought_v not_o to_o continue_v in_o matrimony_n for_o then_o the_o husband_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v the_o maintainer_n of_o adultery_n and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o arles_n it_o be_v say_v he_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o partaker_n of_o iniquity_n jerom_n upon_o the_o 19_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n write_v she_o that_o have_v divide_v one_o flesh_n into_o a_o other_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v keep_v lest_o the_o husband_n shall_v be_v under_o the_o curse_n for_o he_o that_o retain_v a_o adulteress_n with_o he_o want_v wisdom_n if_o he_o be_v unjust_a which_o accuse_v a_o innocent_a he_o seem_v unwise_a that_o retain_v a_o offender_n but_o these_o thing_n must_v be_v understand_v with_o this_o exception_n adultery_n whether_o the_o husband_n have_v dismiss_v his_o wife_n may_v accuse_v she_o of_o adultery_n that_o unless_a repentance_n be_v have_v moreover_o it_o be_v demand_v whether_o the_o husband_n shall_v accuse_v his_o wife_n of_o adultery_n when_o she_o be_v dismiss_v some_o think_v that_o of_o charity_n she_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v accuse_v if_o she_o repent_v but_o other_o say_v that_o the_o crime_n be_v not_o to_o be_v forbear_v and_o that_o private_a magistrate_n shall_v put_v to_o their_o help_a hand_n to_o the_o root_n out_o of_o wickedness_n and_o that_o public_a weal_n can_v stand_v unless_o that_o great_a offence_n be_v punish_v 5._o deut._n 13._o 5._o also_o that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n will_v have_v evil_a to_o be_v rid_v from_o among_o man_n it_o be_v certain_a in_o deed_n that_o if_o adultery_n shall_v continue_v still_o the_o adulterer_n ought_v to_o be_v accuse_v that_o at_o the_o least_o wise_a by_o that_o mean_n he_o may_v be_v make_v the_o better_a if_o other_o convenient_a remedy_n be_v use_v before_o as_o if_o he_o have_v warning_n give_v he_o by_o his_o friend_n but_o admit_v that_o the_o party_n which_o sin_v do_v repent_v ought_v he_o notwithstanding_o to_o be_v accuse_v sure_o if_o the_o crime_n be_v open_o know_v and_o the_o party_n innocent_a receive_v the_o adulteress_n into_o favour_n by_o reason_n of_o repentance_n he_o shall_v seem_v to_o maintain_v sin_n man_n know_v of_o the_o adultery_n but_o of_o the_o repentance_n they_o know_v not_o they_o will_v think_v that_o he_o use_v brothelry_n if_o he_o accuse_v she_o he_o shall_v at_o the_o least_o wise_a purge_v himself_o and_o avoid_v the_o blame_n of_o infamy_n admit_v that_o the_o crime_n be_v not_o so_o common_o know_v and_o that_o the_o party_n in_o fault_n be_v repentant_a but_o she_o have_v conceive_v and_o be_v to_o be_v deliver_v of_o a_o child_n if_o the_o husband_n accuse_v she_o not_o the_o issue_n shall_v be_v his_o suppose_a heir_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o disherit_v he_o there_o will_v be_v a_o injury_n do_v unto_o his_o lawful_a beget_v child_n what_o shall_v be_v do_v in_o this_o case_n in_o these_o two_o latter_a case_n namely_o if_o the_o crime_n be_v open_o know_v and_o the_o child_n conceive_v counsel_n be_v give_v of_o the_o more_o learned_a sort_n that_o the_o husband_n shall_v not_o go_v unto_o the_o magistrate_n to_o desire_v the_o punishment_n to_o be_v execute_v on_o she_o which_o be_v penitent_a but_o that_o for_o the_o avoid_v of_o his_o own_o infamy_n he_o shall_v repair_v to_o the_o church_n and_o signify_v the_o cause_n whereby_o they_o may_v understand_v that_o the_o party_n do_v repent_v also_o if_o the_o case_n be_v show_v to_o certain_a person_n not_o for_o punishment_n sake_n but_o to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v know_v that_o the_o fruit_n be_v conceive_v by_o a_o adulterer_n which_o afterward_o also_o he_o may_v disherit_v there_o be_v find_v a_o remedy_n for_o these_o evil_n joseph_n 19_o matt._n 1_o 19_o when_o he_o see_v his_o wife_n marie_n to_o be_v great_a with_o child_n not_o by_o he_o be_v trouble_v he_o will_v not_o defame_v she_o and_o yet_o be_v he_o a_o just_a man_n on_o the_o one_o part_n he_o see_v it_o belong_v unto_o justice_n to_o accuse_v she_o on_o the_o other_o part_n he_o be_v trouble_v in_o himself_o not_o without_o the_o special_a providence_n of_o god_n while_o he_o be_v in_o a_o perplexity_n which_o way_n to_o take_v god_n be_v at_o hand_n with_o he_o so_o will_v he_o likewise_o do_v unto_o the_o godly_a in_o these_o case_n he_o will_v be_v present_a with_o they_o and_o will_v comfort_v they_o these_o question_n we_o fall_v into_o by_o reason_n that_o adultery_n be_v not_o punish_v by_o death_n 29_o thus_o have_v we_o see_v what_o the_o father_n have_v disallow_v in_o the_o civil_a law_n now_o adultery_n ecclesiastical_a punishment_n of_o adultery_n hereafter_o let_v we_o see_v what_o manner_n of_o ecclesiastical_a punishment_n they_o have_v be_v accustom_v to_o lay_v upon_o adulterous_a person_n cyprian_a in_o the_o four_o book_n and_o second_o epistle_n unto_o antonianus_n write_v that_o there_o be_v certain_a bishop_n which_o give_v no_o peace_n unto_o adulterer_n that_o be_v they_o admit_v they_o not_o to_o the_o communion_n but_o will_v have_v they_o perpetuallie_o to_o be_v exclude_v other_o give_v they_o peace_n but_o yet_o after_o a_o certain_a time_n cyprian_n think_v that_o a_o moderation_n must_v be_v use_v lest_o they_o be_v utterlie_o exclude_v from_o christ_n and_o cast_v away_o all_o love_n of_o religion_n he_o say_v also_o that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o trial_n make_v of_o their_o repentance_n for_o a_o certain_a time_n the_o space_n of_o time_n he_o appoint_v not_o the_o synod_n of_o ancyra_n in_o the_o 19_o chapter_n appoint_v seven_o year_n which_o space_n of_o time_n the_o eliberine_n council_n abbridge_v unto_o five_o year_n whereby_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o choice_n of_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n the_o council_n of_o neocaesaria_n decree_v concern_v clergy_n man_n that_o if_o the_o wife_n of_o a_o clergy_n man_n fall_v into_o adultery_n he_o be_v at_o his_o choice_n whether_o he_o will_v straitwaie_o refuse_v she_o or_o else_o depart_v from_o the_o ministry_n they_o seem_v to_o admit_v no_o reconciliation_n in_o the_o clergy_n i_o think_v the_o cause_n seem_v to_o be_v clergy_n reconciliation_n not_o admit_v in_o the_o clergy_n for_o that_o the_o family_n of_o the_o minister_n ought_v to_o be_v of_o good_a report_n moreover_o they_o add_v that_o a_o laieman_n who_o wife_n be_v fall_v into_o adultery_n shall_v not_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o ministry_n i_o think_v the_o cause_n to_o be_v this_o for_o that_o he_o first_o
a_o other_o difference_n in_o that_o the_o fellowship_n be_v with_o that_o flesh_n which_o be_v bind_v unto_o a_o other_o by_o the_o faith_n of_o matrimony_n why_o be_v it_o say_v not_o unto_o itself_o but_o unto_o a_o other_o to_o the_o intent_n we_o may_v understand_v that_o in_o the_o polygamy_n which_o be_v in_o old_a time_n there_o be_v no_o plain_a adultery_n for_o one_o of_o the_o wife_n when_o she_o be_v join_v with_o a_o husband_n be_v join_v with_o that_o flesh_n which_o be_v also_o tie_v to_o another_o woman_n therefore_o it_o be_v say_v which_o be_v not_o join_v unto_o itself_o but_o unto_o a_o other_o by_o the_o faith_n of_o matrimony_n further_o if_o we_o will_v more_o narrow_o examine_v that_o piece_n of_o the_o sentence_n to_o have_v carnal_a fellowship_n may_v be_v understand_v to_o be_v either_o in_o act_n or_o cogitation_n for_o christ_n say_v 28_o matt._n 5_o 28_o he_o that_o shall_v look_v on_o a_o other_o man_n wife_n to_o lust_n after_o she_o have_v already_o commit_v adultery_n in_o his_o hart_n but_o here_o we_o speak_v of_o adultery_n that_o break_v out_o into_o act_n not_o of_o that_o which_o as_o yet_o be_v within_o the_o hart_n 34_o moreover_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v more_o shameful_a for_o woman_n to_o have_v bastard_n than_o it_o be_v for_o man_n this_o also_o have_v proceed_v of_o man_n reason_n a_o shame_n it_o be_v both_o to_o the_o one_o and_o to_o the_o other_o but_o perhaps_o it_o appear_v more_o in_o woman_n than_o in_o man_n those_o place_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la which_o urge_v parent_n to_o keep_v their_o daughter_n or_o the_o body_n of_o their_o daughter_n have_v not_o respect_n unto_o this_o place_n no_o rather_o the_o wise_a man_n do_v consider_v that_o if_o daughter_n be_v corrupt_v they_o be_v to_o bring_v great_a harm_n &_o ignominy_n to_o their_o father_n house_n and_o the_o father_n be_v accuse_v of_o negligence_n but_o man_n child_n must_v also_o be_v well_o bring_v up_o howbeit_o the_o fowlnes_n of_o this_o fact_n in_o this_o crime_n appear_v elsewhere_o not_o in_o the_o father_n house_n nevertheless_o these_o thing_n bring_v not_o to_o pass_v but_o that_o they_o both_o commit_v sin_n an_o other_o argument_n but_o wife_n lose_v their_o dowry_n whereas_o adulterer_n be_v not_o so_o punish_v that_o be_v false_a for_o even_o as_o if_o matrimony_n be_v undoone_v by_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o woman_n she_o lose_v her_o dowry_n and_o donation_n give_v in_o respect_n of_o marriage_n so_o if_o it_o be_v do_v through_o the_o man_n fault_n he_o lose_v the_o dowry_n itself_o and_o donation_n also_o and_o must_v restore_v they_o unto_o she_o again_o somewhat_o be_v say_v of_o adam_n and_o eve_n that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o like_a fault_n &_o yet_o eve_n be_v more_o gréevouslie_o punish_v than_o adam_n eue._n a_o comparison_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n and_o eue._n here_o may_v either_o of_o both_o be_v say_v either_o that_o the_o sin_n be_v not_o of_o like_a weight_n or_o else_o that_o the_o punishment_n of_o eve_n be_v not_o more_o gréevous_a it_o be_v excuse_v by_o some_o that_o the_o man_n fault_n be_v the_o great_a for_o it_o be_v say_v curse_v be_v the_o earth_n for_o thy_o sake_n in_o sorrow_n shall_v thou_o eat_v of_o it_o thorn_n and_o thistle_n shall_v it_o bring_v forth_o unto_o thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v eat_v of_o the_o herb_n of_o the_o field_n in_o the_o sweat_n of_o thy_o face_n shall_v thou_o eat_v thy_o bread_n etc._n etc._n these_o evil_n be_v continual_a unto_o man_n he_o shall_v labour_v he_o shall_v eat_v in_o great_a sweat_n and_o travel_n and_o the_o earth_n give_v not_o unto_o he_o the_o fruit_n that_o he_o look_v for_o woman_n seem_v to_o be_v less_o punish_v only_o the_o pain_n of_o childbirth_n and_o conceive_v be_v lay_v upon_o they_o the_o which_o be_v not_o perpetual_a but_o the_o labour_n of_o man_n do_v always_o continue_v further_o the_o man_n ought_v to_o provide_v not_o only_o for_o himself_o but_o also_o for_o his_o wife_n child_n and_o for_o his_o whole_a family_n but_o if_o thou_o will_v say_v that_o the_o wife_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o husband_n and_o must_v be_v under_o his_o government_n this_o import_v not_o much_o for_o by_o the_o very_a constitution_n itself_o she_o be_v inferior_a unto_o man_n wherefore_o it_o may_v by_o this_o mean_n be_v deny_v that_o woman_n be_v more_o gréevouslie_o punish_v than_o man_n but_o if_o we_o will_v grant_v unto_o this_o we_o may_v also_o say_v on_o the_o other_o part_n that_o the_o sin_n in_o woman_n be_v somewhat_o more_o gréevous_a namely_o because_o she_o be_v seduce_v by_o the_o devil_n and_o so_o seduce_v as_o she_o think_v she_o shall_v become_v equal_a unto_o god_n and_o this_o she_o very_o much_o desire_v nevertheless_o adam_n beléeve_v it_o not_o because_o he_o see_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o be_v and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o seduce_v but_o do_v only_o eat_v to_o the_o intent_n he_o may_v obey_v his_o wife_n mind_n and_o make_v more_o account_n of_o his_o wife_n than_o of_o god_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o deceive_v with_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o error_n moreover_o the_o woman_n do_v not_o only_a sin_n but_o she_o also_o induce_v her_o husband_n to_o sin_n but_o on_o the_o other_o part_n she_o be_v somewhat_o lighten_v because_o she_o be_v the_o unperfect_a and_o be_v seduce_v howbeit_o if_o any_o of_o their_o sin_n be_v more_o gréevous_a than_o other_o the_o woman_n sin_n be_v to_o be_v weigh_v the_o great_a this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n in_o the_o second_o book_n distinction_n the_o 12_o and_o he_o allege_v many_o place_n out_o of_o augustine_n but_o i_o for_o my_o part_n will_v say_v that_o the_o man_n sin_n be_v more_o gréevous_a and_o that_o his_o punishment_n be_v the_o great_a by_o reason_n of_o his_o perfection_n and_o excellency_n wherefore_o this_o argument_n make_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n either_o the_o punishment_n be_v of_o equality_n or_o else_o the_o circumstance_n be_v not_o alike_o gréevous_a to_o be_v aggravate_v to_o they_o both_o the_o circumstance_n be_v many_o some_o be_v more_o gréevous_a in_o adam_n and_o some_o in_o eue._n 35_o also_o it_o be_v allege_v on_o the_o contrary_a part_n that_o the_o sin_n be_v less_o in_o woman_n sex_n why_o a_o consideration_n must_v be_v have_v of_o the_o sex_n for_o a_o consideration_n shall_v be_v have_v of_o the_o sex_n indeed_o this_o be_v to_o be_v grant_v yet_o the_o cause_n must_v be_v search_v out_o why_o those_o law_n be_v favourable_a unto_o the_o sex_n and_o there_o be_v a_o cause_n bring_v by_o the_o law_n themselves_o namely_o that_o woman_n be_v not_o drive_v to_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o law_n and_o custom_n and_o therefore_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o err_v and_o the_o error_n do_v somewhat_o mitigate_v the_o fault_n but_o here_o this_o err_a have_v no_o place_n for_o there_o be_v no_o woman_n so_o foolish_a but_o she_o know_v that_o she_o ought_v to_o keep_v her_o faith_n and_o promise_n with_o her_o husband_n but_o in_o incest_n they_o rather_o forgive_v unto_o woman_n than_o unto_o man_n because_o they_o know_v not_o those_o degree_n wherein_o it_o be_v lawful_a or_o not_o lawful_a to_o be_v marry_v and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o so_o gréevouslie_o punish_v woman_n whether_o adultery_n of_o man_n must_v be_v punish_v by_o adultery_n of_o woman_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v allege_v that_o the_o adultery_n of_o the_o man_n be_v oftentimes_o punish_v by_o the_o adultery_n of_o the_o woman_n as_o it_o have_v be_v say_v of_o agamemnon_n and_o clytaemnestra_n we_o answer_v that_o such_o revenge_n be_v not_o to_o be_v allow_v for_o that_o they_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o allow_v no_o such_o form_n of_o revenge_a true_a indeed_o it_o be_v that_o sin_n be_v punish_v with_o sin_n and_o he_o that_o keep_v not_o faith_n himself_o must_v not_o look_v to_o have_v another_o keep_v the_o same_o with_o he_o nevertheless_o this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o order_n and_o providence_n of_o god_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o any_o man_n to_o do_v ill_a because_o another_o have_v sin_v for_o by_o that_o mean_n evil_o will_v grow_v till_o it_o be_v infinite_a in_o that_o woman_n be_v somewhat_o forbear_v in_o the_o great_a offence_n of_o treason_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n for_o parent_n why_o in_o case_n of_o treason_n child_n be_v punish_v for_o the_o parent_n the_o cause_n why_o that_o the_o son_n of_o conspirator_n which_o have_v sin_v against_o the_o prince_n be_v punish_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o they_o be_v be_v lest_o that_o if_o they_o shall_v retain_v the_o authority_n and_o riches_n of_o
yourselves_o do_v and_o repent_v sin_n judge_n must_v not_o spare_v to_o punish_v other_o though_o themselves_o he_o guilty_a of_o that_o sin_n this_o also_o must_v judge_n be_v warn_v of_o that_o in_o the_o thing_n wherein_o they_o condemn_v other_o they_o be_v not_o guilty_a themselves_o but_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o say_v if_o yourselves_o have_v sin_v spare_v you_o other_o for_o they_o shall_v sin_v two_o way_n as_o well_o for_o that_o themselves_o be_v guilty_a of_o heinous_a offence_n as_o also_o because_o they_o punish_v not_o other_o which_o be_v guilty_a in_o the_o same_o this_o that_o belong_v unto_o himself_o 19_o look_v part_n 4_o plac_n 14_o art_n 19_o he_o give_v they_o warning_n of_o and_o in_o the_o same_o sort_n he_o do_v afterward_o unto_o the_o woman_n go_v thy_o way_n say_v he_o and_o sin_n no_o more_o therefore_o he_o discharge_v she_o for_o he_o say_v see_v no_o man_n have_v condemn_v thou_o neither_o do_v i_o condemn_v thou_o he_o see_v her_o penitent_a hart_n after_o what_o sort_n do_v he_o acquit_v she_o not_o from_o the_o punishment_n of_o death_n for_o that_o he_o leave_v to_o the_o commonweal_n but_o he_o accuse_v she_o not_o that_o may_v not_o christ_n do_v not_o in_o that_o respect_n that_o he_o be_v a_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n but_o because_o he_o have_v not_o see_v she_o nor_o take_v she_o with_o the_o manner_n he_o can_v not_o be_v a_o witness_n neither_o come_v he_o into_o this_o world_n for_o that_o purpose_n notwithstanding_o some_o man_n will_v say_v she_o nevertheless_o escape_v away_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v indirect_o not_o in_o respect_n of_o christ_n judgement_n christ_n deal_n be_v otherwise_o this_o be_v the_o scribe_n fault_n who_o may_v not_o abide_v to_o hear_v christ_n preach_v of_o repentance_n they_o every_o one_o depart_v one_o after_o another_o and_o leave_v she_o there_o alone_o neither_o be_v this_o a_o good_a consequent_a christ_n at_o his_o first_o come_n condemn_v not_o a_o adulteress_n therefore_o he_o punish_v not_o adultery_n he_o punish_v they_o oftentimes_o when_o the_o magistrate_n sword_n be_v still_o he_o do_v and_o he_o will_v do_v his_o office_n neither_o be_v it_o a_o good_a reason_n to_o say_v the_o church_n have_v not_o the_o sword_n it_o do_v not_o punish_v adultery_n with_o death_n therefore_o neither_o aught_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n to_o do_v it_o the_o church_n let_v not_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n but_o that_o he_o may_v do_v his_o office_n more_o slender_a be_v the_o argument_n take_v of_o joseph_n joseph_n of_o joseph_n for_o certeinlie_o he_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o chief_a justice_n of_o capital_a crime_n the_o crime_n therefore_o be_v of_o death_n they_o which_o be_v put_v in_o that_o prison_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n even_o as_o that_o baker_n be_v but_o the_o judgement_n of_o joseph_n cause_n be_v defer_v beside_o this_o he_o be_v not_o accuse_v that_o he_o have_v commit_v adultery_n but_o that_o he_o will_v have_v do_v the_o same_o and_o let_v these_o thing_n suffice_v for_o those_o objection_n 38_o now_o i_o conclude_v that_o i_o speak_v not_o this_o place_n the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o place_n to_o the_o intent_n i_o will_v abolish_v the_o authority_n of_o magistrate_n i_o know_v that_o crime_n be_v to_o be_v punish_v this_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o the_o manner_n of_o punish_v be_v commit_v unto_o magistrate_n neither_o ought_v those_o law_n to_o be_v of_o force_n i_o know_v also_o that_o those_o civil_a law_n give_v by_o moses_n do_v no_o more_o bind_v we_o than_o the_o ceremonial_a do_v abolish_v the_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v abolish_v the_o ceremony_n take_v effect_n till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n the_o civil_a law_n have_v their_o use_n so_o long_o as_o the_o commonweal_n do_v last_o they_o be_v convenient_a for_o that_o people_n but_o i_o dare_v take_v upon_o i_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v convenient_a that_o the_o justice_n which_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o those_o law_n shall_v not_o be_v neglect_v but_o shall_v be_v embrace_v of_o magistrate_n as_o a_o profitable_a thing_n as_o touch_v the_o ecclesiastical_a punishment_n in_o my_o judgement_n such_o regard_n ought_v to_o be_v have_v that_o adulterer_n which_o be_v convict_v and_o be_v not_o penitent_a may_v in_o such_o sort_n be_v handle_v as_o at_o the_o leastwise_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o escape_v so_o free_a in_o the_o church_n from_o punishment_n as_o they_o shall_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o the_o crime_n be_v most_o gréevous_a they_o wound_v the_o conscience_n of_o the_o godly_a sort_n and_o how_o gréevous_a it_o be_v it_o be_v set_v forth_o unto_o we_o to_o behold_v in_o the_o fall_n of_o david_n but_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o david_n be_v not_o condemn_v we_o answer_v condemn_v why_o david_n be_v not_o condemn_v that_o there_o be_v not_o tribunal_n seaâe_v above_o his_o own_o he_o have_v none_o above_o he_o but_o god_n who_o pardon_v he_o of_o life_n but_o yet_o that_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v full_a of_o many_o cross_n so_o as_o he_o seem_v rather_o to_o be_v reserve_v unto_o misery_n than_o to_o live_v in_o happiness_n of_o the_o reconciliation_n of_o man_n and_o wife_n after_o adultery_n commit_v 39_o the_o civil_a law_n be_v very_o much_o against_o the_o reconciliation_n of_o the_o husband_n and_o the_o wife_n 10._o in_o judge_n 19_o vers_fw-la 10._o after_o adultery_n be_v commit_v adultery_n the_o civil_a law_n be_v against_o reconciliation_n after_o adultery_n for_o in_o the_o code_n ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la de_fw-la adulterijs_fw-la in_o the_o law_n that_o begin_v castitati_fw-la nostrorum_fw-la temporum_fw-la it_o be_v decree_v that_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v bring_v home_o again_o his_o wife_n be_v condemn_v of_o adultery_n he_o do_v incur_v the_o crime_n of_o brothelry_n 28._o look_v before_o art_n 27._o and_o 28._o and_o in_o the_o title_n of_o the_o law_n crimen_fw-la we_o read_v that_o he_o which_o shall_v retain_v in_o matrimony_n his_o wife_n be_v a_o adulteress_n he_o may_v not_o accuse_v she_o of_o adultery_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v afterward_o by_o a_o new_a law_n otherwise_o provide_v neither_o be_v it_o a_o light_a matter_n for_o one_o to_o be_v condemn_v of_o brothelry_n but_o it_o be_v even_o as_o heinous_a as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v condemn_v of_o adultery_n yea_o and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o a_o man_n retain_v with_o he_o a_o woman_n condemn_v of_o adultery_n he_o himself_o without_o a_o accuser_n may_v be_v condemn_v of_o adultery_n and_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v bring_v she_o home_o again_o who_o he_o have_v put_v away_o he_o can_v accuse_v she_o of_o the_o adultery_n which_o she_o have_v before_o commit_v but_o of_o a_o other_o adultery_n he_o may_v since_o in_o bring_v of_o she_o home_o again_o it_o seem_v that_o he_o allow_v of_o her_o condition_n and_o if_o any_o woman_n be_v condemn_v of_o adultery_n none_o may_v take_v she_o to_o his_o wife_n wherefore_o the_o civil_a law_n do_v utterlie_o mislike_v of_o reconciliation_n after_o adultery_n commit_v so_o that_o it_o be_v convict_v and_o condemn_v for_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v but_o only_o a_o suspicion_n thereof_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a for_o the_o husband_n to_o retain_v she_o with_o he_o and_o to_o accuse_v she_o be_v suspect_v and_o if_o he_o shall_v afterward_o perceive_v that_o he_o be_v lead_v with_o vain_a suspicion_n to_o accuse_v she_o he_o may_v desist_v from_o his_o purpose_n so_o that_o he_o first_o obtain_v a_o discharge_n from_o the_o judge_n jerom_n upon_o the_o 19_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n may_v seem_v to_o hold_v with_o the_o civil_a law_n for_o he_o write_v that_o she_o which_o have_v divide_v one_o flesh_n to_o a_o other_o man_n or_o other_o man_n must_v not_o be_v retain_v lest_o the_o husband_n become_v under_o the_o curse_n for_o as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o 28._o chap._n of_o the_o proverb_n he_o that_o keep_v a_o adulteress_n with_o he_o 23._o verse_n 23._o be_v ungodlie_a and_o foolish_a so_o indeed_o the_o 70._o interpreter_n do_v expound_v it_o but_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o hebrew_n text_n have_v it_o not_o the_o same_o jerom_n say_v if_o there_o happen_v any_o sin_n to_o be_v it_o do_v not_o stain_v matrimony_n but_o if_o adultery_n happen_v now_o be_v not_o the_o wife_n lawful_a and_o in_o the_o 32._o cause_n question_v the_o 1._o the_o word_n of_o chrysostome_n be_v recite_v if_o a_o man_n have_v the_o company_n of_o a_o adulterous_a wife_n let_v he_o repent_v the_o same_o father_n upon_o the_o 26._o chapter_n of_o matthew_n even_o as_o he_o be_v unjust_a which_o accuse_v a_o innocent_a so_o he_o be_v a_o fool_n which_o retain_v a_o adulteress_n and_o the_o very_a same_o
pleasure_n 12._o 1._o cor._n 6_o 12._o paul_n say_v all_o thing_n be_v lawful_a unto_o i_o but_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o expedient_a for_o whatsoever_o we_o do_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o furtherance_n unto_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n name_n and_o to_o the_o edifieng_v of_o our_o neighbour_n let_v these_o thing_n suffice_v for_o answer_n unto_o the_o argument_n and_o sophistical_a reason_n of_o our_o adversary_n the_o twelve_o chapter_n ¶_o the_o eight_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o steal_v and_o first_o of_o theft_n sacrilege_n and_o the_o steal_v away_o of_o man_n servant_n and_o child_n be_v in_o rom._n 2_o verse_n 21._o what_o theft_n be_v as_o touch_v theft_n it_o be_v theft_n when_o we_o withhold_v that_o which_o be_v a_o other_o man_n against_o the_o will_n of_o the_o owner_n or_o else_o when_o we_o by_o injury_n draw_v unto_o we_o other_o man_n good_n or_o when_o we_o distribute_v not_o that_o which_o be_v our_o own_o when_o need_n require_v and_o there_o be_v many_o other_o kind_n of_o theft_n but_o in_o the_o table_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n commandment_n the_o form_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n the_o chief_a purpose_n be_v only_o to_o set_v forth_o a_o brief_a sum_n and_o that_o after_o the_o plain_a and_o homely_a sort_n in_o the_o which_o we_o may_v understand_v all_o the_o part_n thereof_o the_o head_n and_o sum_n of_o all_o theft_n be_v covetousness_n even_o as_o in_o the_o unhone_a sort_n of_o pleasure_n only_o adultery_n be_v express_v under_o which_o be_v comprehend_v all_o kind_n of_o uncleanes_n so_o under_o the_o name_n of_o idolatry_n all_o kind_n of_o false_a worship_v be_v forbid_v whereas_o that_o only_o be_v express_v which_o be_v most_o gross_a for_o a_o strange_a god_n be_v forbid_v we_o so_o likewise_o be_v grave_v image_n and_o sundry_a form_n commandment_n we_o must_v consider_v what_o be_v comprehend_v under_o every_o precept_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n wherefore_o when_o any_o of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v set_v down_o unto_o we_o it_o be_v our_o part_n to_o consider_v well_o what_o thing_n be_v comprehend_v under_o that_o sin_n further_o the_o root_n must_v be_v seek_v out_o and_o there_o against_o we_o must_v strive_v with_o all_o the_o may_v we_o have_v covetousness_n or_o theft_n hereof_o spring_v that_o we_o distrust_v god_n and_o be_v always_o afraid_a lest_o we_o shall_v want_v any_o thing_n but_o adultery_n and_o all_o uncleanness_n of_o the_o flesh_n spring_v from_o the_o desire_n of_o voluptuous_a pleasure_n as_o christ_n express_v when_o he_o say_v if_o a_o man_n look_v upon_o a_o woman_n to_o lust_n after_o she_o he_o have_v already_o commit_v adultery_n in_o his_o heart_n and_o against_o this_o concupiscence_n we_o ought_v to_o wrestle_v as_o touch_v murder_n christ_n have_v likewise_o admonish_v we_o 21._o matt._n 5_o 21._o that_o we_o shall_v take_v clean_o away_o anger_n as_o the_o root_n thereof_o sacrilege_n also_o be_v to_o catch_v be_v what_o sacrilege_n be_v and_o rash_o usurp_v to_o a_o man_n self_n holy_a thing_n which_o be_v dedicate_v unto_o god_n 3._o deut._n 12_o 3._o or_o due_a unto_o he_o either_o in_o respect_n of_o a_o vow_n or_o a_o separation_n the_o jew_n be_v command_v in_o the_o law_n 1._o a_o law_n give_v to_o the_o jew_n for_o destroy_v of_o image_n josua_n 7_o 1._o not_o to_o spare_v idol_n for_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v overthrow_v and_o destroy_v they_o all_o but_o they_o be_v draw_v by_o covetousness_n reserve_v they_o unto_o themselves_o and_o turn_v they_o to_o their_o own_o commodity_n so_o sin_v achan_n and_o also_o saul_n 8_o 1._o sam._n 15_o 8_o when_o he_o have_v overcome_v amalech_n contrariwise_o moses_n give_v a_o excellent_a example_n of_o courage_n 20_o exod._n 32_o 20_o when_o he_o not_o only_o break_v the_o golden_a calf_n but_o also_o do_v beat_v it_o into_o powder_n and_o throw_v it_o into_o the_o river_n but_o if_o the_o relic_n of_o the_o idol_n have_v remain_v still_o peradventure_o the_o israelit_n as_o they_o be_v mad_a upon_o they_o will_v have_v worship_v they_o undoubted_o the_o commonweal_n give_v what_o our_o magistrate_n may_v do_v with_o the_o superstitious_a thing_n that_o be_v give_v and_o our_o magistrate_n may_v take_v away_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v superstitious_a and_o convert_v the_o price_n of_o they_o to_o good_a and_o godly_a use_n yet_o private_a man_n may_v not_o do_v so_o but_o the_o hebrews_n be_v general_o forbid_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o keep_v such_o thing_n especial_o such_o as_o they_o have_v curse_a 2_o theft_n be_v not_o a_o crime_n of_o death_n theft_n in_o 2._o sam._n 12_o verse_n 5._o the_o punishment_n of_o theft_n but_o if_o there_o be_v find_v any_o steal_a thing_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o robber_n the_o thing_n steal_v be_v restore_v howbeit_o if_o he_o have_v either_o slay_v it_o or_o sell_v it_o he_o restore_v four_o ox_n for_o one_o and_o five_o sheep_n for_o one_o but_o david_n make_v it_o death_n he_o deserve_v death_n say_v he_o and_o will_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v restore_v eight_o fold_n if_o we_o follow_v the_o rule_n of_o grammar_n for_o arbathaiâm_n be_v the_o dual_a number_n albeit_o the_o chaldaean_a interpreter_n and_o some_o of_o the_o hebrews_n take_v it_o for_o four_o fold_n what_o shall_v we_o answer_v hereunto_o we_o answer_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o law_n ought_v to_o be_v keep_v after_o the_o ordinary_a and_o equal_a manner_n but_o it_o lie_v in_o the_o judge_n hand_n to_o increase_v or_o diminish_v the_o punishment_n according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o circumstance_n what_o be_v the_o circumstance_n for_o the_o which_o david_n augment_v the_o punishment_n he_o that_o steal_v be_v a_o rich_a man_n further_n he_o steal_v from_o one_o that_o be_v poor_a which_o also_o do_v aggravate_v the_o cause_n to_o take_v somewhat_o where_o great_a store_n be_v be_v not_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n beside_o he_o take_v from_o he_o that_o one_o which_o of_o all_o other_o he_o hold_v most_o dear_a unto_o he_o wherefore_o do_v he_o so_o to_o give_v good_a entertainment_n to_o his_o guest_n who_o perhaps_o be_v a_o ill_a man_n and_o to_o make_v good_a cheer_n with_o he_o wherefore_o it_o must_v not_o seem_v any_o marvel_n if_o david_n augment_v the_o punishment_n yea_o but_o thou_o say_v 13._o whether_o the_o sentence_n of_o david_n be_v against_o the_o law_n in_o deut._n 4_o 2._o and_o 12_o 13._o that_o this_o be_v to_o alter_v the_o law_n of_o god_n whereof_o god_n say_v neither_o add_v thou_o unto_o it_o neither_o take_v thou_o from_o it_o they_o say_v there_o be_v no_o word_n add_v the_o law_n remain_v perfect_a but_o forsomuch_o as_o the_o lawmaker_n can_v express_v all_o case_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o it_o be_v put_v to_o the_o discretion_n of_o judge_n either_o to_o aggravate_v change_v whether_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v change_v or_o to_o diminish_v the_o sentence_n notwithstanding_o that_o be_v a_o great_a matter_n when_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o judge_n be_v so_o aggravate_v as_o it_o make_v that_o to_o be_v death_n which_o be_v no_o crime_n of_o death_n he_o may_v have_v say_v if_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o restore_v home_n four_o or_o eight_o fold_n let_v he_o pay_v ten_o twenty_o etc._n etc._n another_o answer_n be_v that_o they_o say_v this_o manner_n of_o david_n speak_v be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v as_o though_o he_o will_v have_v the_o party_n to_o be_v punish_v with_o death_n but_o for_o the_o more_o vehement_a express_v of_o his_o mind_n hyperbolical_a whether_o david_n speech_n be_v hyperbolical_a he_o use_v a_o excessive_a speech_n as_o though_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v he_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v guilty_a of_o death_n and_o not_o that_o he_o will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n when_o a_o judge_n hear_v of_o any_o gréevous_a crime_n he_o say_v that_o such_o a_o one_o deserve_v a_o thousand_o death_n when_o as_o only_o one_o death_n can_v be_v lay_v upon_o he_o by_o the_o law_n this_o say_n serve_v to_o exaggerate_v the_o crime_n and_o make_v not_o the_o word_n false_a for_o all_o man_n know_v what_o the_o meaning_n thereof_o be_v this_o i_o speak_v the_o rather_o because_o if_o we_o say_v that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n there_o be_v a_o figure_n they_o say_v that_o we_o make_v the_o proposition_n this_o be_v my_o body_n to_o be_v false_a but_o a_o figure_n do_v not_o make_v the_o word_n false_a so_o true_a be_v the_o figure_n which_o david_n here_o use_v as_o he_o bind_v it_o with_o a_o oath_n either_o of_o these_o answer_n be_v probable_a i_o see_v that_o in_o that_o place_n the_o holy_a ghost_n use_v the_o tongue_n of_o david_n
inquire_v either_o what_o be_v do_v or_o what_o may_v come_v to_o pass_v and_o suspicion_n be_v a_o obscure_a knowledge_n of_o some_o evil_n at_o hand_n from_z whence_o spring_v fear_n and_o malicious_a man_n and_o old_a man_n and_o those_o which_o be_v often_o hurt_v and_o enemy_n be_v soon_o bring_v into_o suspicion_n and_o sometime_o the_o cause_n of_o suspicious_a be_v just_a as_o in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr suspectis_fw-la tutoribus_fw-la &_o curatoribus_fw-la he_o be_v suspect_v who_o be_v such_o in_o manner_n and_o albeit_o that_o he_o be_v not_o such_o a_o one_o indeed_o yet_o it_o suffice_v if_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o for_o though_o that_o david_n be_v no_o traitor_n yet_o by_o that_o report_n 19_o 1._o sam._n 2_o 19_o which_o common_o go_v of_o he_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o be_v a_o traitor_n and_o desire_v the_o kingdom_n the_o philistine_n do_v wise_o who_o think_v good_a to_o beware_v of_o he_o in_o deed_n we_o can_v avoid_v it_o but_o but_o that_o suspicion_n will_v sometime_o arise_v in_o our_o mind_n see_v they_o be_v not_o in_o our_o power_n augustine_n we_o must_v not_o give_v place_n to_o our_o suspicion_n augustine_n but_o we_o must_v not_o rash_o assent_v unto_o they_o or_o judge_v by_o they_o augustine_n in_o the_o 54._o epistle_n to_o macedonius_n man_n say_v he_o of_o a_o certain_a self-love_n be_v easy_o lead_v to_o judge_v insomuch_o as_o every_o man_n be_v a_o friend_n to_o his_o own_o cogitation_n and_o think_v that_o he_o do_v suspect_v wise_o yet_o say_v he_o nothing_o must_v herein_o be_v do_v rash_o though_o the_o cause_n may_v seem_v never_o so_o probable_a for_o even_o many_o thing_n be_v credible_a and_o yet_o false_a and_o again_o many_o thing_n be_v incredible_a and_o yet_o true_a but_o thou_o will_v say_v what_o if_o a_o man_n be_v a_o governor_n of_o a_o church_n or_o of_o the_o commonweal_n shall_v he_o not_o provide_v in_o time_n if_o he_o suspect_v any_o evil_n to_o be_v at_o hand_n suspicion_n what_o be_v lawful_a in_o suspicion_n he_o ought_v not_o doubt_v but_o yet_o without_o hatred_n or_o harm_n of_o another_o man_n so_o judge_n must_v beware_v that_o upon_o light_a suspicion_n they_o disturb_v no_o man_n for_o poor_a wretch_n be_v oftentimes_o overcome_v with_o grief_n in_o punishment_n do_v confess_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o never_o think_v the_o suspicion_n of_o the_o philistine_n arise_v not_o of_o weighty_a but_o even_o of_o probable_a cause_n therefore_o they_o command_v not_o david_n either_o to_o be_v trouble_v or_o put_v to_o death_n but_o only_o to_o be_v send_v away_o and_o this_o david_n gain_v by_o flée_v unto_o achis_n that_o although_o he_o be_v have_v in_o honour_n yet_o he_o come_v into_o suspicion_n of_o treason_n wherefore_o we_o must_v never_o depart_v to_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o faith_n since_o that_o have_v never_o good_a success_n for_o admit_v thou_o can_v persuade_v the_o prince_n that_o thou_o be_v a_o good_a man_n yet_o shall_v thou_o never_o persuade_v the_o multitude_n and_o thus_o much_o by_o the_o way_n of_o mock_v and_o tawnt_a 17._o in_o 1._o kin_n 18_o verse_n 17._o 13_o by_o the_o mock_n wherewith_o elias_n mock_v the_o worshipper_n of_o baal_n it_o appear_v that_o godly_a and_o sincere_a man_n may_v use_v pleasant_a dissimulation_n 16._o what_o manner_n of_o mock_n be_v lawful_a look_v in_o 1._o sam._n 22_o verse_n 16._o witty_a conceit_n proper_a nip_v and_o merry_a speech_n so_o they_o use_v they_o not_o to_o satisfy_v revenge_n and_o hatred_n against_o their_o enemy_n but_o for_o the_o condemn_a and_o disallow_v of_o wicked_a religion_n the_o sense_n of_o these_o sign_n be_v perceive_v rather_o by_o pronunciation_n than_o by_o word_n the_o imitation_n of_o this_o kind_n do_v paul_n use_v when_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n he_o say_v under_o the_o person_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n touch_v not_o taste_v not_o handle_v not_o 12._o verse_n 12._o how_o pleasant_o do_v esaie_n in_o the_o 44._o chapter_n deride_v the_o idoll-maker_n because_o of_o the_o one_o half_a of_o a_o tree_n he_o make_v a_o fire_n to_o warm_v himself_o and_o to_o seethe_v his_o meat_n and_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o block_n he_o frame_v a_o image_n before_o which_o he_o afterward_o fall_v down_o give_v honour_n unto_o it_o worship_v it_o call_v upon_o it_o and_o serve_v it_o chapter_n the_o whole_a chapter_n the_o same_o do_v baruch_n the_o scribe_n of_o jeremie_n in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n he_o pleasant_o mock_v the_o idol_n elias_n by_o that_o witty_a mirth_n of_o he_o teach_v that_o baal_n be_v no_o god_n that_o he_o hear_v not_o feel_v not_o nor_o regard_v any_o manner_n of_o thing_n so_o then_o scorn_n &_o mock_n may_v sometime_o serve_v very_o fit_o for_o the_o prophet_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o how_o can_v man_n be_v more_o plain_o teach_v that_o they_o lose_v their_o labour_n in_o worship_v of_o baal_n howbeit_o paul_n in_o write_v to_o the_o ephestians_n seem_v to_o forbid_v this_o kind_n of_o talk_n in_o christian_n let_v there_o not_o be_v in_o you_o say_v he_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v 4._o ephe._n 5_o 4._o filthy_a and_o foul_a communication_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d fond_a &_o foolish_a word_n and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v urbanity_n and_o pleasant_a jest_n which_o otherwise_o be_v count_v a_o virtue_n whereby_o those_o that_o he_o sad_a &_o in_o sickness_n be_v some_o time_n chéer_v up_o because_o it_o must_v not_o be_v take_v for_o sin_n when_o it_o perteine_n to_o charity_n but_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o paul_n in_o that_o place_n by_o the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d do_v note_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v scurrility_n whereby_o scoff_n and_o rail_a speech_n be_v rash_o cast_v out_o against_o other_o rather_o with_o offence_n unto_o the_o godly_a hearer_n than_o with_o any_o edifieng_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o christian_n to_o trifle_v unaduisedlie_o of_o deceit_n or_o guile_n 14_o to_o speak_v first_o of_o the_o word_n 3â_n in_o judg._n 3â_n that_o which_o among_o the_o latin_n be_v dolus_fw-la that_o be_v deceit_n the_o grecian_n call_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d so_o that_o their_o word_n and_o we_o be_v almost_o all_o one_o but_o the_o hebrews_n call_v it_o mirmah_n or_o remijah_n further_o let_v we_o understand_v that_o guile_n be_v there_o forbid_a where_o any_o thing_n lie_v secret_a which_o be_v hide_v lest_o the_o fraud_n appear_v or_o be_v easy_o see_v wherefore_o plautus_n say_v plautus_n plautus_n guile_n unless_o they_o be_v cover_v by_o craft_n they_o be_v no_o guile_n thus_o much_o as_o touch_v the_o name_n now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o definition_n servius_n a_o definition_n of_o guilt_n servius_n in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr dolo_fw-la malo_fw-la in_o the_o first_o law_n servius_n the_o lawyer_n thus_o define_v ill_a guile_n or_o collusion_n namely_o to_o be_v a_o subtle_a invention_n or_o devise_n to_o deceive_v another_o when_o as_o one_o thing_n be_v do_v and_o another_o feign_a wheresoever_o therefore_o there_o be_v guile_n there_o be_v deceit_n by_o some_o dissimulation_n it_o be_v true_a in_o deed_n that_o labeo_n a_o interpreter_n of_o the_o law_n labeo_n labeo_n reproove_v the_o definition_n bring_v by_o servius_n and_o that_o by_o two_o reason_n whereof_o one_o be_v that_o sometime_o it_o may_v happen_v that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v beguile_v without_o dissimulation_n or_o collusion_n wherefore_o the_o definition_n shall_v be_v more_o strict_a than_o that_o which_o be_v define_v but_o this_o all_o man_n account_v as_o a_o fault_n the_o other_o be_v because_o otherwhiles_o some_o by_o dissimulation_n do_v save_v and_o defend_v their_o own_o or_o other_o man_n and_o yet_o thereby_o do_v beguile_v no_o man_n neither_o do_v they_o hurt_v any_o man_n so_o then_o the_o definition_n must_v be_v apply_v unto_o other_o thing_n beside_o that_o which_o be_v define_v which_o also_o be_v culpable_a for_o which_o cause_n he_o thus_o define_v it_o guile_n another_o definition_n of_o guile_n ill_a guile_n or_o collusion_n be_v all_o manner_n of_o craft_n deceit_n or_o subtlety_n do_v to_o beguile_v delude_v and_o deceive_v other_o ulpian_n in_o the_o same_o place_n ulpian_n ulpian_n allow_v the_o opinion_n of_o labeo_n but_o have_v the_o authority_n of_o so_o great_a a_o clerk_n i_o will_v say_v that_o labeo_n do_v not_o well_o in_o remove_v dissimulation_n from_o the_o nature_n of_o fraud_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o first_o argument_n which_o he_o have_v i_o deny_v that_o which_o he_o affirm_v namely_o that_o man_n can_v be_v circumvent_v without_o dissimulation_n for_o unless_o they_o be_v whole_o without_o sense_n they_o will_v not_o easy_o be_v lead_v to_o take_v and_o
it_o be_v not_o forbid_v because_o it_o may_v be_v in_o the_o steed_n of_o armour_n wherefore_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o take_v arm_n against_o they_o justly_o it_o be_v lawful_a also_o to_o use_v guile_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o poet_n what_o matter_n be_v it_o against_o a_o enemy_n whether_o a_o man_n use_v fraud_n or_o force_n howbeit_o this_o must_v be_v consider_v that_o we_o speak_v only_o of_o those_o enemy_n which_o either_o god_n himself_o enemy_n who_o be_v very_a enemy_n or_o the_o public_a weal_n or_o a_o just_a magistrate_n declare_v to_o be_v enemy_n and_o not_o of_o those_o which_o every_o private_a man_n hate_v moreover_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o see_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o repel_v violence_n with_o violence_n when_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n to_o escape_v it_o be_v also_o lawful_a to_o set_v guile_n against_o guile_n for_o he_o which_o repell_v violence_n with_o violence_n as_o the_o law_n do_v permit_v the_o same_o man_n be_v not_o to_o be_v count_v a_o private_a person_n forsomuch_o as_o he_o be_v arm_v by_o the_o magistrate_n so_o as_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o he_o do_v not_o against_o the_o law_n but_o with_o the_o law_n even_o so_o he_o that_o be_v sudden_o oppress_v may_v lawful_o escape_v by_o evil_a guile_n if_o he_o can_v moreover_o the_o scripture_n teach_v that_o this_o kind_n of_o guile_n be_v just_a jerom._n jerom._n for_o jerom_n say_v and_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o decree_n the_o 22._o cause_n the_o second_o question_n 21_o 1._o kin._n 10_o 21_o the_o chapter_n vtilem_fw-la that_o jehu_n do_v dissemble_v honest_o with_o the_o priest_n of_o baal_n because_o he_o have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o have_v kill_v they_o all_o if_o he_o have_v begin_o to_o put_v some_o of_o they_o to_o death_n wherefore_o to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v gather_v they_o all_o together_o he_o feign_a himself_n to_o be_v much_o more_o desirous_a to_o worship_n baal_n than_o achab_n be_v and_o by_o that_o mean_v he_o slay_v they_o all_o but_o this_o we_o ought_v to_o regard_v that_o they_o which_o be_v so_o destroy_v by_o guile_n be_v worthy_a of_o punishment_n and_o as_o they_o be_v common_o call_v be_v notorious_a offender_n and_o such_o as_o can_v be_v punish_v by_o ordinary_a mean_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o king_n of_o denmark_n be_v by_o some_o commend_v who_o through_o guile_n destroy_v most_o pernicious_a thief_n which_o he_o can_v not_o take_v for_o he_o feign_v a_o war_n and_o make_v a_o proclamation_n that_o as_o many_o as_o will_v come_v augustine_n a_o guile_n use_v by_o the_o king_n of_o denmark_n against_o thief_n augustine_n shall_v receive_v wage_n of_o he_o and_o promise_v pardon_n unto_o the_o thief_n for_o the_o wicked_a act_n which_o they_o have_v before_o commit_v but_o i_o for_o my_o part_n as_o i_o shall_v afterward_o declare_v will_v not_o so_o absolute_o allow_v these_o kind_n of_o example_n augustine_n as_o may_v be_v read_v in_o the_o 14._o cause_n question_v the_o five_o in_o the_o chapter_n dixit_fw-la and_o it_o be_v a_o place_n in_o his_o question_n upon_o exodus_fw-la show_v that_o the_o israelit_n deceive_v the_o egyptian_n 35._o exo._n 12_o 35._o when_o they_o borrow_v of_o they_o gold_n and_o silver_n vessel_n and_o yet_o the_o same_o be_v not_o to_o be_v count_v a_o fault_n in_o they_o when_o as_o yet_o no_o man_n doubt_v but_o that_o they_o do_v it_o by_o evil_a guile_n the_o same_o father_n in_o the_o 23._o cause_n question_n second_o in_o the_o chapter_n dominus_fw-la which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o his_o question_n upon_o the_o book_n of_o josua_n 4._o josua_n 8_o 4._o rehearse_v the_o place_n wherein_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n command_v the_o hebrews_n to_o fight_v against_o the_o city_n of_o hay_n by_o lie_v in_o wait_n which_o without_o doubt_n belong_v to_o guile_n jerom_n jerom._n jerom._n upon_o the_o 17._o chapter_n of_o ezechiel_n allege_v this_o sentence_n as_o a_o worldly_a say_n namely_o what_o matter_n be_v it_o against_o a_o enemy_n whether_o a_o man_n use_v fraud_n or_o force_n howbeit_o he_o agree_v thereunto_o although_o he_o deny_v that_o it_o can_v take_v any_o place_n where_o a_o oath_n be_v make_v before_o but_o this_o i_o will_v anon_o discuss_v ambrose_n in_o the_o 14._o cause_n question_v the_o four_o permit_v guile_n or_o gainful_a fraud_n against_o enemy_n and_o after_o this_o manner_n he_o interprete_v the_o place_n of_o deuteronomie_n where_o god_n give_v the_o jew_n liberty_n to_o put_v their_o money_n in_o usury_n to_o stranger_n 20._o deut._n 23_o 20._o namely_o that_o where_o the_o war_n be_v just_a there_o also_o usury_n may_v take_v place_n for_o the_o good_n of_o the_o enemy_n be_v we_o and_o they_o may_v be_v lawful_o take_v from_o they_o and_o whether_o it_o be_v by_o fraud_n or_o by_o violence_n it_o force_v not_o there_o be_v some_o which_o allege_v that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o latter_a epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 12._o chapter_n 1â_n 2._o co._n 12_o 1â_n when_o i_o be_v crafty_a i_o take_v you_o with_o guile_n but_o that_o make_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n see_v the_o apostle_n in_o that_o place_n do_v very_o manifest_o use_v the_o figure_n mockery_n figure_n that_o be_v mockery_n ironia_fw-la for_o he_o be_v accuse_v as_o though_o he_o have_v receive_v money_n of_o the_o corinthian_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o other_o which_o by_o himself_o he_o refuse_v to_o receive_v which_o he_o straitwaie_o disproove_v but_o those_o example_n which_o we_o bring_v first_o do_v manifest_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o use_v guile_n yea_o &_o evil_a guile_n against_o enemy_n namely_o keep_v close_o our_o counsel_n and_o action_n and_o use_v tolerable_a work_n and_o word_n enemy_n the_o civil_a law_n allow_v of_o guile_n against_o enemy_n neither_o do_v the_o civil_a law_n teach_v otherwise_o in_o the_o code_n de_fw-fr commercijs_fw-la &_o mercatoribus_fw-la in_o the_o law_n non_fw-fr solùm_fw-la the_o emperor_n decree_v not_o only_o that_o no_o gold_n shall_v be_v transport_v unto_o the_o barbarous_a nation_n which_o be_v enemy_n unto_o the_o state_n but_o also_o that_o such_o gold_n as_o they_o have_v shall_v be_v take_v from_o they_o by_o subtle_a guile_n or_o policy_n and_o in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr captivis_fw-la postliminio_fw-la reversis_fw-la in_o the_o law_n nihil_fw-la interest_n it_o be_v decree_v that_o captive_n howsoever_o they_o return_v into_o their_o country_n again_o shall_v recover_v their_o own_o good_n and_o old_a estate_n whether_o they_o be_v send_v home_o again_o or_o whether_o they_o escape_v by_o violence_n or_o by_o guile_n although_o afterward_o in_o the_o law_n postliminij_fw-la in_o the_o paraph_n captinus_n it_o be_v restrain_v upon_o condition_n that_o if_o they_o return_v with_o a_o mind_n to_o tarry_v at_o home_n for_o if_o they_o shall_v either_o promise_n or_o swear_v unto_o their_o enemy_n to_o return_v they_o shall_v not_o enjoy_v the_o right_n of_o return_v wherefore_o attilius_n regulus_n enjoy_v not_o the_o benefit_n regulus_n attilius_n regulus_n because_o he_o be_v send_v to_o rome_n to_o persuade_v the_o senate_n about_o the_o exchange_n of_o prisoner_n then_o forsomuch_o as_o he_o have_v promise_v &_o be_v mind_v to_o return_v he_o by_o the_o law_n may_v not_o use_v evil_a guile_n 18_o hereby_o also_o that_o appear_v to_o be_v true_a which_o a_o little_a before_o be_v say_v that_o we_o may_v not_o use_v evil_a guile_n against_o our_o enemy_n if_o there_o be_v a_o oath_n make_v between_o us._n distinguish_v a_o oath_n distinguish_v and_o that_o this_o may_v be_v the_o more_o plain_o understand_v we_o must_v distinguish_v a_o oath_n as_o the_o lawyer_n do_v one_o avowch_v another_o promise_a or_o as_o they_o term_v it_o the_o one_o assertive_a and_o the_o other_o promissorie_a for_o when_o we_o swear_v either_o we_o do_v affirm_v or_o else_o deny_v some_o thing_n to_o be_v or_o to_o have_v be_v which_o we_o never_o ought_v to_o do_v with_o evil_a guile_n by_o add_v a_o oath_n or_o else_o we_o promise_v to_o perform_v some_o thing_n and_o forsomuch_o as_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v even_o with_o our_o enemy_n the_o same_o faith_n also_o be_v not_o to_o be_v break_v by_o evil_a guile_n so_o as_o if_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v swear_v unto_o our_o enemy_n to_o keep_v and_o observe_v be_v temporal_a good_n such_o as_o be_v money_n honour_n and_o life_n of_o the_o body_n the_o name_n of_o god_n for_o these_o thing_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v profane_v wherefore_o david_n 4._o psal_n 15_o 4._o in_o his_o 15._o psalm_n say_v he_o that_o swear_v to_o do_v evil_a and_o change_v not_o in_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v nischhab_n leharah_n velo_n iamir_v which_o place_n i_o know_v that_o d._n kimhi_n
be_v write_v that_o sin_n enter_v into_o the_o world_n by_o one_o man_n because_o that_o same_o one_o that_o be_v the_o first_o man_n be_v corrupt_v by_o the_o devil_n death_n in_o what_o respect_n god_n make_v death_n therefore_o say_v augustine_n god_n make_v not_o death_n absolute_o and_o by_o itself_o but_o for_o a_o just_a recompense_n impose_v the_o same_o upon_o sinner_n for_o in_o very_a deed_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o produce_v a_o thing_n absolute_o and_o by_o itself_o and_o another_o thing_n justly_o to_o lay_v it_o upon_o we_o for_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v of_o god_n by_o themselves_o be_v in_o very_a deed_n good_a 31._o gen._n 1_o 31._o for_o god_n see_v all_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v make_v and_o they_o be_v very_o good_a those_o thing_n also_o which_o be_v lay_v upon_o we_o for_o a_o reward_n of_o sin_n although_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n they_o be_v evil_a that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o our_o nature_n yet_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o have_v the_o nature_n of_o justice_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v count_v for_o good_a thing_n for_o the_o plain_a declaration_n whereof_o augustine_n use_v a_o very_a apt_a similitiude_n augustine_n augustine_n when_o a_o judge_n condemn_v a_o man_n to_o execution_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n he_o be_v not_o proper_o say_v to_o have_v do_v the_o execution_n see_v the_o guilty_a man_n procure_v the_o same_o to_o himself_o wherefore_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a will_n of_o god_n absolute_a and_o another_o as_o augustine_n call_v it_o recompense_v recompense_n one_o will_v of_o god_n absolute_a and_o another_o recompense_n to_o whether_o of_o those_o belong_v the_o present_a place_n wherein_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n will_v destroy_v the_o son_n of_o helie_n whether_o shall_v we_o understand_v it_o of_o the_o absolute_a will_n or_o of_o the_o recompense_n will_n doubtless_o of_o the_o recompense_n because_o of_o the_o absolute_a will_v it_o must_v not_o be_v understand_v therefore_o say_v augustine_n it_o be_v most_o just_a that_o when_o our_o soul_n shall_v of_o his_o own_o will_v depart_v from_o god_n it_o shall_v be_v separate_v from_o his_o body_n whether_o it_o will_v or_o no._n in_o like_a manner_n there_o will_v be_v a_o difference_n put_v between_o the_o condition_n of_o sinner_n consider_v the_o condition_n of_o sinner_n must_v be_v consider_v for_o there_o be_v some_o of_o they_o which_o sorrow_n that_o they_o have_v sin_v and_o who_o it_o repent_v of_o their_o sin_n commit_v these_o man_n as_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o election_n even_o so_o do_v they_o exercise_v the_o faith_n wherewith_o they_o be_v adorn_v 61_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o sinner_n speak_v god_n when_o he_o say_v in_o ezechiel_n 11._o ezech._n 18._o and_o 33_o 11._o i_o will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n and_o this_o will_n of_o god_n be_v so_o firm_a and_o steadfast_a as_o he_o confirm_v the_o same_o with_o a_o oath_n as_o true_o as_o i_o live_v say_v he_o i_o will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n but_o other_o do_v so_o stick_v in_o their_o wickedness_n as_o they_o be_v never_o lead_v with_o any_o repentance_n forsomuch_o as_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o reprobate_n these_o man_n assure_o god_n will_v have_v to_o die_v and_o for_o a_o truth_n after_o that_o they_o have_v fulfil_v the_o measure_n of_o their_o gréevous_a sin_n it_o be_v requisite_a that_o they_o shall_v die_v that_o one_o day_n at_o the_o length_n they_o may_v make_v a_o end_n of_o their_o sin_v therefore_o whereas_o the_o prophet_n say_v under_o the_o person_n of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n it_o must_v not_o be_v understand_v universallie_o as_o touch_v all_o but_o of_o some_o certain_a we_o may_v also_o add_v with_o many_o divine_n that_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a will_n of_o god_n signify_v one_o will_v of_o god_n effectual_a and_o another_o signify_v which_o they_o call_v effectual_a and_o also_o another_o of_o the_o sign_n for_o there_o be_v give_v to_o all_o man_n one_o with_o another_o certain_a sign_n of_o salvation_n such_o as_o be_v outward_a vocation_n which_o do_v chéefelie_o consist_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n of_o preach_v and_o of_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n another_o will_v there_o be_v of_o god_n secret_a which_o be_v call_v effectual_a and_o belong_v not_o unto_o all_o man_n together_o for_o if_o it_o comprehend_v all_o man_n no_o doubt_n but_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v for_o such_o be_v the_o strength_n and_o power_n of_o god_n as_o of_o he_o the_o scripture_n pronounce_v 6._o psal_n 135_o 6._o he_o have_v do_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o he_o will_v so_o that_o the_o prophet_n ezechiel_n mean_v that_o our_o punishment_n must_v not_o be_v ascribe_v to_o god_n 11._o ezec._n 33_o 11._o but_o rather_o to_o the_o sin_n of_o our_o own_o self_n and_o when_o he_o add_v that_o god_n will_v that_o man_n shall_v convert_v and_o live_v that_o must_v not_o so_o be_v understand_v as_o though_o we_o may_v obtain_v eternal_a life_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o repentance_n see_v we_o obtain_v that_o by_o faith_n which_o only_o procure_v to_o we_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n and_o no_o less_o be_v repentance_n than_o our_o faith_n to_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o undoubted_o 29._o faith_n and_o repentance_n gift_n of_o god_n alike_o 2._o tim._n 2_o 25._o phil._n 1_o 29._o as_o touch_v repentance_n paul_n speak_v unto_o timothy_n if_o peradventure_o god_n shall_v give_v they_o repentance_n but_o of_o faith_n it_o be_v write_v to_o the_o philippian_n god_n have_v not_o only_o give_v it_o unto_o you_o that_o you_o shall_v believe_v but_o also_o to_o suffer_v for_o his_o sake_n and_o unto_o the_o ephesian_n 8._o ephes_n 2_o 8._o by_o faith_n you_o be_v save_v and_o that_o not_o of_o yourselves_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n very_o we_o have_v these_o thing_n by_o the_o liberality_n of_o god_n not_o of_o our_o own_o strength_n because_o we_o be_v not_o sufficient_a of_o ourselves_o as_o of_o ourselves_o to_o further_o any_o thing_n unto_o our_o salvation_n 13._o 2._o cor_n 3_o 5._o phil._n 2_o 13._o for_o it_o be_v god_n that_o work_v in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o perform_v wherefore_o not_o some_o part_n of_o our_o salvation_n but_o the_o whole_a depend_v of_o god_n but_o and_o if_o thou_o shall_v demand_v why_o god_n bestow_v these_o his_o gift_n rather_o on_o this_o man_n than_o on_o that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n unsearchable_a this_o aught_o to_o satisfy_v we_o to_o confess_v that_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v he_o do_v it_o right_o and_o isutlie_o 62_o but_o whereas_o esaie_n say_v 21._o esai_n 28_o 21._o that_o god_n do_v a_o strange_a work_n when_o he_o bring_v just_a punishment_n upon_o the_o wicked_a it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o make_v it_o agree_v with_o the_o sentence_n that_o we_o have_v set_v down_o see_v that_o god_n of_o his_o own_o accord_n and_o without_o just_a cause_n infer_v no_o evil_a for_o he_o be_v provoke_v by_o our_o sin_n and_o he_o recompense_v our_o wickedness_n with_o a_o just_a damnation_n nevertheless_o in_o that_o place_n a_o strange_a work_n seem_v unto_o i_o to_o signify_v a_o work_n unaccustomed_a evil_n how_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a work_n unto_o god_n to_o punish_v evil_n not_o see_v nor_o hear_v of_o before_o as_o if_o god_n shall_v say_v i_o will_v bring_v upon_o you_o not_o a_o ordinary_a and_o daily_a punishment_n but_o a_o notable_a and_o wonder_a punishment_n he_o that_o shall_v after_o this_o manner_n understand_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n in_o my_o judgement_n he_o shall_v vary_v from_o the_o natural_a sense_n thereof_o and_o whereas_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n 13._o how_o god_n make_v not_o death_n wild._n 1_o 13._o that_o god_n make_v not_o death_n nor_o delight_v in_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o live_n it_o be_v as_o i_o think_v plain_o enough_o to_o be_v understand_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v already_o speak_v for_o we_o may_v understand_v that_o god_n make_v not_o death_n because_o we_o by_o our_o sin_n have_v draw_v it_o unto_o we_o but_o yet_o we_o must_v not_o therefore_o affirm_v that_o the_o same_o be_v no_o manner_n of_o way_n derive_v from_o god_n neither_o must_v make_v or_o ordain_v be_v urge_v vehementlie_o in_o that_o place_n otherwise_o it_o may_v be_v again_o object_v against_o they_o out_o of_o the_o 11._o chapter_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la 14._o verse_n 14._o that_o death_n and_o life_n good_a and_o evil_a poverty_n and_o riches_n be_v of_o god_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v add_v that_o god_n reioise_v not_o at_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o live_n that_o be_v true_a
very_o much_o deceive_v for_o unless_o they_o devise_v some_o new_a grammar_n unto_o themselves_o undoutedlie_o this_o word_n according_a signify_v not_o the_o cause_n but_o christ_n say_v they_o in_o his_o last_o judgement_n seem_v to_o express_v these_o to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v cause_n for_o the_o which_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v give_v unto_o they_o for_o thus_o will_v he_o say_v i_o be_v hungry_a 35._o mat._n 25_o 35._o and_o you_o feed_v i_o i_o be_v thirsty_a and_o you_o give_v i_o drink_v but_o christ_n do_v not_o in_o very_a deed_n rehearse_v these_o thing_n as_o cause_n but_o rather_o those_o thing_n which_o go_v before_o work_n why_o christ_n in_o the_o last_o judgement_n will_v make_v mention_n of_o outward_a work_n come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n possess_v the_o kingdom_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o you_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o our_o felicity_n be_v because_o we_o be_v elect_v and_o predestinate_a of_o god_n to_o the_o eternal_a inheritance_n for_o they_o which_o be_v in_o this_o number_n be_v in_o their_o time_n adorn_v with_o faith_n whereby_o they_o be_v justify_v have_v right_a unto_o eternal_a life_n but_o because_o this_o faith_n be_v hide_v neither_o can_v it_o be_v see_v and_o that_o christ_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o understand_v that_o none_o but_o the_o just_a be_v receive_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n therefore_o reherse_v he_o these_o outward_a work_n that_o by_o they_o it_o may_v plain_o be_v perceive_v that_o righteousness_n be_v give_v unto_o man_n by_o faith_n for_o there_o be_v no_o man_n which_o can_v be_v so_o ignorant_a 3â_n there_o be_v two_o many_o of_o principle_n of_o thing_n 1._o sam._n 2_o 3â_n but_o that_o he_o know_v that_o there_o be_v two_o foundation_n and_o principle_n of_o thing_n the_o one_o whereby_o they_o be_v the_o other_o whereby_o they_o be_v know_v again_o they_o object_n out_o of_o the_o first_o of_o samuel_n those_o that_o honour_v i_o i_o honour_v and_o those_o that_o love_v i_o i_o love_v here_o say_v they_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v unto_o the_o work_n but_o if_o they_o will_v make_v a_o distinction_n between_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o law_n they_o shall_v easy_o understand_v that_o that_o place_n be_v nothing_o repugnant_a unto_o our_o say_n for_o if_o we_o can_v of_o ourselves_o satisfy_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n then_o may_v it_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o promise_n shall_v be_v give_v unto_o we_o but_o forsomuch_o as_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o perform_v it_o all_o man_n fly_v unto_o christ_n and_o be_v through_o faith_n in_o he_o justify_v then_o by_o a_o certain_a obedience_n begin_v we_o begin_v to_o work_v which_o although_o it_o be_v not_o exact_o do_v according_a unto_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o commandment_n yet_o it_o please_v god_n and_o he_o of_o his_o mere_a liberality_n perform_v the_o promise_n which_o be_v adjoin_v unto_o that_o work_n and_o so_o those_o condition_n which_o be_v adjoin_v unto_o the_o precept_n be_v not_o unprofitable_a for_o they_o that_o be_v justify_v attain_v unto_o they_o neither_o be_v these_o man_n ashamed_a to_o cite_v these_o word_n out_o of_o the_o 25._o psalm_n 18._o verse_n 18._o look_v upon_o my_o humility_n &_o my_o labour_n and_o forgive_v i_o all_o my_o sin_n as_o though_o our_o labour_n and_o affliction_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o in_o this_o place_n david_n be_v in_o most_o gréevous_a calamity_n desire_v of_o god_n to_o forgive_v he_o all_o his_o sin_n that_o if_o he_o be_v angry_a for_o his_o sin_n the_o cause_n of_o punishment_n may_v be_v take_v away_o for_o here_o be_v not_o entreat_v of_o labour_n which_o a_o man_n take_v upon_o he_o of_o his_o own_o voluntary_a will_n but_o of_o punishment_n lay_v upon_o man_n by_o god_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n we_o see_v also_o that_o child_n while_o they_o be_v beat_v of_o their_o master_n do_v desire_n forgiveness_n and_o pardon_n if_o thou_o give_v a_o alm_n unto_o one_o that_o be_v leprous_a the_o leprosy_n can_v proper_o be_v call_v the_o cause_n of_o thy_o compassion_n or_o mercy_n for_o otherwise_o all_o that_o pass_v by_o the_o leper_n shall_v do_v the_o same_o but_o the_o true_a cause_n thereof_o be_v the_o love_a affection_n in_o thy_o mind_n 32_o but_o they_o say_v moreover_o that_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n much_o be_v attribute_v unto_o repentance_n which_o thing_n we_o deny_v not_o but_o we_o on_o the_o other_o side_n will_v have_v they_o to_o understand_v that_o repentance_n be_v the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o no_o man_n can_v profitable_o repent_v he_o of_o his_o sin_n unless_o he_o first_o believe_v they_o also_o boast_v of_o many_o thing_n touch_v confession_n confession_n a_o distinction_n of_o confession_n but_o thereof_o we_o make_v a_o distinction_n for_o either_o it_o be_v separate_v from_o hope_n and_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v in_o judas_n which_o confess_v that_o he_o have_v sin_v 4._o matt._n 27_o 4._o in_o béetraieng_v the_o just_a blood_n and_o that_o confession_n be_v so_o far_o off_o from_o bring_v any_o profit_n that_o it_o be_v a_o preparative_n unto_o desperation_n and_o also_o to_o destruction_n or_o else_o it_o be_v join_v with_o faith_n and_o hope_n as_o it_o be_v in_o david_n and_o peter_n and_o so_o it_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n but_o the_o effect_n of_o justification_n for_o it_o follow_v faith_n confession_n auricular_a confession_n and_o go_v not_o before_o it_o the_o auricular_a confession_n also_o of_o the_o papist_n be_v altogether_o superstitious_a wherefore_o we_o utterlie_o contemn_v it_o for_o they_o obtrude_v it_o as_o a_o thing_n necessary_a unto_o salvation_n and_o a_o cause_n why_o sin_n shall_v be_v forgive_v which_o they_o be_v never_o able_a to_o prove_v by_o any_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o violent_o wrest_v this_o also_o out_o of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n 12._o matt._n 6_o 12._o forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n as_o we_o forgive_v they_o that_o trespass_n against_o us._n 14._o verse_n 14._o again_o forgive_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v forgive_v you_o ergo_fw-la say_v they_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o injury_n be_v the_o cause_n why_o our_o sin_n be_v forgive_v us._n expound_v forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n expound_v this_o their_o reason_n as_o the_o common_a say_n be_v with_o the_o one_o hand_n stroke_v the_o head_n &_o with_o the_o other_o give_v a_o blow_n for_o if_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o injury_n shall_v as_o these_o man_n will_v have_v it_o deserve_v remission_n of_o sin_n than_o that_o remission_n shall_v be_v no_o remission_n for_o after_o thou_o have_v once_o pay_v the_o price_n there_o be_v nothing_o can_v be_v forgive_v thou_o but_o then_o have_v remission_n place_n when_o the_o price_n be_v not_o pay_v and_o as_o touch_v that_o place_n we_o first_o desire_v that_o our_o sin_n shall_v be_v forgive_v us._n and_o because_o that_o by_o benefit_n receive_v man_n be_v encourage_v to_o hope_n that_o they_o shall_v receive_v other_o great_a benefit_n therefore_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o sentence_n o_o father_n which_o have_v of_o thy_o fatherlie_a goodness_n give_v we_o grace_n to_o forgive_v injury_n unto_o our_o trespassour_n forgive_v unto_o we_o also_o our_o sin_n now_o by_o these_o word_n be_v not_o signify_v a_o cause_n but_o a_o similitude_n although_o that_o similitude_n be_v not_o perfect_a &_o absolute_a for_o none_o that_o be_v wise_a will_v have_v his_o sin_n so_o forgive_v he_o of_o god_n as_o he_o have_v forgive_v his_o neighbour_n the_o injury_n that_o he_o have_v do_v unto_o he_o for_o every_o one_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o that_o infirmity_n which_o it_o carry_v about_o forgive_v much_o less_o unto_o his_o brother_n than_o he_o ought_v for_o there_o stick_v always_o in_o his_o mind_n some_o offence_n which_o although_o it_o burst_v not_o forth_o yet_o his_o own_o conscience_n be_v a_o sufficient_a witness_n unto_o himself_o that_o his_o mind_n be_v not_o very_o perfect_a and_o entire_a towards_o he_o by_o who_o he_o have_v be_v hurt_v but_o the_o former_a exposition_n teach_v that_o the_o similitude_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v not_o unto_o remission_n but_o unto_o the_o liberality_n of_o god_n that_o even_o as_o he_o have_v give_v the_o one_o so_o also_o he_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o give_v the_o other_o but_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v forgive_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v forgive_v that_o be_v a_o commandment_n and_o therefore_o it_o pertain_v to_o the_o law_n but_o thou_o will_v object_v that_o this_o sentence_n be_v write_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o not_o in_o the_o law_n that_o make_v no_o matter_n volume_n the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o separate_v by_o
jerom_n that_o god_n will_v punish_v the_o rashness_n of_o the_o father_n vow_n by_o the_o death_n of_o his_o daughter_n but_o there_o be_v two_o place_n say_v he_o that_o let_v i_o from_o the_o blame_v of_o jeptha_n one_o be_v for_o that_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n he_o be_v number_v among_o the_o saint_n and_o it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o he_o howbeit_o do_v those_o holy_a man_n which_o be_v reckon_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n never_o sin_n yes_o undoubted_o their_o sin_n be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n .33_o jud._n 8_o 2d_o and_o .33_o gedeon_n who_o be_v among_o that_o number_n a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n make_v a_o ephod_n which_o be_v the_o destruction_n both_o of_o himself_o and_o also_o of_o his_o house_n the_o second_o place_n be_v 19_o verse_n 19_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v upon_o he_o yet_o this_o let_v nothing_o but_o that_o he_o may_v afterward_o fall_v but_o thou_o will_v say_v that_o jeptha_n have_v the_o victory_n but_o with_o gedeon_n there_o go_v nothing_o well_o after_o that_o act_n yea_o 27._o jud._n 8_o 27._o and_o gedeon_n say_v he_o do_v before_o after_o a_o sort_n tempt_v god_n and_o yet_o he_o have_v the_o victory_n on_o this_o wise_a say_v augustine_n but_o i_o will_v say_v otherwise_o for_o i_o agree_v not_o with_o augustine_n to_o think_v that_o gedeon_n tempt_v god_n so_o then_o i_o will_v answer_v after_o this_o manner_n david_n commit_v adultery_n 4._o 2._o sam._n 11_o 4._o and_o straitwaie_o afterward_o obtain_v the_o victory_n and_o take_v the_o city_n rab_v ammon_n in_o the_o siege_n whereof_o he_o cause_v urias_n to_o be_v slay_v saul_n persecute_v david_n 23._o 1._o sam._n 23._o in_o the_o mean_a time_n there_o be_v messenger_n send_v to_o he_o from_o the_o philistine_n he_o leave_v david_n go_v to_o the_o war_n and_o obtain_v the_o victory_n moses_n sin_v at_o the_o water_n of_o strife_n 12_o num._n 20_o 12_o the_o people_n also_o have_v sin_v many_o way_n and_o yet_o they_o obtain_v the_o victory_n against_o sihon_n and_o og_n 21._o numb_a 21._o be_v most_o mighty_a king_n wherefore_o we_o will_v grant_v that_o jeptha_n be_v number_v among_o the_o saint_n and_o yet_o he_o may_v sin_v and_o although_o he_o sin_v yet_o he_o obtain_v the_o victory_n and_o we_o will_v grant_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v upon_o he_o but_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o strength_n and_o although_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o he_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o of_o necessity_n that_o he_o do_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o same_o spirit_n for_o we_o also_o who_o be_v christian_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n when_o as_o yet_o none_o of_o we_o be_v renew_v in_o all_o part_n nay_o rather_o we_o do_v all_o sin_n oftentimes_o people_n god_n by_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o godly_a will_v figurativelie_o instruct_v the_o people_n augustine_n add_v moreover_o that_o although_o the_o forefather_n sometime_o sin_v yet_o it_o nothing_o hinder_v but_o that_o god_n may_v use_v their_o sin_n to_o signify_v those_o thing_n which_o may_v instruct_v the_o people_n for_o god_n be_v so_o good_a that_o even_o out_o of_o very_a sin_n he_o pick_v laudable_a commodity_n and_o make_v they_o allegoricallie_o to_o declare_v what_o seem_v profitable_a unto_o he_o in_o like_a manner_n as_o when_o judas_n play_v the_o harlot_n with_o his_o daughter_n in_o law_n the_o same_o signify_v that_o god_n will_v couple_v unto_o he_o his_o church_n which_o before_o be_v a_o harlot_n and_o so_o it_o may_v be_v that_o by_o this_o act_n of_o jeptha_n he_o signify_v that_o god_n so_o love_v mankind_n as_o he_o will_v give_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n to_o die_v for_o it_o for_o he_o do_v not_o in_o vain_a and_o without_o any_o cause_n suffer_v such_o a_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o father_n albeit_o they_o gréevouslie_o sin_v yet_o can_v god_n use_v their_o action_n to_o the_o instruction_n of_o his_o people_n they_o be_v amaze_v at_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o beast_n neither_o do_v they_o as_o it_o have_v be_v meet_a they_o shall_v lift_v up_o the_o eye_n of_o their_o mind_n unto_o christ_n wherefore_o god_n will_v by_o this_o mean_n stir_v up_o they_o that_o be_v sluggish_a that_o by_o the_o humane_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o daughter_n of_o jeptha_n they_o may_v be_v lead_v to_o think_v upon_o christ_n for_o he_o it_o be_v that_o shall_v give_v life_n and_o become_v the_o sacrifice_n for_o mankind_n 21_o afterward_o augustine_n declare_v a_o reason_n whereby_o he_o defend_v the_o act_n of_o jeptha_n it_o may_v be_v say_v say_v he_o that_o he_o be_v move_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o make_v a_o vow_n and_o lead_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n to_o perform_v it_o wherefore_o he_o shall_v be_v worthy_a of_o praise_n so_o far_o be_v it_o off_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v reproove_v howbeit_o this_o can_v be_v gather_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o history_n and_o whereas_o some_o say_v which_o we_o before_o have_v touch_v that_o he_o weep_v râat_v his_o garment_n sorrow_v earnest_o and_o therefore_o be_v not_o lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n this_o do_v not_o much_o move_v i_o 39_o god_n so_o require_v obedience_n as_o he_o draw_v not_o away_o humane_a affection_n matt._n 26_o 38._o ibidem_fw-la 39_o for_o god_n so_o require_v of_o we_o the_o duty_n of_o godliness_n that_o nevertheless_o he_o take_v not_o from_o our_o mind_n humane_a affection_n christ_n himself_o when_o he_o be_v to_o suffer_v willing_a death_n for_o our_o sake_n say_v nevertheless_o my_o soul_n be_v heavy_a even_o unto_o the_o death_n he_o pray_v also_o father_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a let_v this_o cup_n pass_v from_o i_o but_o augustine_n meaning_n be_v to_o declare_v how_o jeptha_n may_v be_v defend_v which_o i_o also_o will_v glad_o do_v if_o i_o have_v any_o part_n of_o the_o history_n to_o help_v i_o but_o that_o which_o follow_v in_o augustine_n be_v speak_v to_o imitate_v ambrose_n augustine_n a_o excuse_v of_o augustine_n for_o he_o write_v that_o the_o error_n of_o jeptha_n have_v some_o praise_n of_o faith_n which_o as_o i_o have_v declare_v before_o may_v not_o be_v receive_v for_o if_o it_o be_v a_o error_n then_o can_v it_o not_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n further_o if_o it_o be_v sin_n what_o praise_n of_o faith_n can_v there_o be_v in_o it_o because_o he_o fear_v not_o to_o pay_v that_o which_o he_o have_v promise_v what_o if_o the_o vow_n be_v not_o lawful_a can_v faith_n be_v commend_v there_o moreover_o he_o say_v he_o eschew_v not_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o he_o hope_v that_o he_o will_v have_v forbid_v he_o from_o kill_v of_o his_o daughter_n he_o will_v rather_o that_o the_o will_n of_o god_n shall_v in_o any_o wise_a be_v do_v than_o that_o he_o will_v contemn_v it_o these_o thing_n be_v well_o speak_v if_o he_o have_v be_v assure_v of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n but_o be_v not_o the_o will_n of_o god_n manifest_a nay_o rather_o god_n have_v otherwise_o forbid_v by_o his_o law_n wherefore_o if_o it_o be_v a_o error_n it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v praise_v but_o if_o the_o spirit_n move_v he_o than_o be_v there_o no_o error_n in_o it_o that_o which_o he_o afterward_o add_v be_v most_o true_a and_o make_v on_o my_o side_n first_o he_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v forbid_v both_o by_o the_o example_n of_o abraham_n and_o also_o by_o the_o law_n that_o a_o man_n shall_v not_o kill_v his_o child_n further_o why_o the_o maiden_n weep_v he_o bring_v the_o same_o reason_n which_o i_o allege_v namely_o that_o both_o father_n shall_v beware_v from_o bind_v themselves_o to_o such_o a_o vow_n and_o also_o that_o so_o great_a a_o obedience_n of_o such_o a_o maid_n shall_v not_o be_v forget_v these_o thing_n we_o have_v out_o of_o augustine_n by_o which_o word_n appear_v that_o his_o opinion_n be_v that_o this_o virgin_n be_v sacrifice_v in_o very_a deed_n and_o not_o compel_v by_o the_o vow_n of_o chastity_n to_o live_v sole_a which_o judgement_n i_o myself_o do_v altogether_o allow_v 22_o they_o which_o hold_v the_o contrary_a have_v only_o two_o or_o three_o author_n but_o there_o be_v a_o multitude_n which_o hold_v on_o my_o side_n and_o especial_o the_o ancient_a rabbin_n which_o live_v at_o that_o time_n when_o the_o chaldaean_n paraphra_v and_o the_o write_n of_o the_o thalmud_n be_v set_v forth_o for_o the_o chaldaean_n paraphra_v affirm_v that_o the_o maiden_n be_v slay_v josephus_n ambrose_n confirm_v reason_n by_o which_o the_o interpretation_n be_v confirm_v and_o augustine_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n and_o the_o reason_n which_o we_o have_v
all_o these_o thing_n 10._o luk._n 17_o 10._o say_v that_o you_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n we_o have_v do_v that_o which_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o do_v we_o be_v bind_v thereunto_o by_o the_o law_n even_o aristotle_n see_v this_o for_o he_o say_v we_o can_v not_o make_v just_a recompense_n to_o our_o parent_n and_o to_o the_o god_n 18._o rom._n 8_o 18._o paul_n in_o the_o 8._o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n say_v that_o the_o suffering_n of_o this_o life_n be_v not_o worthy_a of_o the_o glory_n that_o be_v to_o come_v which_o shall_v be_v reveal_v in_o we_o and_o yet_o these_o man_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n boast_v of_o the_o merit_n of_o worthiness_n but_o when_o we_o speak_v say_v they_o of_o satisfy_v that_o particle_n satis_fw-la betoken_v not_o perfect_a satisfaction_n but_o some_o portion_n which_o we_o be_v able_a but_o what_o do_v they_o say_v objection_n a_o objection_n forsooth_o nothing_o for_o that_o which_o we_o give_v be_v none_o of_o our_o own_o we_o can_v do_v nothing_o unless_o we_o do_v it_o by_o grace_n further_o their_o definition_n fail_v to_o wit_n that_o recompense_n be_v according_a to_o equality_n in_o this_o there_o be_v a_o relation_n to_o be_v have_v not_o only_o our_o own_o power_n must_v be_v consider_v but_o also_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v recompense_v further_o if_o they_o will_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v satisfaction_n for_o punishment_n it_o behoove_v to_o weigh_v satisfaction_n that_o they_o may_v have_v a_o proportion_n with_o the_o punishment_n who_o have_v be_v a_o counsellor_n unto_o god_n to_o know_v how_o much_o he_o will_v punish_v every_o sin_n what_o seek_v christ_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o thief_n 43._o luk._n 23_o 43._o what_o punishment_n do_v he_o lay_v upon_o the_o woman_n that_o be_v a_o sinner_n 48._o luk._n 7_o 48._o he_o say_v unto_o the_o adulteress_n go_v thy_o way_n i_o will_v that_o thou_o sin_n no_o more_o if_o christ_n deal_v in_o this_o sort_n why_o do_v they_o devise_v new_a way_n 32_o but_o the_o church_n say_v they_o in_o old_a time_n have_v satisfaction_n 16._o what_o manner_n of_o satisfaction_n the_o old_a church_n have_v look_v before_o place_n 9_o art_n 16._o the_o father_n make_v mention_n of_o they_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o what_o manner_n of_o satisfaction_n be_v they_o even_o signification_n of_o true_a repentance_n they_o will_v not_o in_o time_n past_a receive_v forthwith_o such_o as_o be_v very_o great_a sinner_n their_o desire_n be_v that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v well_o report_v of_o but_o at_o this_o day_n this_o kind_n of_o satisfaction_n be_v abolish_v neither_o the_o papist_n themselves_o retain_v it_o nay_o rather_o in_o their_o satisfaction_n they_o have_v subvert_v the_o old_a order_n in_o the_o old_a time_n these_o satisfaction_n be_v require_v before_o they_o shall_v be_v absolve_v but_o these_o man_n first_o absolve_v and_o receive_v a_o sinner_n and_o then_o they_o will_v have_v he_o to_o do_v i_o know_v not_o what_o such_o be_v the_o order_n in_o the_o church_n in_o time_n past_a they_o which_o be_v penitent_a remain_v apart_o from_o other_o they_o hard_a sermon_n and_o be_v present_a at_o prayer_n but_o yet_o in_o the_o degree_n of_o penitent_n at_o such_o time_n as_o sacrament_n be_v minister_v they_o go_v their_o way_n but_o these_o thing_n be_v out_o of_o use_n paul_n in_o the_o 2._o to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 7._o chapter_n say_v 11._o verse_n 11._o behold_v even_o this_o thing_n that_o you_o have_v be_v godlilie_o sorry_a what_o great_a care_n have_v it_o wrought_v in_o you_o yea_o what_o satisfaction_n the_o greek_a text_n have_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v excusation_n expound_v a_o place_n of_o paul_n expound_v because_o the_o corinthian_n be_v rebuke_v of_o paul_n satisfy_v he_o that_o be_v they_o excuse_v and_o approve_v themselves_o unto_o he_o by_o these_o action_n for_o they_o abandon_v incest_n they_o urge_v and_o say_v that_o the_o work_n of_o they_o that_o be_v penitent_a be_v say_v by_o the_o father_n to_o satisfy_v god_n also_o &_o not_o the_o church_n alone_o the_o which_o those_o do_v offend_v that_o have_v a_o ill_a name_n let_v we_o see_v how_o they_o understand_v this_o undoubted_o the_o father_n do_v not_o think_v god_n how_o the_o work_n of_o penitent_a man_n do_v satisfy_v god_n that_o man_n receive_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n by_o these_o action_n of_o penitent_a person_n they_o know_v that_o this_o be_v only_o due_a unto_o christ_n but_o they_o understand_v that_o man_n while_o they_o thus_o work_v by_o faith_n do_v allow_v themselves_o unto_o god_n according_a as_o they_o may_v and_o that_o when_o they_o crave_v pardon_n of_o the_o sin_n that_o be_v past_a they_o as_o it_o be_v purge_v and_o satisfy_v themselves_o when_o one_o have_v hurt_v another_o man_n he_o be_v wont_v to_o satisfy_v he_o by_o sorow_v by_o make_v request_n and_o by_o offer_v his_o service_n unto_o he_o the_o party_n offend_v say_v now_o be_o i_o satisfy_v although_o recompense_n be_v not_o make_v of_o the_o injury_n do_v but_o we_o if_o we_o shall_v speak_v of_o true_a satisfaction_n do_v only_o attribute_v that_o unto_o christ_n he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o only_o for_o our_o sin_n but_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n father_n how_o christ_n satisfy_v the_o father_n and_o after_o what_o sort_n he_o satisfy_v the_o father_n i_o will_v in_o few_o word_n contrive_v some_o have_v think_v that_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o same_o obedience_n according_a to_o his_o humanity_n be_v of_o a_o limit_a worthiness_n and_o that_o it_o do_v not_o satisfy_v the_o father_n further_o than_o he_o accept_v the_o same_o they_o will_v not_o grant_v that_o if_o the_o thing_n be_v consider_v by_o itself_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o equal_a value_n they_o add_v also_o that_o god_n may_v have_v deal_v by_o other_o mean_n but_o that_o he_o accept_v this_o mean_n there_o be_v another_o way_n which_o seem_v much_o better_a unto_o i_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o death_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v not_o as_o in_o the_o power_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n only_o because_o they_o be_v action_n as_o the_o schoolman_n term_v they_o of_o subject_n person_n and_o of_o indivisible_a thing_n the_o person_n of_o christ_n although_o it_o have_v two_o nature_n yet_o be_v it_o one_o wherefore_o those_o be_v the_o action_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o not_o consider_v the_o humane_a nature_n apart_o we_o may_v say_v that_o the_o divine_a nature_n wrought_v by_o the_o humane_a so_o do_v those_o action_n true_o merit_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o be_v condign_a and_o of_o equal_a value_n but_o they_o be_v due_a say_v they_o for_o christ_n be_v a_o creature_n and_o do_v owe_v all_o his_o work_n but_o he_o be_v god_n and_o of_o one_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n he_o have_v the_o fullness_n of_o grace_n but_o no_o crave_a grace_n wherefore_o he_o satisfy_v and_o not_o alonelie_o take_v away_o the_o fault_n but_o the_o punishment_n also_o if_o the_o godly_a be_v afflict_v it_o be_v for_o a_o other_o cause_n as_o we_o shall_v understand_v wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o seek_v other_o satisfaction_n this_o be_v free_o give_v esaie_n say_v 3._o esaie_n 52_o 3._o you_o shall_v be_v redeem_v without_o money_n 7._o why_o god_n promise_v many_o thing_n to_o our_o work_n esai_n 58_o 7._o 33_o they_o say_v but_o god_n have_v promise_v many_o thing_n unto_o our_o work_n the_o prophet_n esaie_n say_v break_v bread_n unto_o the_o hungry_a and_o god_n will_v give_v thou_o rest_n etc._n etc._n god_n deal_v with_o man_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n when_o we_o will_v invite_v any_o man_n to_o do_v well_o we_o promise_v he_o reward_n there_o be_v bring_v a_o example_n the_o father_n mind_v free_o to_o give_v a_o garment_n unto_o his_o son_n yet_o to_o stir_v he_o up_o unto_o learning_n he_o say_v i_o will_v give_v thou_o a_o garment_n if_o thou_o can_v recite_v this_o or_o that_o thing_n without_o the_o book_n thus_o do_v god_n deal_v when_o he_o give_v free_o &_o the_o work_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o reward_n nor_o can_v be_v compare_v with_o they_o in_o worthiness_n yet_o deny_v we_o not_o but_o that_o man_n by_o live_v well_o may_v mitigate_v the_o affliction_n of_o this_o world_n because_o obedience_n please_v god_n 31_o 1._o cor._n 11_o 31_o paul_n say_v if_o we_o will_v judge_v ourselves_o we_o shall_v not_o then_o be_v judge_v a_o man_n to_o judge_v himself_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n than_o to_o be_v sorry_a for_o his_o sin_n commit_v to_o live_v uprightlie_o and_o to_o change_v his_o life_n tear_n and_o lamentation_n be_v use_v therewithal_o because_o they_o be_v the_o effect_n
manner_n that_o we_o shall_v weep_v for_o the_o sin_n already_o commit_v and_o we_o shall_v take_v heed_n we_o do_v not_o the_o same_o again_o and_o chrysostome_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n the_o twelve_o homily_n complain_v chrysost_n chrysost_n that_o the_o christian_n abuse_a tear_n tear_n the_o abuse_n of_o tear_n and_o that_o whereas_o otherwise_o they_o be_v good_a creature_n of_o god_n they_o diffame_v they_o in_o that_o they_o use_v they_o in_o such_o thing_n as_o deserve_v no_o weep_v sin_n only_o say_v he_o must_v be_v weep_v for_o not_o only_o our_o own_o sin_n 20_o we_o must_v bewail_v the_o sin_n both_o of_o ourselves_o and_o of_o other_o 2._o co._n 12._o 20_o but_o other_o man_n sin_n also_o which_o in_o very_a deed_n paul_n perform_v who_o in_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n say_v that_o he_o be_v afraid_a that_o he_o shall_v not_o come_v unto_o they_o but_o so_o as_o he_o be_v pensive_a &_o compel_v to_o weep_v for_o very_a many_o which_o be_v fall_v have_v not_o repent_v yea_o and_o he_o exhort_v the_o same_o corinthian_n to_o weep_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o when_o in_o his_o epistle_n he_o say_v you_o be_v puff_v up_o and_o have_v not_o mourn_v 2._o 1._o cor._n 5_o 2._o namely_o for_o a_o gréevous_a crime_n of_o a_o incestuous_a man_n and_o david_n in_o his_o 119._o psalm_n write_v 136._o verse_n 136._o my_o eye_n have_v bring_v forth_o river_n of_o water_n because_o they_o have_v not_o keep_v thy_o law_n that_o most_o holy_a prophet_n weep_v because_o of_o the_o public_a transgression_n of_o the_o law_n and_o when_o as_o he_o see_v those_o transgression_n every_o where_o commit_v he_o pour_v forth_o abundance_n of_o tear_n 4._o ezech._n 9_o 4._o and_o ezechiel_n in_o the_o nine_o chapter_n commend_v some_o which_o weep_v for_o the_o wicked_a act_n of_o other_o man_n and_o hereof_o it_o come_v laugh_v the_o godly_a do_v easy_o weep_v than_o laugh_v that_o when_o holy_a man_n see_v horrible_a spectacle_n of_o sin_n to_o happen_v often_o they_o do_v more_o easy_o break_v forth_o into_o tear_n than_o into_o laughter_n for_o so_o christ_n use_v to_o do_v who_o we_o read_v to_o have_v oftentimes_o weep_v but_o we_o never_o read_v that_o he_o laugh_v the_o very_a which_o thing_n we_o also_o must_v do_v at_o this_o day_n see_v so_o evil_a a_o harvest_n of_o sin_n do_v every_o where_n show_v itself_o 4_o final_o we_o must_v understand_v that_o all_o kind_n of_o mourn_v be_v not_o allow_v by_o god_n for_o there_o be_v some_o as_o i_o have_v declare_v before_o which_o be_v only_o move_v with_o the_o feel_v of_o punishment_n neither_o do_v they_o procee_v any_o further_a in_o deed_n the_o sorrow_n for_o pain_n and_o punishment_n sake_n be_v a_o certain_a degree_n unto_o true_a repentance_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n god_n both_o punish_v and_o threaten_v man_n 5._o the_o weep_v which_o come_v only_o through_o the_o feel_v of_o punishment_n be_v not_o allow_v verse_n 5._o while_o they_o live_v here_o howbeit_o this_o sorrow_n be_v not_o sufficient_a neither_o be_v it_o by_o itself_o allow_v of_o god_n for_o it_o spring_v of_o self-love_n and_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n a_o thing_n unprofitable_a unless_o it_o go_v further_o wherefore_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o zacharie_n the_o seven_o chapter_n that_o the_o hebrews_n have_v fast_v for_o themselves_o &_o not_o for_o his_o glory_n so_o these_o weep_v and_o mourn_v for_o themselves_o and_o not_o because_o they_o have_v violate_v the_o commandment_n of_o god._n condemn_v the_o tear_n of_o they_o which_o speak_v evil_a of_o god_n be_v condemn_v moreover_o thou_o may_v see_v some_o other_o somewhat_o worse_a than_o these_o which_o be_v move_v with_o the_o sorrow_n of_o trouble_n do_v in_o their_o weep_a and_o among_o their_o tear_n speak_v evil_a of_o god_n himself_o be_v angry_a at_o his_o justice_n as_o though_o he_o be_v too_o severe_a and_o a_o hard_a lord_n than_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o such_o mourn_n belong_v not_o to_o repentance_n but_o rather_o to_o despair_v a_o example_n thereof_o we_o have_v in_o the_o book_n of_o number_n 2._o num._n 14_o 2._o the_o 14._o chapter_n where_o the_o people_n hear_v the_o bitter_a relation_n of_o the_o spy_n fall_v to_o weep_v and_o speak_v evil_a both_o against_o moses_n and_o against_o god_n and_o determine_v to_o turn_v into_o egypt_n god_n what_o kind_n of_o mourn_v be_v most_o acceptable_a to_o god_n the_o three_o kind_n of_o mourn_v be_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n and_o that_o be_v when_o we_o be_v gréevouslie_o sorry_a because_o we_o have_v violate_v his_o law_n and_o because_o we_o see_v a_o great_a number_n of_o other_o resist_v his_o most_o holy_a will_n to_o this_o kind_n of_o lamentation_n do_v joel_n 17._o joel._n 2_o 16._o and_o 17._o and_o other_o holy_a prophet_n stir_v up_o the_o people_n of_o the_o hebrews_n christ_n also_o persuade_v we_o unto_o they_o 4._o matt._n 5_o 4._o when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v bless_v which_o mourn_v because_o consolation_n be_v lay_v up_o for_o they_o the_o church_n also_o use_v sometime_o to_o stir_v up_o the_o people_n to_o these_o kind_n of_o moorning_n renew_v public_a repentance_n must_v sometime_o be_v renew_v when_o as_o sometime_o public_o it_o renew_v repentance_n which_o although_o it_o ought_v continual_o to_o cleave_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o christian_n yet_o by_o reason_n of_o public_a calamity_n and_o a_o certain_a sluggishness_n graff_v in_o we_o ought_v sometime_o to_o be_v renew_v by_o the_o diligence_n of_o pastor_n wherefore_o in_o the_o old_a law_n god_n institute_v a_o fast_a to_o be_v hold_v once_o a_o year_n namely_o in_o the_o 7._o month_n in_o the_o which_o day_n the_o people_n of_o israel_n shall_v afflict_v themselves_o before_o god_n for_o the_o sin_n that_o they_o have_v commit_v and_o to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v the_o more_o solemn_o be_v do_v god_n many_o time_n send_v his_o prophet_n to_o reproove_v the_o people_n of_o fast_v 5_o to_o begin_v at_o the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n auen-ezra_n in_o jud._n 20._o at_o the_o end_n auen-ezra_n this_o hebrew_n verb_n tsom_n signify_v to_o afflict_v wherefore_o auen-ezra_n say_v that_o wheresoever_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v find_v affliction_n of_o the_o soul_n there_o fast_v be_v understand_v there_o be_v another_o word_n namely_o tsame_a very_o nigh_o unto_o this_o word_n and_o it_o signify_v to_o thirst_v for_o they_o which_o fast_o much_o be_v wont_v to_o thirst_n because_o the_o humour_n of_o the_o body_n be_v with_o hunger_n and_o fast_v dry_v up_o the_o grecian_n do_v derive_v this_o greek_a word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d of_o this_o privative_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d &_o of_o the_o greek_a verb_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o be_v to_o be_v strong_a and_o firm_a because_o by_o fast_v the_o strength_n of_o the_o body_n be_v diminish_v but_o because_o this_o privative_a or_o particle_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v rather_o extensive_a it_o seem_v to_o signify_v a_o very_a firm_a and_o strong_a thing_n because_o a_o man_n that_o be_v fast_v be_v very_o firm_a and_o constant_a so_o that_o he_o have_v rather_o suffer_v pain_n than_o go_v from_o his_o purpose_n also_o the_o grecian_n have_v another_o word_n for_o fast_v namely_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d because_o they_o which_o fast_o do_v withdraw_v from_o themselves_o nourishment_n and_o food_n for_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d signify_v both_o corn_n and_o meat_n fast_v a_o distinction_n of_o fast_v but_o before_o i_o define_v what_o fast_v be_v i_o think_v good_a to_o distinguish_v the_o same_o for_o see_v there_o be_v sundry_a kind_n of_o fasting_n they_o serve_v not_o all_o to_o our_o purpose_n for_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a fast_o that_o be_v natural_a fast_o a_o natural_a fast_o which_o pertain_v either_o to_o the_o defend_n or_o recover_v the_o health_n of_o the_o body_n wherefore_o hypocrates_n say_v that_o they_o which_o be_v of_o a_o full_a and_o perfect_a age_n or_o else_o be_v old_a hippocrat_n hippocrat_n can_v very_o well_o abide_v fast_v in_o which_o place_n old_a man_n must_v be_v understand_v as_o concern_v the_o first_o entrance_n into_o old_a age_n for_o they_o which_o be_v old_a can_v no_o better_o abide_v fast_v than_o young_a man_n or_o child_n this_o kind_n of_o fast_v we_o leave_v to_o the_o physician_n see_v it_o be_v none_o of_o that_o which_o we_o entreat_v of_o there_o be_v another_o fast_n which_o be_v civil_a fast_o a_o civil_a fast_o and_o be_v then_o take_v in_o hand_n when_o man_n be_v so_o bend_v to_o their_o business_n as_o by_o no_o mean_n they_o will_v intermit_v their_o affair_n which_o they_o have_v in_o hand_n so_o saul_n when_o he_o pursue_v the_o
this_o say_n who_o be_v furnish_v with_o kingly_a power_n and_o infinite_a wealth_n may_v attain_v unto_o all_o kind_n of_o pleasure_n and_o delight_n and_o see_v he_o prevail_v great_o in_o wit_n and_o excel_v other_o in_o singular_a knowledge_n undoubted_o he_o see_v all_o the_o way_n and_o mean_n by_o the_o which_o pleasure_n and_o delight_n may_v be_v obtain_v for_o as_o he_o himself_o confess_v he_o spare_v no_o cost_n he_o appoint_v for_o himself_o singer_n both_o man_n and_o woman_n he_o prepare_v for_o himself_o rich_a building_n and_o also_o notable_a house_n of_o pleasure_n and_o fishpond_n in_o the_o country_n and_o final_o he_o have_v experience_n of_o allthing_n whereby_o man_n be_v wont_v to_o attain_v unto_o bodily_a pleasure_n but_o yet_o at_o the_o last_o he_o repent_v with_o vehement_a affirmation_n cry_v out_o vanity_n of_o vanity_n and_o all_o be_v but_o vanity_n wherefore_o if_o we_o embrace_v this_o sentence_n we_o will_v say_v that_o he_o do_v repent_v and_o that_o the_o predestination_n of_o god_n be_v not_o make_v frustrate_a in_o he_o and_o that_o his_o fall_n be_v specify_v in_o the_o holy_a history_n for_o all_o our_o instruction_n and_o they_o be_v lay_v before_o our_o eye_n by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n but_o if_o he_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o reprobate_n yet_o can_v it_o not_o in_o like_a manner_n be_v deny_v but_o that_o by_o his_o fall_n we_o have_v notable_a warning_n but_o he_o himself_o which_o transgress_v have_v undoubted_o suffer_v just_a punishment_n of_o his_o ingratitude_n yet_o nevertheless_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v by_o any_o mean_n accuse_v god_n who_o endue_v he_o abundantlie_o with_o all_o good_a thing_n in_o man_n certeinlie_o be_v always_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n the_o which_o in_o no_o wise_a can_v be_v in_o god_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o therefore_o bring_v to_o pass_v but_o that_o god_n may_v use_v the_o transgression_n of_o man_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o his_o own_o choose_a people_n let_v his_o own_o secret_n be_v sound_a and_o entire_a unto_o himself_o let_v we_o follow_v his_o will_n according_a as_o it_o be_v reveal_v in_o his_o law_n and_o divine_a scripture_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v we_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o live_v in_o continual_a prosperity_n wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o by_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n that_o we_o fall_v headlong_o into_o damnation_n but_o it_o come_v by_o reason_n we_o be_v so_o very_o corrupt_a that_o we_o never_o in_o a_o manner_n keep_v ourselves_o within_o just_a limit_n it_o be_v a_o incredible_a thing_n to_o be_v speak_v what_o great_a liberty_n the_o most_o mighty_a monarch_n the_o rich_a man_n and_o notable_a learned_a man_n give_v unto_o themselves_o and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o other_o example_n extant_a of_o this_o thing_n worthy_a to_o be_v give_v i_o suppose_v this_o of_o solomon_n do_v chéeflie_o serve_v to_o the_o purpose_n of_o liberality_n and_o magnificence_n 19_o in_o the_o bestow_n of_o money_n ethic_n in_o the_o commentary_n upon_o aristotle_n ethic_n the_o mean_a be_v account_v liberality_n and_o he_o which_o exceed_v be_v count_v riotous_a unthriftie_a and_o prodigal_a he_o save_v not_o his_o thing_n nay_o but_o he_o destroy_v they_o he_o give_v over_o much_o but_o receive_v little_a but_o the_o covetous_a man_n he_o stand_v in_o the_o other_o extremity_n and_o receive_v more_o than_o be_v meet_a but_o bestow_v less_o wherefore_o excess_n and_o covetousness_n be_v on_o this_o wise_a oppose_a one_o against_o another_o magnificence_n magnificence_n magnificence_n be_v by_o aristotle_n call_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d because_o expense_n be_v pour_v out_o beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o measure_n and_o honesty_n this_o excess_n be_v also_o call_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v a_o certain_a affectation_n of_o gorgiousnes_n and_o greatness_n while_o in_o the_o bestow_n of_o cost_n we_o endeavour_n to_o have_v a_o honour_n and_o comeliness_n where_o need_n require_v not_o for_o base_a artificer_n since_o they_o be_v unskilful_a in_o thing_n while_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v magnifical_a do_v great_o offend_v in_o this_o kind_n of_o expense_n once_o a_o shoemaker_n that_o become_v rich_a make_v a_o feast_n to_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n and_o aesop_n the_o player_n in_o tragedy_n mind_v to_o make_v a_o magnifical_a feast_n buy_v tongue_n of_o most_o precious_a bird_n and_o oftentimes_o in_o city_n where_o the_o people_n favour_n be_v seek_v such_o kind_n of_o expense_n be_v use_v because_o the_o people_n delight_n in_o they_o and_o those_o base_a artificer_n which_o know_v not_o wherein_o a_o mediocrity_n stand_v although_o for_o their_o small_a ability_n they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o make_v such_o expense_n yet_o be_v they_o delight_v in_o they_o wherefore_o cicero_n say_v that_o private_a riotousness_n do_v not_o please_v the_o people_n of_o rome_n but_o public_a magnificence_n 20_o but_o here_o peradventure_o some_o man_n will_v ask_v beginning_n in_o 2._o king_n 4_o at_o the_o beginning_n for_o what_o cause_n god_n so_o often_o suffer_v his_o people_n that_o be_v to_o say_v those_o which_o do_v true_o and_o sincere_o worship_v he_o to_o suffer_v poverty_n 10._o job._n 1._o tob._n 2_o 12._o gen._n 32_o 10._o for_o the_o holy_a history_n do_v show_v that_o job_n tobias_n and_o jacob_n when_o he_o go_v to_o laban_n as_o a_o stranger_n from_o his_o father_n house_n and_o many_o other_o of_o the_o saint_n be_v bring_v into_o poverty_n of_o these_o event_n there_o may_v be_v many_o cause_n show_v one_o be_v that_o god_n by_o this_o kind_n of_o exercise_n will_v declare_v the_o faith_n and_o patience_n of_o his_o people_n for_o by_o such_o mean_v he_o bring_v forth_o into_o light_n those_o virtue_n which_o he_o have_v bestow_v upon_o they_o lest_o they_o shall_v be_v hide_v furthermore_o he_o will_v sometime_o have_v his_o protection_n and_o care_n towards_o they_o to_o be_v make_v manifest_a when_o their_o state_n be_v change_v he_o make_v they_o rich_a again_o and_o restore_v they_o to_o their_o former_a state_n according_a as_o we_o know_v it_o happen_v unto_o job_n tobias_n and_o jacob_n and_o unto_o many_o other_o further_o he_o will_v teach_v we_o hereby_o that_o we_o must_v not_o make_v so_o much_o account_n of_o worldly_a riches_n as_o we_o shall_v thereby_o measure_v the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god._n 28._o look_v in_o 2._o sam._n 22_o verse_n 24._o galat._n 3_o 28._o for_o even_o as_o respect_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n there_o be_v neither_o male_a nor_o female_a neither_o bond_n nor_o free_a even_o so_o there_o be_v neither_o rich_a nor_o poor_a which_o thing_n can_v general_o be_v affirm_v by_o the_o papist_n which_o sell_v their_o pardon_n for_o money_n and_o for_o rich_a oblation_n do_v pull_v soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n which_o oblation_n see_v the_o poor_a can_v make_v they_o want_v those_o benefit_n of_o they_o beside_o this_o through_o want_n of_o the_o good_n of_o this_o world_n god_n bridle_v the_o wantonness_n of_o the_o flesh_n for_o there_o be_v very_o many_o which_o if_o they_o shall_v abound_v in_o wealth_n they_o will_v abuse_v the_o same_o to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o lust_n of_o their_o flesh_n wherefore_o by_o this_o wholesome_a remedy_n the_o heavenly_a father_n do_v keep_v they_o under_o lest_o they_o shall_v shameful_o run_v at_o large_a and_o lest_o that_o poverty_n shall_v be_v repute_v for_o a_o infamous_a and_o vile_a state_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n will_v suffer_v the_o same_o while_o he_o live_v among_o us._n 11._o in_o 1._o cor._n 4_o ver_fw-la 11._o 21_o yet_o perhaps_o some_o man_n will_v here_o doubt_v that_o see_v christ_n have_v say_v that_o the_o workman_n be_v worthy_a of_o his_o reward_n 10_o matt._n 10_o 10_o and_o again_o your_o heavenly_a father_n know_v 32._o matt._n 6_o 32._o that_o you_o have_v need_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n and_o again_o seek_v you_o first_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 33._o ibidem_fw-la 33._o and_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v give_v unto_o you_o and_o david_n say_v i_o never_o see_v the_o just_a man_n forsake_v 25._o psal_n 37_o 25._o nor_o his_o seed_n beg_v their_o bread_n how_o can_v hunger_n thirst_n and_o nakedness_n which_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o four_o chapter_n declare_v that_o he_o suffer_v agree_v with_o these_o thing_n we_o answer_v that_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v most_o true_a but_o yet_o that_o they_o be_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o cross_n god_n have_v promise_v the_o foresay_a thing_n but_o yet_o not_o so_o as_o we_o shall_v possess_v they_o without_o penury_n and_o affliction_n 3._o matth._n 4_o 2._o john_n 18_o 28._o 1._o sam._n 21_o 3._o christ_n do_v hunger_n and_o
mortify_v shall_v have_v be_v translate_v we_o be_v slay_v for_o the_o hebrew_n word_n be_v horagnu_n although_o the_o greek_a word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d sometime_o signify_v to_o mortify_v for_o that_o word_n paul_n use_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n 13._o rom._n 8_o 13._o when_o he_o say_v and_o if_o you_o by_o the_o spirit_n mortify_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o flesh_n you_o shall_v live_v but_o here_o as_o we_o say_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d signify_v to_o be_v slay_v and_o to_o be_v deliver_v unto_o the_o death_n 15_o but_o that_o which_o follow_v all_o the_o day_n long_o signify_v that_o death_n do_v continual_o hang_v over_o they_o and_o that_o they_o be_v never_o secure_a but_o that_o they_o think_v they_o shall_v be_v forthwith_o draw_v unto_o death_n chrysost_n chrysost_n albeit_o chrysostome_n amplifi_v this_o a_o other_o way_n it_o be_v of_o necessity_n say_v he_o that_o man_n die_v once_o at_o the_o least_o but_o see_v they_o be_v so_o prepare_v that_o they_o be_v willing_a every_o day_n to_o die_v if_o need_v require_v they_o have_v every_o day_n the_o fruit_n of_o martyrdom_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v every_o day_n die_v and_o the_o cause_n much_o relieve_v and_o comfort_v they_o for_o they_o be_v not_o slay_v as_o wicked_a man_n or_o malefactor_n but_o only_o for_o religion_n &_o godliness_n sake_n and_o therefore_o they_o say_v for_o thy_o sake_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n some_o think_v that_o that_o psalm_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o first_o captivity_n for_o then_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o punish_v for_o god_n cause_n or_o for_o religion_n sake_n but_o because_o they_o be_v idolater_n and_o so_o wicked_a as_o god_n will_v no_o long_o suffer_v they_o for_o they_o have_v now_o altogether_o fall_v away_o from_o god_n the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n be_v almost_o clean_o blot_v out_o the_o temple_n be_v shut_v up_o macedonian_n the_o jew_n for_o the_o law_n suffer_v many_o thing_n under_o antiochus_n and_o the_o macedonian_n the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n overflowen_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o prophet_n wherefore_o this_o be_v a_o pprophecy_n of_o the_o latter_a calamity_n which_o happen_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o machabeis_n under_o antiochus_n and_o the_o macedonian_n for_o then_o the_o jew_n suffer_v most_o gréevous_a torment_n because_o they_o will_v defend_v the_o law_n of_o god_n therefore_o they_o say_v for_o thy_o sake_n be_v we_o slay_v and_o in_o a_o other_o verse_n it_o be_v add_v and_o yet_o for_o these_o thing_n have_v we_o not_o forget_v thou_o or_o do_v unfaithfullie_o against_o thy_o covenant_n these_o thing_n be_v not_o so_o speak_v as_o though_o man_n do_v at_o any_o time_n suffer_v more_o gréevous_a thing_n than_o they_o have_v deserve_v for_o none_o of_o all_o the_o martyr_n live_v so_o pure_o and_o innocent_o but_o that_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o some_o sin_n but_o those_o sin_n deserve_v not_o only_o the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n but_o also_o without_o the_o help_n of_o christ_n his_o death_n everlasting_a punishment_n but_o these_o pain_n and_o vexation_n god_n send_v not_o upon_o they_o as_o be_v angry_a but_o for_o the_o set_n forth_o of_o his_o truth_n and_o glory_n howbeit_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n according_a as_o he_o promise_v life_n matt._n 19_o 29._o god_n render_v a_o hundred_o fold_n unto_o they_o which_o have_v suffer_v for_o his_o name_n in_o this_o life_n he_o repai_v unto_o they_o not_o only_a life_n eternal_a but_o also_o in_o this_o life_n he_o render_v unto_o they_o a_o hundred_o fold_n for_o oftentimes_o he_o most_o abundantlie_o restore_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v lose_v for_o his_o sake_n sometime_o also_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o tribulation_n and_o even_o in_o the_o very_a cross_n and_o death_n he_o give_v unto_o they_o so_o much_o strength_n and_o consolation_n that_o in_o very_a deed_n it_o be_v more_o than_o a_o hundred_o fold_n if_o it_o be_v compare_v with_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v lose_v and_o because_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v secret_a and_o hide_a god_n will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v testify_v not_o only_o by_o oracle_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o also_o by_o the_o torment_n and_o slaughter_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o therefore_o christ_n unto_o the_o apostle_n 8._o act._n 1_o 8._o when_o he_o send_v they_o into_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o preach_v you_o shall_v be_v witness_n unto_o i_o in_o jewrie_n and_o in_o samaria_n and_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n by_o word_n to_o testify_v the_o truth_n but_o those_o testimony_n be_v most_o weighty_a which_o be_v seal_v with_o blood_n augustine_n not_o punishment_n nor_o death_n but_o the_o cause_n make_v martyr_n augustine_n and_o with_o death_n howbeit_o this_o must_v be_v know_v as_o augustine_n have_v admonish_v that_o pain_n punishment_n and_o death_n make_v not_o martyr_n but_o the_o cause_n for_o otherwise_o many_o suffer_v many_o gréevous_a thing_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o martyr_n for_o the_o same_o augustine_n to_o boniface_n de_fw-fr correctione_n donatistarum_fw-la and_o in_o many_o other_o place_n testify_v that_o in_o his_o time_n there_o be_v circumcellion_n a_o furious_a kind_n of_o man_n which_o if_o they_o can_v find_v none_o that_o will_v kill_v they_o will_v often_o time_n break_v their_o own_o neck_n hadlong_o and_o will_v slay_v themselves_o these_o man_n say_v he_o must_v not_o be_v count_v martyr_n three_o thing_n therefore_o seem_v fit_a to_o the_o state_n of_o martyrdom_n first_o require_v to_o martyrdom_n three_o thing_n be_v require_v that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v defend_v be_v true_a and_o agreeable_a unto_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o second_o be_v that_o there_o be_v adjoin_v integrity_n and_o innocence_n of_o life_n that_o man_n do_v not_o only_o edify_v the_o church_n by_o death_n but_o also_o by_o life_n and_o conversation_n the_o three_o be_v that_o they_o seek_v not_o to_o die_v for_o glory_n sake_n or_o for_o desire_n of_o name_n and_o fame_n paul_n say_v to_o the_o corinthian_n 13._o 1._o cor._n 3_o 13._o if_o i_o shall_v deliver_v my_o body_n to_o be_v burn_v and_o have_v not_o charity_n it_o nothing_o profit_v i_o therefore_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o account_v the_o anabaptist_n martyr_n the_o anabaptist_n or_o libertine_n be_v no_o martyr_n libertine_n and_o other_o such_o pestiferous_a sect_n for_o martyr_n for_o see_v these_o man_n do_v obstinate_o defend_v their_o error_n unto_o the_o death_n they_o be_v not_o move_v with_o charity_n neither_o towards_o god_n nor_o yet_o towards_o man_n and_o forsomuch_o as_o they_o hate_v all_o good_a man_n they_o be_v rather_o the_o martyr_n of_o satan_n and_o of_o their_o own_o error_n than_o of_o christ_n two_o kind_n of_o testimony_n we_o have_v firm_a two_o testimony_n that_o further_a herein_o but_o yet_o be_v not_o firm_a which_o help_v very_o much_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n yet_o be_v not_o those_o altogether_o so_o firm_a that_o we_o ought_v straitwaie_o to_o assent_v unto_o they_o namely_o miracle_n &_o torment_n which_o be_v suffer_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o any_o opinion_n in_o either_o of_o they_o must_v be_v have_v great_a wariness_n that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v set_v forth_o be_v examine_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n paul_n out_o of_o david_n compare_v the_o godly_a with_o sheep_n appoint_v unto_o the_o slaughter_n in_o this_o similitude_n be_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v first_o that_o they_o be_v call_v sheep_n because_o they_o be_v simple_a as_o become_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v secondlie_o because_o in_o their_o punishment_n they_o make_v no_o resistance_n follow_v the_o example_n of_o christ_n of_o who_o it_o be_v write_v that_o when_o he_o be_v lead_v like_o a_o sheep_n unto_o death_n 7._o 1._o pet._n 2._o 22._o esaie_n 53_o 7._o yet_o do_v he_o not_o open_v his_o mouth_n 16_o paul_n add_v but_o in_o all_o these_o thing_n we_o be_v conqueror_n the_o greek_a word_n be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v we_o do_v notable_o overcome_v this_o particle_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o this_o place_n pertain_v nothing_o unto_o the_o work_n of_o supererogation_n for_o paul_n mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o so_o much_o strength_n be_v give_v we_o by_o god_n as_o in_o this_o conflict_n we_o go_v far_o beyond_o our_o enemy_n this_o the_o devil_n do_v that_o by_o these_o adversity_n he_o may_v wrest_v from_o we_o our_o confidence_n and_o love_n towards_o god_n but_o that_o by_o this_o mean_n be_v rather_o increase_v 4._o rom._n 5_o 4._o for_o tribulation_n work_v patience_n patience_n work_v experience_n experience_n hope_v and_o hope_n make_v not_o ashamed_a but_o by_o what_o strength_n this_o victory_n happen_v unto_o we_o paul_n straitwaie_o
so_o in_o the_o resurrection_n which_o be_v a_o second_o nativity_n he_o shall_v be_v repair_v again_o in_o the_o 19_o 28._o verse_n 28._o chapter_n of_o matthew_n it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o regeneration_n when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v sit_v in_o his_o majesty_n in_o deed_n the_o regeneration_n as_o concern_v the_o soul_n begin_v now_o but_o it_o shall_v be_v then_o perform_v as_o touch_v the_o body_n so_o as_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a new_a generation_n which_o i_o therefore_o say_v lest_o it_o shall_v be_v esteem_v for_o a_o creation_n the_o which_o be_v not_o do_v of_o thing_n that_o be_v extant_a but_o of_o nothing_o howbeit_o it_o be_v not_o always_o take_v after_o this_o sort_n in_o the_o divine_a scripture_n wherefore_o the_o soul_n shall_v return_v and_o of_o her_o be_v shall_v impart_v unto_o the_o body_n even_o as_o it_o do_v before_o death_n and_o shall_v not_o only_o give_v a_o be_v thereunto_o but_o it_o shall_v bring_v therewith_o all_o the_o property_n of_o man_n and_o shall_v communicate_v they_o thereunto_o in_o deed_n there_o shall_v be_v some_o diversity_n but_o yet_o not_o as_o concern_v the_o essential_a beginning_n only_o the_o thing_n accidental_a shall_v be_v change_v the_o which_o may_v be_v alter_v notwithstanding_o that_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o subject_n still_o remain_v for_o other_o be_v the_o quality_n and_o affection_n of_o child_n and_o other_o of_o young_a man_n and_o old_a man_n yet_o be_v the_o person_n all_o one_o and_o even_o the_o same_o man_n both_o in_o childhood_n in_o youth_n define_v resurrection_n define_v and_o in_o age_n thus_o than_o we_o may_v define_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a namely_o that_o it_o be_v a_o new_a couple_v together_o of_o the_o soul_n unto_o the_o body_n by_o the_o might_n or_o power_n of_o god_n that_o man_n may_v stand_v whole_o in_o the_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o may_v receive_v reward_n or_o punishment_n according_a to_o the_o state_n of_o their_o former_a life_n by_o this_o definition_n all_o the_o kind_n of_o cause_n be_v express_v the_o form_n be_v the_o couple_v together_o of_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o body_n the_o which_o also_o be_v do_v so_o soon_o as_o man_n be_v bear_v and_o therefore_o be_v add_v new_a or_o doone_n again_o namely_o after_o death_n the_o efficient_a cause_n be_v show_v when_o we_o affirm_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v by_o the_o might_n and_o power_n of_o god_n the_o matter_n be_v the_o soul_n and_o the_o body_n which_o shall_v again_o be_v join_v together_o the_o end_n also_o be_v that_o at_o the_o last_o judgement_n it_o may_v be_v determine_v of_o the_o whole_a man_n beast_n the_o difference_n between_o the_o death_n of_o man_n and_o the_o death_n of_o brute_n beast_n 13_o furthermore_o it_o must_v be_v consider_v that_o there_o be_v no_o small_a difference_n between_o the_o death_n of_o man_n which_o go_v before_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o death_n whereby_o brute_n beast_n do_v perish_v for_o the_o death_n of_o man_n be_v call_v a_o separation_n of_o the_o soul_n from_o the_o body_n for_o albeit_o that_o the_o body_n do_v perish_v yet_o do_v the_o soul_n still_o remain_v alive_a which_o happen_v not_o in_o brute_n beast_n who_o death_n be_v destruction_n of_o mind_n and_o body_n both_o together_o whereupon_o that_o which_o solomon_n say_v in_o ecclesiastes_n 19_o eccl._n 3_o 19_o that_o the_o end_n of_o man_n and_o of_o beast_n be_v all_o one_o be_v not_o true_a unless_o it_o be_v understand_v general_o that_o be_v to_o wit_n that_o death_n happen_v to_o both_o but_o the_o kind_n of_o death_n be_v not_o all_o one_o both_o in_o the_o one_o and_o in_o the_o other_o but_o of_o the_o sentence_n bring_v by_o solomon_n shall_v be_v speak_v afterward_o i_o make_v mention_n of_o it_o now_o because_o we_o may_v understand_v that_o even_o as_o between_o brute_n beast_n and_o man_n be_v give_v a_o sundry_a respect_n of_o death_n so_o if_o resurrection_n also_o shall_v be_v grant_v to_o they_o both_o the_o form_n of_o the_o same_o shall_v not_o be_v all_o one_o wherefore_o although_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o body_n and_o not_o of_o the_o soul_n that_o it_o shall_v rise_v yet_o without_o the_o soul_n the_o resurrection_n shall_v not_o be_v for_o the_o same_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v present_a but_o yet_o it_o may_v after_o some_o sort_n be_v say_v of_o the_o soul_n that_o it_o shall_v rise_v again_o in_o two_o respect_n first_o again_o in_o two_o respect_n the_o soul_n be_v say_v to_o rise_v again_o that_o even_o as_o through_o death_n it_o cease_v to_o form_n and_o direct_v the_o body_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n after_o a_o sort_n to_o die_v so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n when_o it_o return_v to_o form_n and_o direct_v the_o same_o it_o may_v as_o touch_v these_o thing_n be_v say_v after_o a_o sort_n to_o rise_v again_o an_o other_o cause_n be_v that_o even_o the_o soul_n be_v say_v to_o fall_v so_o as_o if_o it_o be_v his_o property_n to_o rise_v again_o which_o have_v fall_v they_o also_o see_v after_o a_o sort_n they_o fall_v may_v be_v understand_v to_o rise_v therefore_o paul_n say_v unto_o the_o colossian_n 1._o col._n 3_o 1._o if_o you_o have_v rise_v together_o with_o christ_n savour_v you_o of_o thing_n that_o be_v from_o above_o now_o be_v there_o any_o doubt_n but_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o soul_n for_o they_o as_o yet_o live_v to_o who_o he_o write_v unto_o the_o roman_n also_o he_o say_v 4._o rom._n 6_o 4._o if_o christ_n be_v rise_v by_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n so_o walk_v you_o also_o in_o newness_n of_o life_n and_o unto_o the_o ephesian_n 14._o ephe._n 5_o 14._o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a rise_z and_o christ_n shall_v illuminate_v thou_o and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la 7._o eccl._n 2_o 7._o the_o second_o chapter_n shrink_v not_o away_o from_o god_n that_o you_o fall_v not_o again_o he_o that_o stand_v 12_o 1._o co._n 10_o 12_o let_v he_o take_v heed_n he_o fall_v not_o and_o unto_o the_o roman_n 4._o rom._n 14._o 4._o as_o touch_v the_o not_o judge_v of_o a_o other_o man_n servant_n it_o be_v write_v he_o stand_v or_o fall_v to_o his_o own_o master_n see_v therefore_o that_o all_o these_o place_n be_v refer_v to_o soul_n it_o seem_v that_o both_o fall_n and_o resurrection_n belong_v unto_o they_o these_o thing_n be_v true_a resurrection_n the_o scripture_n appoint_v two_o sort_n of_o resurrection_n but_o yet_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n there_o be_v put_v two_o sort_n of_o resurrection_n namely_o a_o former_a and_o a_o latter_a in_o the_o first_o we_o rise_v in_o the_o soul_n from_o sin_n but_o in_o the_o latter_a the_o body_n be_v restore_v now_o at_o this_o time_n we_o speak_v of_o the_o latter_a therefore_o say_v we_o that_o the_o same_o be_v proper_a unto_o the_o body_n and_o even_o as_o in_o that_o former_a the_o soul_n rise_v again_o and_o not_o the_o body_n so_o in_o the_o latter_a the_o body_n rise_v and_o not_o the_o soul_n 14_o these_o two_o sort_n of_o resurrection_n we_o gather_v 6._o apoc._n 20_o 6._o not_o only_o out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n where_o they_o be_v pronounce_v bless_v which_o have_v their_o part_n in_o the_o first_o resurrection_n but_o we_o learn_v it_o also_o out_o of_o the_o gospel_n of_o john_n 28._o john_n 5_o 28._o where_o in_o the_o five_o chapter_n both_o be_v join_v together_o in_o one_o place_n first_o christ_n speak_v there_o of_o the_o former_a resurrection_n when_o he_o say_v the_o time_n come_v and_o now_o be_v when_o the_o dead_a shall_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o believe_v it_o shall_v live_v that_o these_o word_n belong_v unto_o the_o first_o resurrection_n it_o sufficient_o appear_v in_o that_o he_o say_v the_o time_n will_v come_v and_o now_o be_v but_o there_o be_v no_o man_n will_v say_v that_o the_o hour_n of_o the_o latter_a resurrection_n be_v then_o present_a so_o as_o then_o he_o mean_v that_o those_o dead_a shall_v live_v again_o if_o they_o beléeve_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o for_o their_o sin_n be_v destitute_a of_o the_o spiritual_a life_n of_o soul_n of_o who_o christ_n say_v in_o a_o other_o place_n 28._o matt._n 8_o 28._o let_v the_o dead_a bury_v their_o dead_a and_o unto_o the_o ephesian_n it_o be_v write_v 1._o eph._n 2_o 1._o when_o you_o be_v dead_a in_o your_o offence_n and_o sin_n and_o unto_o timothy_n it_o be_v write_v of_o widow_n 5._o 1._o tim._n 5._o 5._o she_o that_o be_v true_o a_o widow_n continue_v still_o in_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n before_o the_o lord_n but_o she_o that_o live_v in_o
judge_v far_o otherwise_o auerroës_n tertullian_n gregory_n nazianzen_n aristotle_n alexander_n aphrodysaeus_n auerroës_n yea_o and_o by_o very_o learned_a man_n to_o wit_n tertullian_n and_o gregory_n nazianzen_n it_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o aristotle_n himself_o that_o he_o think_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n to_o be_v mortal_a and_o alexander_n aphrodysaeus_n no_o mean_a peripatetic_n be_v of_o this_o opinion_n and_o auerroes_n teach_v in_o the_o school_n of_o the_o peripatetik_n that_o there_o be_v only_o one_o humane_a intelligence_n which_o by_o conceit_n be_v adjoin_v unto_o every_o man_n wherefore_o this_o principle_n that_o be_v assume_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o soul_n after_o death_n remain_v uncorrupt_a see_v it_o be_v a_o doubt_n and_o depend_v not_o of_o thing_n which_o of_o themselves_o be_v know_v and_o evident_a in_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n the_o argument_n that_o be_v build_v thereupon_o stagger_v and_o can_v be_v count_v firm_a auicenna_n auicenna_n for_o auicenna_n in_o his_o metaphysic_n faith_n that_o the_o soul_n be_v therefore_o join_v to_o the_o body_n because_o through_o the_o outward_a sense_n it_o may_v procure_v unto_o itself_o both_o inward_a knowledge_v and_o science_n of_o thing_n which_o when_o it_o have_v once_o obtain_v there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o resort_v again_o to_o that_o conjunction_n other_o confute_v this_o reason_n more_o subtle_o say_v that_o it_o be_v against_o nature_n not_o to_o be_v continual_a when_o the_o original_n of_o the_o restitution_n thereof_o remain_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n but_o if_o these_o be_v utterlie_o abolish_v restitution_n be_v not_o to_o be_v look_v for_o and_o that_o which_o they_o have_v allege_v they_o set_v forth_o with_o a_o indifferent_a plain_a similitude_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n a_o tree_n say_v they_o be_v cut_v off_o lie_v along_o against_o his_o nature_n which_o nevertheless_o be_v restore_v if_o the_o root_n remain_v be_v quick_a because_o it_o spring_v and_o grow_v again_o but_o if_o the_o root_n be_v altogether_o pluck_v up_o the_o destruction_n shall_v be_v perpetual_a whereby_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v pull_v away_o from_o the_o body_n do_v sufficient_o understand_v that_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n there_o be_v no_o more_o extant_a the_o beginning_n of_o this_o conjunction_n to_o be_v make_v again_o and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o affect_v with_o the_o desire_n thereof_o because_o the_o chief_a of_o our_o will_n be_v not_o carry_v to_o thing_n impossible_a thus_o widoââ¦_n ethniks_n answer_n to_o the_o reason_n that_o be_v bring_v but_o the_o faithful_a use_n the_o same_o reason_n &_o comfort_v themselves_o in_o confirm_v it_o ãâã_d of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o the_o immortality_n of_o our_o soul_n after_o death_n in_o confirm_v &_o free_a power_n of_o unite_n it_o with_o the_o body_n be_v grant_v to_o be_v in_o god_n 17_o the_o three_o reason_n be_v wont_v to_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n which_o must_v render_v punishment_n and_o reward_n for_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v own_o in_o this_o life_n by_o the_o body_n punishment_n that_o the_o body_n also_o must_v have_v either_o reward_n or_o punishment_n for_o because_o it_o can_v seem_v just_a that_o see_v these_o two_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o body_n be_v join_v both_o together_o do_v either_o right_a or_o wrong_n only_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v either_o be_v punish_v or_o reward_v hereto_o the_o philosopher_n will_v answer_v that_o it_o appear_v not_o to_o they_o that_o the_o world_n be_v so_o govern_v of_o god_n by_o justice_n that_o reward_v and_o punish_v as_o it_o have_v consideration_n of_o every_o particular_a person_n in_o give_v to_o each_o one_o either_o reward_n or_o punishment_n perhaps_o they_o will_v grant_v that_o as_o touch_v the_o firm_a and_o constant_a motion_n of_o the_o heaven_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a providence_n so_o will_v they_o also_o do_v as_o touch_v the_o preservation_n of_o kind_n but_o they_o will_v deny_v it_o to_o be_v have_v as_o concern_v every_o particular_a further_o they_o will_v add_v that_o there_o be_v reward_n and_o punishment_n enough_o use_v in_o those_o very_a action_n good_a and_o evil_n for_o in_o well_o do_v there_o be_v a_o wonder_a ioifulnesse_n of_o conscience_n which_o excel_v all_o outward_a reward_n and_o again_o in_o do_v wicked_o man_n be_v woonderfullie_o vex_v neither_o can_v they_o escape_v the_o butchery_n of_o conscience_n which_o be_v misery_n and_o unhappiness_n enough_o for_o the_o punishment_n of_o they_o at_o length_n they_o will_v affirm_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a while_o the_o soul_n itself_o either_o receive_v reward_n or_o suffer_v punishment_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n that_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v do_v unto_o the_o body_n because_o it_o be_v not_o the_o principal_a cause_n of_o action_n but_o only_o the_o instrument_n and_o there_o may_v be_v a_o similitude_n bring_v of_o artificer_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n unto_o who_o only_o be_v give_v a_o reward_n if_o they_o have_v make_v a_o fair_a web_n or_o build_v a_o fair_a house_n but_o unto_o the_o instrument_n which_o they_o use_v either_o in_o weave_v or_o in_o building_n there_o be_v no_o recompense_n make_v the_o which_o instrument_n receive_v not_o the_o same_o punishment_n or_o loss_n if_o the_o work_n have_v in_o success_n neither_o will_v any_o man_n break_v a_o poison_a pot_n because_o some_o have_v perish_v by_o drink_v out_o of_o the_o same_o especial_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o precious_a &_o beautiful_a vessel_n neither_o do_v man_n break_v or_o cast_v away_o the_o sword_n wherewith_o any_o man_n be_v slay_v forsomuch_o as_o these_o be_v instrument_n but_o not_o special_a cause_n howbeit_o wrath_n be_v sometime_o so_o outrageous_a as_o cup_n envenom_a be_v break_v and_o sword_n cast_v away_o wherefore_o see_v both_o the_o one_o thing_n and_o the_o other_o may_v be_v and_o sometime_o do_v happen_v the_o argument_n will_v be_v probable_a but_o not_o necessary_a but_o as_o concern_v that_o which_o belong_v unto_o instrument_n instrument_n a_o distinction_n of_o instrument_n it_o seem_v that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o distinction_n make_v to_o wit_n that_o some_o instrument_n be_v conjoin_v and_o some_o dissever_v doubtless_o the_o body_n be_v a_o instrument_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o be_v join_v unto_o it_o so_o as_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o it_o bear_v away_o with_o it_o both_o punishment_n and_o profit_n for_o we_o see_v even_o while_o we_o live_v here_o that_o the_o hand_n be_v cut_v off_o that_o the_o eye_n of_o wicked_a man_n be_v put_v out_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o it_o must_v not_o be_v forget_v that_o this_o reason_n which_o be_v take_v of_o the_o justice_n and_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v not_o general_a because_o infant_n also_o shall_v be_v raise_v up_o who_o for_o all_o this_o shall_v not_o have_v need_n to_o yield_v a_o reckon_n of_o the_o work_n which_o they_o do_v by_o the_o body_n but_o yet_o paul_n seem_v to_o confirm_v this_o argument_n say_v in_o the_o 15._o chapter_n to_o the_o corinthian_n when_o he_o have_v confirm_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n 58._o verse_n 58._o therefore_o my_o belove_a brethren_n be_v you_o steadfast_a and_o constant_a abound_v in_o every_o good_a work_n know_v that_o your_o labour_n shall_v not_o be_v unprofitable_a before_o the_o lord_n but_o labour_n be_v common_a as_o well_o to_o the_o mind_n as_o to_o the_o body_n therefore_o profit_n shall_v redound_v to_o they_o both_o and_o this_o kind_n of_o argument_n well-neare_a all_o the_o father_n use_v i_o have_v already_o declare_v those_o which_o be_v of_o the_o great_a force_n now_o will_v i_o come_v to_o other_o argument_n which_o be_v more_o feeble_a wherein_o be_v perceive_v no_o proof_n of_o resurrection_n but_o a_o certain_a show_n of_o the_o same_o 18_o day_n say_v they_o do_v daily_a as_o we_o see_v pass_v away_o and_o return_v but_o in_o very_a deed_n yesterday_o be_v not_o the_o same_o in_o number_n with_o this_o day_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n also_o there_o be_v bring_v a_o similitude_n of_o herb_n and_o tree_n these_o thing_n seem_v in_o the_o winter_n season_n to_o be_v dead_a resurrection_n semblance_n of_o the_o resurrection_n but_o when_o the_o spring-time_n come_v they_o bud_v forth_o again_o they_o be_v garnish_v with_o leaf_n they_o put_v forth_o flower_n and_o last_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n but_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o they_o be_v not_o utterlie_o dead_a in_o the_o winter_n season_n for_o there_o remain_v life_n still_o in_o they_o although_o it_o lie_v secret_a but_o thereunto_o it_o may_v be_v answer_v that_o the_o life_n also_o of_o man_n after_o death_n be_v not_o utterlie_o take_v away_o because_o it_o still_o remain_v in_o the_o soul_n that_o be_v alive_a and_o certeinlie_o paul_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n
reproove_v all_o the_o wicked_a and_o soon_o after_o look_v for_o the_o mercy_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n unto_o eternal_a life_n let_v it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o we_o have_v bring_v these_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n unto_o the_o which_o add_v the_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n cré_v wherein_o we_o confess_v ourselves_o to_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n further_o all_o those_o place_n wherein_o christ_n be_v say_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v judge_n of_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a have_v relation_n unto_o this_o 55_o now_o that_o we_o have_v see_v the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n and_o also_o the_o definition_n and_o have_v seek_v whether_o this_o resurrection_n may_v be_v plain_o set_v forth_o by_o natural_a reason_n and_o further_o have_v bring_v testimony_n 4â_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o resurrection_n verse_n 4â_n as_o well_o of_o the_o old_a as_o new_a scripture_n now_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o speak_v somewhat_o of_o the_o cause_n thereof_o it_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o faith_n and_o it_o follow_v justification_n whereupon_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o john_n he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o have_v life_n everlasting_a and_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n so_o as_o god_n by_o his_o power_n be_v the_o efficient_a cause_n thereof_o for_o which_o cause_n christ_n say_v unto_o the_o saducee_n 15._o matt._n 2d_o 15._o you_o err_v be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o not_o only_a god_n the_o father_n himself_o but_o also_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v cause_n of_o the_o resurrection_n for_o as_o we_o have_v already_o say_v it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n if_o the_o spirit_n of_o he_o 11._o rom._n 8_o 11._o which_o have_v raise_v up_o christ_n from_o the_o dead_a dwell_v in_o you_o etc._n etc._n yea_o moreover_o the_o son_n himself_o which_o be_v christ_n jesus_n be_v a_o cause_n of_o this_o resurrection_n for_o in_o the_o gospel_n of_o john_n he_o say_v 40._o john_n 6_o 40._o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o again_o even_o as_o the_o father_n raise_v up_o and_o quicken_v 21._o john_n 5_o 21._o even_o so_o also_o the_o son_n quicken_v &c_n &c_n further_n 28._o ibidem_fw-la 28._o they_o which_o be_v in_o the_o grave_n shall_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v come_v forth_o 25._o john_n 11_o 25._o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o eleven_o of_o john_n i_o be_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n moreover_o there_o be_v a_o argument_n take_v hereof_o that_o christ_n by_o his_o death_n take_v away_o sin_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o death_n very_o no_o man_n doubt_v but_o that_o the_o cause_n be_v remoove_v the_o effect_n be_v take_v away_o in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n 22_o 1._o co._n 15_o 22_o the_o 15._o chapter_n in_o adam_n all_o man_n be_v dead_a in_o christ_n all_o man_n shall_v be_v reviue_v &_o as_o by_o one_o man_n come_v death_n so_o by_o one_o man_n come_v the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a the_o final_a cause_n of_o resurrection_n be_v assign_v to_o be_v 10._o 2._o cor._n 5_o 10._o that_o the_o whole_a and_o entire_a man_n shall_v be_v judge_v at_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v receive_v reward_n or_o punishment_n according_a as_o he_o have_v behave_v himself_o but_o the_o angel_n although_o they_o shall_v be_v minister_n of_o the_o resurrection_n yet_o can_v they_o be_v no_o cause_n among_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o resurrection_n to_o come_v the_o resurrection_n also_o of_o christ_n be_v number_v for_o paul_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n 13._o verse_n 13._o the_o 15._o chapter_n say_v if_o the_o dead_a rise_v not_o again_o neither_o be_v christ_n rise_v again_o and_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o rise_v our_o preach_n be_v in_o vain_a but_o we_o may_v argue_v on_o the_o other_o side_n christ_n rise_v again_o therefore_o we_o also_o shall_v rise_v again_o so_o then_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o resurrection_n which_o indeed_o be_v to_o be_v grant_v but_o yet_o not_o so_o as_o that_o very_a action_n wherein_o christ_n be_v raise_v up_o and_o which_o be_v now_o past_a be_v the_o efficient_a cause_n that_o perform_v or_o do_v any_o thing_n which_o shall_v bring_v forth_o our_o resurrection_n but_o because_o the_o divine_a power_n and_o might_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n see_v he_o be_v god_n be_v retain_v still_o even_o as_o he_o raise_v he_o up_o from_o the_o dead_a so_o will_v he_o also_o quicken_v we_o in_o due_a time_n this_o we_o see_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o humane_a thing_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n for_o he_o that_o be_v a_o white_a man_n beget_v also_o a_o white_a son_n not_o that_o the_o colour_n itself_o can_v procreate_v but_o that_o those_o beginning_n or_o cause_n which_o wrought_v the_o begetter_n to_o be_v white_a do_v make_v he_o also_o white_a which_o be_v beget_v by_o he_o even_o so_o our_o resurrection_n shall_v not_o be_v unlike_a to_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n further_o this_o must_v be_v note_v that_o the_o divine_a action_n and_o heavenly_a benefit_n which_o be_v employ_v upon_o man_n be_v as_o damascenus_n say_v derive_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o now_o shall_v be_v none_o at_o all_o unless_o he_o have_v be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a wherefore_o by_o this_o mean_n the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v also_o call_v we_o because_o without_o that_o we_o may_v not_o have_v obtain_v we_o again_o if_o we_o shall_v like_v philosopher_n follow_v plato_n adiect_v unto_o the_o four_o kind_n of_o cause_n a_o idea_n or_o pattern_n we_o may_v say_v that_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o exemplar_n cause_n of_o our_o resurrection_n the_o final_a cause_n of_o resurrection_n be_v assign_v to_o be_v that_o the_o whole_a and_o entire_a man_n shall_v be_v judge_v at_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v receive_v reward_n or_o punishment_n according_a as_o he_o behave_v himself_o and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o cause_n 56_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o shall_v speak_v of_o the_o property_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o body_n rise_v of_o the_o condition_n and_o property_n of_o body_n when_o they_o shall_v rise_v which_o shall_v be_v raise_v up_o the_o schoolman_n call_v they_o endowment_n or_o quality_n neither_o can_v i_o disallow_v of_o those_o which_o they_o have_v reckon_v because_o i_o perceive_v they_o to_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n howbeit_o i_o think_v not_o that_o all_o the_o property_n be_v gather_v by_o they_o neither_o yet_o may_v it_o be_v for_o in_o this_o life_n we_o can_v have_v experience_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o saint_n but_o we_o shall_v then_o perfect_o and_o absolute_o know_v it_o when_o we_o shall_v come_v unto_o it_o property_n immortality_n the_o first_o property_n the_o first_o condition_n that_o come_v to_o my_o remembrance_n of_o the_o bless_a be_v immortality_n and_o assure_o in_o the_o divine_a scripture_n so_o often_o as_o there_o be_v mention_n of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v the_o same_o be_v say_v to_o be_v eternal_a as_o be_v that_o which_o shall_v have_v no_o end_n paul_n say_v this_o mortal_a must_v put_v on_o have_v immortality_n 53_o 1._o co._n 15_o 53_o and_o this_o corruptible_a body_n must_v put_v on_o incorruption_n and_o see_v the_o punishment_n &_o reward_n which_o shall_v be_v render_v according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o work_n be_v sempiternal_a the_o subject_n or_o nature_n which_o shall_v be_v give_v they_o must_v needs_o be_v immortal_a also_o furthermore_o see_v it_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o christ_n destroy_v sin_n and_o death_n it_o remain_v that_o the_o life_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v immortal_a and_o in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n it_o be_v write_v 9_o verse_n 9_o christ_n rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a die_v no_o more_o neither_o shall_v death_n have_v any_o more_o power_n over_o he_o beside_o in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 15._o chapter_n 50._o verse_n 50._o flesh_n and_o blood_n shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n yet_o must_v not_o these_o thing_n be_v take_v for_o the_o very_a nature_n and_o substance_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n fââ¦_n they_o which_o shall_v rise_v again_o shall_v be_v whole_o endue_v with_o these_o thing_n but_o the_o apostle_n have_v respect_n unto_o corruption_n unto_o the_o which_o flesh_n and_o blood_n in_o this_o life_n be_v subject_a wherefore_o he_o add_v incorruption_n ibidem_fw-la incorruption_n and_o corruption_n shall_v not_o inherit_v incorruption_n 57_o upon_o this_o property_n follow_v a_o other_o namely_o that_o after_o
we_o will_v not_o grant_v they_o to_o be_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n unless_o we_o shall_v judge_v according_a to_o the_o form_n and_o outward_a show_n neither_o do_v we_o for_o this_o cause_n say_v judgement_n evil_a man_n must_v not_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o church_n at_o every_o man_n private_a judgement_n that_o evil_a man_n at_o every_o man_n judgement_n shall_v be_v separate_v or_o exclude_v from_o the_o church_n when_o they_o have_v secret_o sin_v and_o have_v not_o be_v as_o yet_o cut_v off_o by_o excommunication_n from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n nay_o rather_o while_o they_o be_v permit_v if_o so_o be_v they_o administer_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o sacrament_n unto_o the_o people_n divine_a thing_n be_v not_o pollute_v by_o their_o wickedness_n but_o this_o only_a we_o affirm_v now_o that_o such_o manner_n of_o man_n in_o very_a deed_n and_o before_o god_n be_v not_o member_n of_o the_o church_n thou_o may_v perhaps_o doubt_v how_o paul_n may_v true_o call_v the_o church_n of_o the_o corinthian_n god_n how_o among_o the_o corinthian_n be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o which_o be_v infect_v with_o so_o many_o vice_n but_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o all_o they_o which_o be_v there_o be_v not_o utterlie_o corrupt_v many_o good_a man_n remain_v further_o they_o be_v as_o yet_o instruct_v with_o pure_a doctrine_n and_o they_o retain_v the_o sacrament_n whole_a and_o perfect_a neither_o be_v they_o altogether_o without_o discipline_n and_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v want_v be_v not_o lay_v aside_o without_o regard_n nay_o rather_o the_o godly_a labour_v much_o about_o the_o correct_v of_o they_o for_o we_o know_v that_o paul_n be_v admonish_v by_o they_o which_o be_v at_o cloas_n 11_o 1._o cor._n 1._o 11_o that_o he_o shall_v prevent_v the_o evil_n that_o be_v break_v forth_o 9_o acts._n 16._o 9_o beside_o this_o paul_n have_v a_o respect_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n who_o have_v say_v unto_o he_o that_o in_o the_o same_o city_n he_o have_v much_o people_n over_o this_o thou_o must_v understand_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n do_v not_o so_o fall_v away_o for_o every_o blemish_n as_o that_o it_o shall_v no_o more_o be_v call_v the_o church_n of_o god_n it_o be_v not_o present_o without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n but_o in_o the_o day_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o shall_v be_v 2_o but_o they_o excéedinglie_o err_v which_o account_n only_o the_o romish_a church_n for_o the_o church_n 2._o in_o 1._o cor._n 1._o 2._o we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o order_n among_o church_n but_o we_o grant_v it_o not_o to_o be_v the_o same_o which_o depend_v of_o the_o wealth_n and_o dignity_n of_o this_o world_n etc._n a_o order_n in_o church_n and_o which_o must_v be_v take_v for_o the_o better_a look_v after_o p._n 6._o art_n 6._o etc._n etc._n wherefore_o among_o church_n that_o must_v be_v take_v for_o the_o better_a which_o do_v most_o flourish_n in_o spirit_n doctrine_n and_o holiness_n but_o at_o this_o day_n only_a succession_n and_o cathedral_n seat_n be_v have_v in_o great_a estimation_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o christ_n have_v not_o tie_v his_o grace_n unto_o these_o thing_n and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o at_o rome_n or_o constantinople_n doctrine_n be_v pollute_v the_o sacrament_n mangle_v and_o discipline_n corrupt_v how_o can_v we_o ask_v counsel_n of_o those_o church_n as_o more_o excellent_a than_o the_o rest_n very_o this_o shall_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o seek_v grape_n of_o thorn_n and_o fig_n of_o thistle_n 16._o matt._n 7._o 16._o in_o ancient_a time_n the_o apostolical_a church_n be_v jerusalem_n antioch_n alexandria_n ephesus_n corinth_n and_o other_o such_o like_a but_o what_o be_v there_o at_o this_o day_n alas_o there_o be_v many_o error_n and_o superstition_n and_o there_o be_v little_o want_v but_o that_o they_o degenerate_a into_o turkish_a wickedness_n let_v the_o church_n be_v catholic_a for_o place_n do_v not_o separate_v beléever_n even_o as_o the_o place_n in_o like_a manner_n chrysost_n chrysost_n as_o say_v chrysostome_n although_o it_o be_v one_o do_v not_o join_v they_o together_o for_o if_o in_o one_o &_o the_o same_o place_n there_o be_v two_o lord_n which_o command_v thing_n repugnant_a doubtless_o their_o servant_n will_v be_v divide_v for_o as_o christ_n have_v teach_v 24._o matt._n 6._o 24._o we_o can_v in_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o work_n serve_v two_o 3_o but_o it_o be_v perpetuallie_o object_v against_o we_o by_o hosius_n and_o staphylus_n 15._o in_o 2._o sam._n 21._o vers_fw-la 15._o and_o other_o persecuter_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o we_o agree_v not_o among_o ourselves_o as_o touch_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n free_a will_n and_o other_o thing_n we_o can_v deny_v it_o but_o shall_v we_o therefore_o say_v us._n that_o we_o have_v the_o true_a church_n though_o there_o be_v dissension_n among_o us._n that_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v no_o church_n indeed_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o peace_n it_o will_v possess_v we_o all_o whole_o if_o we_o be_v whole_o regenerate_v howbeit_o as_o yet_o we_o be_v not_o so_o the_o church_n be_v institute_v 27._o ephe._n 5._o 27._o that_o it_o may_v be_v without_o wrinkle_n hereafter_o now_o it_o be_v not_o one_o day_n it_o shall_v be_v when_o christ_n shall_v have_v overcome_v all_o his_o enemy_n i_o think_v there_o be_v none_o but_o do_v like_a of_o a_o consent_n together_o but_o yet_o save_v the_o truth_n otherwhile_o it_o can_v be_v have_v dissension_n in_o the_o church_n be_v never_o forthwith_o root_v out_o these_o man_n when_o they_o declare_v these_o thing_n do_v seem_v to_o set_v forth_o mere_a wonder_n as_o though_o that_o there_o have_v never_o be_v dissension_n in_o the_o church_n but_o i_o beseech_v you_o let_v they_o consider_v the_o beginning_n the_o people_n of_o israel_n 10_o exod._n 7._o 4._o num._n 14._o 10_o which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n will_v often_o time_n have_v kill_v moses_n in_o the_o wilderness_n 1._o num._n 16._o 1._o core_n dathan_n israel_n dissension_n in_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n and_o abiram_n raise_v a_o tumult_n and_o contend_v for_o the_o priesthood_n which_o by_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n be_v assign_v to_o aaron_n what_o turmoil_n be_v there_o between_o david_n and_o saul_n etc._n 1._o sam._n 18._o etc._n etc._n yet_o be_v there_o a_o express_a word_n of_o god_n as_o touch_v the_o kingdom_n the_o house_n of_o juda_n have_v the_o kingdom_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n 12_o 1._o king_n 12_o 11._o 1._o king_n 13_o 11._o and_o yet_o there_o become_v a_o schism_n under_o roboam_n after_o that_o age_n the_o prophet_n succéede_v 17._o 1._o king_n 22_o 11._o &_o 17._o on_o the_o one_o side_n they_o be_v true_a on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o be_v false_a they_o speak_v thing_n that_o be_v repugnant_a that_o which_o one_o affirm_v 26._o jere._n 21._o &_o 26._o the_o other_o deny_v the_o israelite_n be_v return_v out_o of_o captivity_n be_v rend_v into_o sundry_a sort_n into_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o essei_n pharesee_n &_o saducee_n who_o will_v say_v that_o a_o church_n be_v not_o there_o and_o so_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n where_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v there_o dissension_n to_o be_v if_o they_o shall_v deny_v this_o to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n i_o know_v not_o whether_o they_o err_v witting_o or_o unwitting_o what_o happen_v between_o peter_n and_o paul_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n 14._o gal._n 2._o 14._o 39_o dissension_n in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n act._n 15._o 39_o peter_n follow_v the_o jewish_a custom_n to_o the_o hindrance_n of_o the_o ethnic_n which_o be_v convert_v paul_n reproove_v he_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v join_v together_o in_o the_o ministry_n so_o disagré_v as_o they_o depart_v one_o from_o a_o other_o the_o time_n of_o contention_n for_o the_o retain_v or_o not_o retain_v of_o judaisme_n continue_v a_o long_a time_n the_o contention_n be_v pass_v over_o unto_o augustine_n &_o jerome_n the_o one_o will_v that_o even_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n certenty_n may_v be_v ground_v by_o dispensation_n the_o other_o earnest_o deny_v it_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o a_o little_a after_o the_o christian_n have_v many_o sectary_n among_o they_o namely_o the_o cerinthian_o the_o marcionite_n the_o gnosticke_n the_o carpocratian_o admit_v that_o the_o ethnic_n have_v take_v our_o argument_n and_o have_v say_v you_o can_v agree_v as_o touch_v your_o christ_n we_o have_v holy_a ordinance_n of_o our_o go_n which_o shall_v i_o believe_v these_o or_o those_o they_o all_o say_v that_o they_o be_v christian_n i_o beseech_v you_o let_v we_o consider_v of_o the_o church_n
for_o the_o power_n of_o the_o tribune_n the_o displeasure_n which_o the_o common_a people_n suffer_v by_o the_o nobility_n be_v temporal_a and_o belong_v to_o the_o maintenance_n and_o safety_n of_o the_o body_n but_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o papist_n bring_v in_o upon_o we_o have_v respect_n unto_o eternal_a salvation_n but_o let_v pass_n the_o example_n of_o ethnic_n another_o thing_n come_v to_o mind_n which_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n paphnutius_fw-la the_o example_n of_o paphnutius_fw-la paphnutius_fw-la a_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n and_o a_o very_a noble_a confessor_n of_o the_o lord_n who_o right_a eye_n the_o emperor_n maximianus_n put_v out_o and_o hock_v his_o left_a ham_n whereby_o he_o may_v live_v half_a blind_a &_o lame_a when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o synod_n of_o tyrus_n where_o also_o sit_v maximus_n a_o worthy_a bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o he_o himself_o a_o confessor_n of_o christ_n and_o perceive_v that_o nothing_o else_o be_v seek_v by_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n but_o that_o athanasius_n may_v be_v oppress_v by_o deceit_n ill_a report_n and_o naughty_a practice_n rise_v up_o and_o take_v maximus_n by_o the_o hand_n which_o sit_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o rest_n say_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o thou_o to_o sit_v among_o these_o man_n and_o have_v speak_v these_o word_n he_o lead_v he_o away_o with_o he_o also_o christ_n admonish_v 6._o mat._n 16._o 6._o that_o we_o shall_v beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o paul_n say_v 6._o 1._o cor._n 5._o 6._o a_o little_a leaven_n mar_v the_o whole_a lump_n yea_o and_o experience_n itself_o teach_v that_o they_o which_o have_v knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v withhold_v through_o a_o affection_n to_o their_o friend_n or_o kin_n love_n of_o their_o country_n covetousness_n of_o riches_n and_o good_n they_o become_v cold_a every_o day_n more_o than_o other_o as_o touch_v godliness_n and_o be_v so_o freeze_a together_o at_o the_o length_n as_o the_o feel_v of_o religion_n be_v extinguish_v in_o they_o and_o sometime_o of_o friend_n and_o brethren_n they_o become_v most_o cruel_a enemy_n and_o it_o be_v find_v to_o be_v most_o true_a which_o the_o wise_a man_n say_v 13._o eccle._n 13._o he_o that_o touch_v pitch_n shall_v be_v defile_v therewith_o neither_o can_v it_o otherwise_o be_v but_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v out_o of_o menander_n 23_o 1._o co._n 15._o 23_o yâ_z ill_n speech_n will_v corrupt_v good_a manner_n 37_o let_v we_o see_v what_o happen_v unto_o the_o israelite_n in_o the_o time_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la when_o idolatry_n be_v erect_v 13._o 2._o chro._n 11_o 13._o very_o they_o which_o have_v but_o a_o crumb_n of_o godliness_n leave_v the_o confine_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n join_v themselves_o to_o the_o house_n of_o juda_n to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v not_o sacrifice_v unto_o the_o idol_n which_o be_v erect_v but_o that_o they_o may_v worship_v the_o true_a god_n according_a to_o the_o prescript_n of_o the_o law_n in_o the_o place_n which_o he_o have_v choose_v unto_o himself_o which_o whoso_o do_v not_o they_o not_o only_o contaminate_v themselves_o with_o idolatry_n but_o together_o with_o the_o wââ¦ed_v they_o be_v afflict_v with_o manifold_a and_o gréevous_a punishment_n there_o be_v even_o at_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n a_o separation_n make_v between_o the_o posterity_n of_o seth_n and_o cain_n for_o these_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n wherein_o they_o sound_o continue_v 1._o gen._n 4._o 17._o &_o 5._o 1._o and_o assure_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o flood_n be_v so_o long_o differ_v as_o that_o holy_a posterity_n continue_v free_a from_o idolatry_n but_o whenas_o afterward_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v allure_v with_o the_o beauty_n of_o woman_n have_v join_v themselves_o with_o the_o ungodlie_a all_o thing_n go_v to_o confusion_n and_o horrible_a shame_n wherefore_o god_n destroy_v the_o world_n by_o a_o flood_n of_o water_n 6._o gen._n 6._o in_o which_o destruction_n neither_o noah_n himself_o with_o his_o family_n have_v be_v save_v unless_o by_o go_v into_o the_o ark_n he_o have_v sever_v himself_o from_o the_o ungodlie_a lot_z likewise_o escape_v the_o fire_n because_o he_o be_v lead_v forth_o from_o the_o fellowship_n of_o wicked_a man_n 19_o gen._n 19_o the_o lord_n also_o command_v as_o we_o have_v it_o in_o the_o book_n of_o numerie_n 21_o num._n 16._o 21_o that_o the_o israelite_n shall_v separate_v themselves_o from_o dathan_n and_o abiram_n unless_o they_o be_v more_o willing_a to_o perish_v together_o with_o they_o he_o also_o call_v forth_o the_o israelite_n which_o be_v remain_v in_o babylon_n after_o the_o liberty_n give_v unto_o they_o by_o cyrus_n and_o darius_n 11._o esa_n 52._o ver_fw-la 11._o for_o that_o gréevous_a punishment_n be_v at_o hand_n unto_o the_o babylonian_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o idolatry_n and_o shameful_a wickedness_n in_o fine_a if_o the_o first_o adam_n by_o the_o instinct_n of_o god_n spirit_n true_o say_v of_o his_o wife_n 23._o gen._n 2._o 23._o for_o this_o cause_n shall_v man_n leave_v his_o father_n and_o mother_n and_o shall_v cleave_v unto_o his_o wife_n why_o also_o be_v not_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v leave_v of_o we_o for_o retain_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n see_v that_o even_o the_o wife_n herself_o &_o the_o child_n must_v be_v leave_v for_o religion_n sake_n but_o if_o we_o seem_v not_o to_o our_o adversary_n to_o have_v do_v well_o let_v they_o declare_v the_o cause_n why_o they_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o all_o other_o church_n be_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n they_o be_v not_o able_a in_o very_a deed_n to_o show_v such_o just_a and_o evident_a cause_n as_o we_o be_v which_o we_o have_v before_o allege_v let_v not_o their_o slander_n terrify_v we_o especial_o those_o which_o they_o have_v always_o in_o their_o mouth_n say_v that_o we_o be_v disturber_n these_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n they_o have_v be_v oftentimes_o upbraid_v to_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n do_v not_o achab_n the_o king_n of_o samaria_n rebuke_n elias_n the_o man_n of_o god_n 18._o 2._o king_n 17._o 18._o and_o say_v be_v thou_o elias_n which_o trouble_v israel_n but_o the_o prophet_n constant_o return_v the_o rebuke_n upon_o he_o i_o trouble_v not_o israel_n thou_o rather_o do_v altogether_o with_o thy_o wife_n jezabell_n the_o jew_n also_o accuse_v christ_n before_o pilate_n 5._o luke_n 23._o 5._o that_o he_o trouble_v all_o jury_n begin_v at_o galilee_n of_o the_o apostle_n also_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o act_n it_o be_v say_v 5._o acts._n 17._o 6._o acts._n 24._o 5._o that_o they_o trouble_v man_n yea_o and_o tertullus_n the_o orator_n thus_o speak_v unto_o portius_n festus_n that_o he_o shall_v punish_v paul_n because_o that_o they_o may_v by_o his_o conduct_n and_o government_n enjoy_v excellent_a peace_n and_o tranquillity_n if_o only_a paul_n be_v not_o a_o let_v who_o trouble_v all_o thing_n by_o perverse_a and_o new_a doctrine_n but_o now_o i_o cease_v to_o urge_v any_o more_o the_o second_o point_n namely_o that_o we_o may_v not_o otherwise_o do_v but_o depart_v from_o the_o popedom_n papist_n three_o special_a cause_n of_o depart_v from_o the_o papist_n for_o three_o sort_n of_o necessity_n urge_v we_o namely_o of_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n of_o shun_v sin_n and_o fly_a idolatry_n and_o also_o for_o the_o escape_n of_o pain_n and_o punishment_n which_o remain_v for_o the_o wicked_a neither_o must_v it_o seem_v any_o marvel_n that_o these_o necessity_n be_v lay_v upon_o we_o see_v that_o in_o the_o civil_a law_n the_o company_n and_o assembly_n which_o unlawfullie_o assemble_v together_o be_v condemn_v to_o gréevous_a punishment_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o title_n de_fw-fr collegijs_fw-la &_o corporibus_fw-la illicitis_fw-la the_o which_o be_v not_o only_o forbid_v by_o the_o commonweal_n or_o emperor_n but_o they_o which_o frequent_a the_o same_o be_v account_v of_o even_o as_o if_o they_o have_v occupy_v the_o public_a place_n or_o temple_n with_o arm_a man_n for_o they_o be_v think_v to_o abuse_v such_o corporation_n and_o fellowship_n for_o the_o work_n of_o their_o naughtiness_n wherefore_o god_n do_v right_o and_o in_o order_n when_o by_o his_o commandment_n he_o reconcile_v we_o from_o such_o assembly_n 38_o but_o now_o i_o come_v to_o the_o three_o member_n of_o this_o treatise_n wherein_o i_o will_v show_v that_o we_o depart_v not_o from_o the_o church_n but_o be_v rather_o come_v unto_o it_o same_z that_o they_o which_o have_v leave_v the_o pope_n have_v not_o departeâ_n from_o the_o church_n but_o rather_o return_v to_o the_o same_z which_o that_o it_o may_v evident_o appear_v we_o must_v consider_v that_o our_o adversary_n be_v very_o much_o deceive_v forsomuch_o as_o they_o think_v that_o thing_n
argument_n of_o macedonius_n against_o augustine_n first_o he_o say_v in_o this_o let_n go_v we_o seem_v to_o allow_v that_o which_o we_o will_v have_v punish_v but_o it_o be_v sin_n that_o we_o will_v have_v punish_v therefore_o we_o seem_v to_o allow_v of_o sin_n itself_o so_o then_o we_o make_v ourselves_o guilty_a because_o the_o allower_n and_o author_n of_o the_o offence_n be_v both_o alike_o culpable_a wherefore_o we_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o offence_n that_o they_o be_v who_o we_o so_o let_v go_v augustine_n answer_v we_o while_o we_o crave_v to_o have_v those_o yield_v unto_o the_o church_n seek_v it_o not_o to_o the_o end_n that_o sin_n shall_v go_v unpunished_a but_o rather_o amend_v even_o as_o god_n when_o he_o make_v the_o sun_n to_o arise_v upon_o the_o wicked_a do_v it_o not_o that_o sin_n shall_v escape_v unpunished_a but_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v by_o his_o goodness_n provoke_v they_o to_o repentance_n moreover_o we_o will_v in_o any_o wise_a that_o sin_n shall_v be_v punish_v howbeit_o by_o a_o other_o kind_n of_o punishment_n that_o be_v by_o repentance_n not_o by_o the_o sword_n of_o authority_n second_o macedonius_n object_v the_o sword_n of_o the_o civil_a power_n will_v be_v in_o vain_a to_o what_o end_n shall_v there_o be_v prison_n gallow_n hangman_n executioner_n &_o such_o like_a if_o guilty_a person_n as_o you_o will_v shall_v be_v let_v go_v unpunished_a but_o augustine_n say_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a because_o they_o punish_v the_o impenitent_a and_o obstinate_a but_o other_o which_o promise_n that_o they_o will_v amend_v their_o life_n your_o power_n and_o instrument_n of_o punishment_n do_v bring_v they_o hereunto_o for_o unless_o they_o shall_v be_v terrify_v by_o this_o mean_n they_o will_v continue_v in_o their_o mischief_n so_o as_o our_o intercession_n be_v nothing_o at_o all_o against_o your_o severe_a power_n nay_o rather_o if_o the_o same_o be_v not_o our_o intercession_n shall_v have_v no_o place_n moreover_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v they_o available_a that_o we_o may_v lead_v a_o peaceable_a and_o quiet_a life_n among_o the_o wicked_a three_o macedonius_n argue_v the_o punishment_n that_o we_o lie_v upon_o the_o guilty_a be_v either_o just_a or_o unjust_a if_o they_o be_v unjust_a let_v they_o be_v remoove_v and_o let_v they_o no_o more_o appear_v in_o the_o common_a weal_n but_o if_o they_o be_v just_a wherefore_o do_v you_o hinder_v they_o with_o your_o intercession_n augustine_n answer_v they_o be_v just_a against_o they_o which_o be_v stubborn_a and_o obstinate_a in_o their_o sin_n but_o when_o there_o come_v promise_n of_o amendment_n and_o repentance_n forsomuch_o as_o the_o guilty_a person_n be_v change_v the_o punishment_n must_v also_o be_v change_v or_o take_v away_o hereunto_o macedonius_n add_v they_o which_o be_v so_o deliver_v it_o come_v often_o to_o pass_v that_o they_o afterward_o fall_v again_o into_o the_o self_n same_o vice_n or_o else_o commit_v those_o that_o be_v more_o grievous_a augustine_n answer_v see_v this_o be_v not_o do_v by_o our_o fault_n nor_o will_n neither_o do_v we_o make_v intercession_n for_o they_o that_o they_o may_v become_v such_o evil_a person_n again_o macedonius_n say_v yet_o further_o other_o be_v corrupt_v by_o this_o example_n will_v more_o vehement_o run_v astray_o and_o so_o all_o thing_n will_v be_v fill_v with_o theft_n and_o robbery_n whereunto_o augustine_n say_v god_n also_o will_v easy_o sustain_v this_o kind_n either_o of_o reproach_n or_o cavillation_n why_o do_v we_o not_o also_o say_v that_o evil_a man_n be_v corrupt_v to_o commit_v daily_a more_o and_o more_o grievous_a sin_n through_o the_o good_a will_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o suffer_v and_o cherish_v the_o wicked_a last_o macedonius_n have_v respect_n unto_o the_o loss_n and_o hindrance_n do_v unto_o citizen_n and_o say_v it_o will_v by_o this_o mean_n come_v to_o pass_v that_o thing_n take_v away_o by_o theft_n and_o robbery_n will_v not_o be_v restore_v unto_o this_o augustine_n say_v it_o will_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v so_o for_o that_o be_v reckon_v to_o be_v no_o true_a repentance_n wherein_o other_o man_n good_n be_v retain_v neither_o be_v the_o sin_n forgive_v unless_o there_o be_v a_o restitution_n of_o the_o thing_n steal_v but_o yet_o he_o show_v after_o what_o manner_n namely_o that_o if_o it_o may_v be_v or_o if_o the_o guilty_a man_n have_v other_o man_n good_n in_o his_o hand_n howbeit_o otherwhile_o these_o robber_n and_o thief_n do_v straight_o way_n consume_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v naughty_o get_v do_v riotous_o waste_v and_o destroy_v they_o and_o when_o as_o there_o remain_v with_o they_o not_o one_o jot_n thereof_o to_o restore_v when_o they_o have_v change_v their_o mind_n they_o must_v be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n lest_o they_o be_v perpetual_o afflict_v without_o a_o cause_n and_o their_o repentance_n be_v hinder_v these_o thing_n have_v we_o hear_v to_o be_v speak_v of_o augustine_n and_o macedonius_n according_a to_o both_o part_n of_o the_o question_n propound_v i_o may_v add_v that_o james_n in_o his_o epistle_n write_v 13_o james._n 2._o 13_o that_o judgement_n without_o mercy_n remain_v unto_o he_o who_o have_v not_o show_v mercy_n 32._o eze._n 18._o 32._o and_o also_o that_o ezechiel_n who_o under_o the_o person_n of_o god_n say_v i_o will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n but_o rather_o that_o he_o be_v convert_v and_o live_v 9_o some_o man_n perhaps_o will_v marvel_v why_o augustine_n set_v not_o down_o among_o his_o reason_n macedonius_n a_o consideration_n of_o the_o reason_n of_o augustine_n and_o macedonius_n that_o the_o guilty_a sort_n must_v also_o be_v spare_v because_o they_o be_v ignorant_a or_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o their_o lust_n or_o frail_a affection_n and_o therefore_o do_v fall_v into_o so_o gréevous_a offence_n héereunto_o i_o answer_v perhaps_o augustine_n comprehend_v this_o kind_n of_o argument_n when_o he_o say_v that_o man_n infirmity_n must_v be_v consider_v and_o certain_o to_o be_v ignorant_a and_o overcome_v with_o lust_n pertain_v to_o imbecility_n howbeit_o we_o may_v otherwise_o answer_v that_o he_o prudent_o omit_v this_o because_o he_o will_v not_o sustain_v the_o person_n of_o a_o defender_n but_o of_o a_o intercessor_n it_o be_v none_o of_o his_o part_n to_o minish_v or_o extenuate_v sin_n he_o confess_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v noughtilie_o do_v for_o the_o which_o he_o entreat_v but_o he_o crave_v a_o remission_n furthermore_o they_o which_o commit_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o know_v to_o be_v punishable_a by_o the_o public_a law_n know_v they_o to_o be_v sin_n mân_z they_o which_o be_v stir_v up_o with_o lust_n can_v be_v compare_v to_o the_o phrentike_a mân_z neither_o can_v they_o which_o be_v stir_v up_o with_o lust_n be_v compare_v as_o of_o some_o they_o be_v unto_o they_o that_o be_v frantic_a and_o out_o of_o their_o wit_n who_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v pity_v than_o punish_v for_o as_o yet_o reason_n reign_v in_o those_o man_n but_o in_o the_o other_o it_o be_v extinguish_v or_o else_o stop_v moreover_o the_o frantic_a person_n do_v not_o procure_v the_o evil_a unto_o themselves_o but_o they_o which_o obey_v lust_n do_v otherwhile_o stir_v they_o up_o they_o seek_v occasion_n they_o shun_v they_o not_o nor_o yet_o wrestle_v against_o they_o neither_o do_v they_o repress_v outward_a action_n which_o they_o may_v do_v although_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o regenerate_v wherefore_o the_o comparison_n be_v very_o unlike_a augustine_n to_o the_o first_o reason_n of_o augustine_n 10_o but_o because_o the_o reason_n of_o augustine_n under_o correction_n of_o so_o notable_a a_o man_n be_v not_o firm_a therefore_o must_v they_o be_v confute_v which_o as_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v do_v so_o i_o judge_v it_o very_o profitable_a first_o he_o say_v that_o sin_n be_v more_o pardonable_a as_o he_o term_v it_o when_o they_o have_v promise_n of_o amendment_n and_o also_o repentance_n join_v with_o they_o and_o therefore_o ought_v no_o long_a to_o be_v punish_v severelie_o unto_o this_o we_o answer_v that_o the_o pardon_v which_o follow_v faith_n unto_o which_o be_v adjoin_v repentance_n be_v obtain_v of_o god_n and_o pertain_v not_o to_o the_o civil_a judge_n who_o have_v respect_n to_o a_o thing_n already_o do_v not_o unto_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v present_a second_o to_o the_o second_o he_o add_v that_o the_o severity_n of_o law_n seek_v correction_n but_o that_o those_o man_n be_v correct_v by_o amendment_n of_o life_n and_o repentance_n and_o that_o therefore_o nothing_o else_o must_v be_v any_o more_o wrest_a from_o they_o by_o violence_n but_o correction_n be_v seek_v for_o by_o the_o magistrate_n not_o only_o for_o his_o cause_n that_o be_v punish_v but_o also_o for_o other_o man_n sake_n
prince_n take_v that_o no_o doubt_n but_o he_o will_v condemn_v they_o of_o treason_n and_o do_v we_o think_v that_o god_n will_v not_o take_v it_o to_o be_v wicked_o do_v if_o he_o see_v his_o law_n contemn_v and_o tread_v under_o foot_n david_n see_v a_o danger_n to_o hang_v over_o he_o but_o he_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o that_o be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o wind_n or_o in_o the_o water_n but_o be_v stable_n and_o eternal_a and_o what_o if_o he_o have_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n yet_o god_n can_v have_v reserve_v he_o full_a and_o whole_a wherefore_o we_o see_v that_o david_n be_v so_o trouble_v in_o that_o he_o depend_v somewhat_o of_o man_n it_o have_v be_v a_o hard_a matter_n to_o have_v punish_v joab_n yet_o shall_v he_o at_o the_o leastwise_o have_v attempt_v it_o he_o do_v nothing_o here_o now_o only_o he_o complain_v of_o the_o power_n of_o joab_n in_o very_a deed_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o punishment_n may_v sometime_o be_v differ_v &_o that_o fit_a occasion_n may_v be_v wait_v for_o but_o to_o do_v nothing_o at_o all_o it_o be_v too_o great_a a_o lenity_n and_o sure_o there_o be_v many_o cause_n why_o punishment_n ought_v otherwhile_o to_o be_v differ_v differ_v cause_n for_o the_o which_o punishment_n may_v be_v differ_v as_o appear_v in_o the_o code_n de_fw-fr poenis_fw-la in_o the_o law_n si_fw-mi vindicari_fw-la first_o lest_o the_o magistrate_n shall_v do_v any_o thing_n unaduisedlie_o in_o his_o wrath_n that_o law_n do_v theodosius_n the_o emperor_n write_v at_o the_o request_n of_o ambrose_n when_o he_o be_v by_o he_o grievous_o blame_v and_o excommunicate_v because_o through_o a_o wilfulness_n and_o rage_n of_o mind_n he_o have_v be_v overcruell_a against_o the_o thessalonian_o that_o history_n and_o cause_n of_o the_o law_n be_v set_v forth_o in_o socrates_n and_o be_v repeat_v in_o the_o decree_n cause_o 11._o quest_n 3._o the_o chapt._n apud_fw-la thessalonicam_fw-la wherefore_o it_o be_v provide_v that_o between_o the_o sentence_n give_v and_o execution_n shall_v be_v thirty_o day_n space_n an_o other_o cause_n of_o delay_n be_v if_o the_o woman_n which_o shall_v be_v execute_v be_v great_a with_o child_n also_o a_o seruamt_v aught_o to_o be_v differ_v until_o he_o have_v make_v a_o account_n unto_o his_o master_n and_o have_v certify_v he_o of_o all_o thing_n the_o execution_n likewise_o of_o he_o against_o who_o a_o thing_n be_v examine_v by_o torment_n be_v differ_v that_o it_o may_v be_v know_v whether_o he_o stand_v to_o his_o opinion_n for_o man_n be_v oftentimes_o overcome_v with_o torment_n confess_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o never_o think_v likewise_o execution_n be_v many_o time_n differ_v so_o often_o as_o we_o be_v to_o inquire_v of_o other_o crime_n or_o of_o they_o that_o be_v privy_a to_o thing_n and_o these_o only_a so_o far_o as_o i_o know_v may_v be_v the_o just_a cause_n of_o differ_a punishment_n for_o if_o a_o man_n that_o be_v condemn_v in_o a_o province_n say_v that_o he_o have_v somewhat_o which_o pertain_v to_o the_o safety_n of_o a_o prince_n the_o roman_z law_n decree_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v hear_v because_o he_o seem_v only_o to_o seek_v the_o delay_n of_o punishment_n nevertheless_o &_o if_o he_o have_v any_o thing_n that_o pertain_v to_o the_o prince_n he_o shall_v have_v show_v it_o before_o but_o now_o none_o of_o these_o matter_n can_v serve_v for_o joab_n wherefore_o david_n shall_v not_o have_v differ_v his_o punishment_n so_o long_o 20_o sometime_o punishment_n be_v forgive_v if_o a_o man_n shall_v offend_v under_o twenty-five_o year_n of_o age_n increase_v why_o punishment_n be_v sometime_o forgive_v &_o sometime_o increase_v albeit_o a_o adulterer_n be_v not_o pardon_v although_o he_o be_v under_o that_o age_n and_o beside_o this_o it_o must_v be_v consider_v whether_o a_o man_n have_v sin_v by_o deceit_n or_o by_o the_o provocation_n of_o his_o mind_n or_o by_o wantonness_n or_o rash_o for_o in_o he_o that_o have_v use_v deceit_n or_o lay_v in_o wait_n the_o punishment_n also_o be_v augment_v but_o joab_n use_v both_o wicked_a deceit_n and_o have_v call_v abner_n after_o a_o courteous_a and_o friendly_a manner_n slay_v he_o even_o before_o the_o public_a place_n of_o judgement_n and_o violate_v the_o public_a faith_n also_o punishment_n may_v be_v augment_v as_o we_o have_v it_o in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr poenis_fw-la in_o the_o law_n aut_fw-la facta_fw-la if_o a_o fault_n be_v commit_v by_o a_o multitude_n through_o sedition_n then_o very_o some_o one_o man_n be_v more_o gréevouslie_o punish_v to_o the_o terror_n of_o other_o by_o this_o lenity_n of_o david_n some_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n animate_v unto_o detestable_a fact_n for_o afterward_o thief_n be_v so_o hardy_a as_o to_o kill_v isbosethe_v at_o his_o own_o house_n ammon_n to_o deflower_v his_o own_o sister_n 6._o 2._o sam._n 4._o 6._o absalon_n to_o slay_v his_o brother_n ammon_n 29._o 2._o sa._n 13._o 14_o 2._o sam._n 29._o and_o joab_n himself_o to_o kill_v amasa_n we_o can_v perceive_v that_o david_n behave_v himself_o on_o this_o wise_a towards_o other_o 15._o david_n deal_v otherwise_o towards_o other_o 2._o sa._n 1._o 15._o since_o he_o command_v that_o the_o amalechite_a which_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n further_v saul_n unto_o his_o death_n and_o afterward_o that_o the_o thief_n which_o have_v slay_v isboseth_n 9_o 2._o sam._n 4._o 9_o shall_v forthwith_o be_v slay_v it_o may_v also_o be_v perceive_v that_o he_o somewhat_o follow_v his_o own_o private_a affection_n unto_o joab_n 15._o 2._o sa._n 20._o 9_o 2._o sa._n 1._o 15._o for_o he_o be_v his_o own_o sister_n son_n but_o albeit_o he_o be_v not_o lead_v with_o any_o such_o affection_n yet_o he_o make_v a_o great_a show_n thereof_o for_o he_o that_o in_o the_o selfsame_o or_o in_o the_o like_a cause_n forgive_v one_o man_n and_o punish_v a_o other_o can_v seem_v to_o be_v lead_v with_o the_o love_n of_o justice_n david_n in_o deed_n be_v a_o man_n of_o a_o gentle_a and_o meek_a heart_n yet_o shall_v he_o not_o have_v pollute_v that_o work_n of_o god_n and_o have_v set_v a_o colour_n on_o the_o vessel_n which_o be_v beautiful_a of_o itself_o for_o this_o be_v to_o communicate_v with_o other_o man_n sin_n what_o shall_v we_o therefore_o say_v david_n no_o doubt_n be_v holy_a and_o fear_a god_n yet_o so_o excellent_a a_o body_n be_v not_o without_o his_o blemish_n even_o as_o there_o be_v no_o day_n so_o beautiful_a and_o clear_a but_o have_v his_o night_n so_o be_v there_o never_o man_n so_o holy_a and_o perfect_a in_o every_o respect_n but_o be_v corrupt_v with_o some_o sin_n very_o we_o ought_v to_o follow_v and_o imitate_v the_o virtue_n of_o godly_a man_n but_o not_o to_o dissemble_v their_o fault_n part_n a_o confutation_n of_o the_o reason_n make_v on_o david_n part_n 21_o now_o will_v i_o in_o few_o word_n confute_v those_o reason_n which_o be_v bring_v on_o david_n side_n at_o the_o beginning_n joab_n be_v mighty_a what_o then_o assure_o david_n have_v god_n himself_o on_o his_o side_n do_v he_o peradventure_o think_v he_o to_o be_v weak_a furthermore_o he_o have_v all_o the_o israelite_n which_o so_o much_o attribute_v unto_o abner_n that_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n they_o will_v have_v aid_v david_n in_o the_o punish_n of_o joab_n that_o which_o be_v bring_v as_o concern_v the_o delay_n of_o punishment_n it_o be_v already_o answer_v for_o i_o say_v not_o that_o he_o shall_v straightway_o have_v be_v slay_v he_o shall_v have_v be_v take_v &_o cast_v into_o prison_n his_o cause_n be_v to_o be_v know_v last_o punishment_n be_v to_o be_v execute_v but_o in_o that_o he_o differ_v the_o same_o even_o to_o his_o death_n the_o delay_n be_v over_o great_a but_o at_o his_o death_n he_o give_v it_o in_o charge_n to_o his_o son_n solomon_n yea_o and_o david_n himself_o answer_v far_o otherwise_o let_v god_n judge_v say_v he_o true_o this_o be_v not_o the_o part_n of_o a_o magistrate_n to_o cast_v the_o judgement_n of_o cause_n upon_o god_n punishmentes_n be_v like_a unto_o medicine_n those_o be_v not_o to_o be_v use_v except_o when_o they_o may_v profit_v but_o if_o they_o have_v not_o profit_v joab_n yet_o may_v they_o have_v profit_v other_o god_n differ_v punishment_n therefore_o david_n also_o do_v right_o differre_fw-la they_o but_o the_o doing_n of_o prince_n must_v not_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o doing_n of_o god_n for_o god_n be_v eternal_a and_o immortal_a but_o a_o prince_n may_v die_v and_o what_o if_o he_o die_v to_o morrow_n who_o shall_v then_o take_v punishment_n of_o the_o wicked_a but_o god_n if_o he_o do_v not_o take_v punishment_n to_o day_n yet_o will_v he_o take_v it_o to_o morrow_n or_o when_o he_o himself_o
will_n and_o further_o he_o have_v a_o through_o trial_n of_o all_o man_n mind_n and_o he_o see_v for_o what_o cause_n every_o thing_n be_v do_v but_o unto_o man_n be_v permit_v no_o mitigation_n in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n saul_n forgive_v i_o grant_v nevertheless_o of_o his_o own_o but_o david_n forgive_v that_o which_o belong_v to_o a_o other_o man_n augustine_n make_v intercession_n for_o heretic_n howbeit_o this_o he_o do_v least_o the_o ethnike_n shall_v think_v that_o ecclesiastical_a man_n prosecute_v their_o own_o displeasure_n further_o he_o do_v not_o that_o to_o the_o intent_n he_o will_v take_v away_o the_o law_n of_o prince_n but_o that_o he_o know_v that_o the_o emperor_n do_v otherwhiles_o permit_v their_o president_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v power_n to_o remit_v somewhat_o of_o the_o bitterness_n of_o the_o law_n and_o punishment_n make_v by_o they_o if_o they_o do_v think_v it_o profitable_a but_o as_o touch_v circumcellion_n how_o right_o he_o entreat_v for_o they_o let_v he_o himself_o see_v for_o they_o be_v both_o thief_n and_o homicide_n we_o doubtless_o must_v live_v by_o law_n and_o not_o by_o example_n christ_n forgive_v sin_n and_o david_n be_v a_o shadow_n of_o he_o i_o grant_v that_o in_o deed_n christ_n forgive_v yet_o be_v that_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o church_n but_o david_n govern_v even_o the_o political_a kingdom_n âiâne_v a_o argument_n from_o figure_n not_o always_o âiâne_v neither_o be_v always_o the_o argument_n firm_a enough_o that_o be_v take_v from_o figure_n for_o otherwise_o we_o will_v say_v that_o certain_a harlot_n which_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n sin_v not_o because_o they_o be_v shadow_n and_o image_n of_o the_o church_n and_o christ_n himself_o although_o he_o be_v incline_v unto_o mercy_n and_o forgive_v many_o thing_n yet_o shall_v he_o in_o that_o last_o time_n be_v a_o severe_a judge_n and_o who_o will_v not_o be_v entreat_v and_o he_o shall_v say_v unto_o the_o ungodlie_a go_v you_o curse_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n 41._o mat._n 25._o 41._o and_o altogether_o in_o the_o same_o state_n be_v they_o also_o which_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o power_n of_o man_n remit_v excommunication_n and_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n howbeit_o what_o be_v to_o be_v determine_v of_o that_o we_o have_v declare_v elsewhere_o in_o his_o own_o place_n but_o here_o perhaps_o some_o man_n will_v object_v ghost_n whether_o david_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o david_n be_v accuse_v of_o we_o without_o a_o cause_n for_o that_o he_o in_o this_o matter_n as_o at_o many_o other_o time_n follow_v the_o guide_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n sin_v not_o at_o all_o nevertheless_o i_o be_o not_o wont_v willing_o to_o use_v this_o kind_n of_o excuse_n unless_o i_o see_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v against_o the_o common_a law_n be_v allow_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n further_o i_o do_v not_o here_o contend_v against_o any_o thing_n but_o the_o excuse_n of_o david_n for_o he_o say_v not_o that_o he_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o impulsion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o that_o joab_n be_v mighty_a and_o gracious_a with_o the_o soldier_n and_o may_v not_o be_v keep_v under_o by_o the_o law_n this_o excuse_n do_v i_o say_v must_v not_o be_v receive_v guilty_a in_o rom._n 2._o whether_o a_o judge_n may_v judge_v another_o in_o that_o crime_n whereof_o himself_o be_v guilty_a 22_o howbeit_o see_v they_o seem_v to_o be_v reproove_v which_o do_v judge_v other_o and_o true_o not_o amiss_o see_v they_o also_o be_v infect_v with_o the_o same_o fault_n let_v we_o see_v whether_o they_o judge_v right_o which_o think_v that_o judge_n can_v nor_o ought_v not_o to_o exercise_v judgement_n against_o other_o which_o be_v accuse_v when_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o selfsame_o crime_n themselves_o but_o this_o be_v to_o overthrow_v all_o publike-weale_n and_o utterlie_o to_o take_v away_o judgement_n neither_o be_v that_o paul_n meaning_n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n but_o he_o only_o show_v that_o they_o sin_n most_o gréevouslie_o which_o with_o a_o great_a severity_n punish_v other_o &_o overslip_v themselves_o doubtless_o they_o ought_v first_o to_o correct_v and_o amend_v themselves_o nevertheless_o paul_n bid_v they_o not_o to_o forsake_v the_o office_n commit_v unto_o they_o they_o use_v also_o for_o this_o purpose_n to_o cite_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n unto_o they_o which_o accuse_v the_o adulterous_a woman_n adulteress_n john_n 8._o 7._o the_o place_n of_o john_n of_o the_o adulteress_n he_o which_o amongst_o you_o be_v without_o sin_n let_v he_o cast_v the_o first_o stone_n at_o she_o and_o yet_o this_o sentence_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o against_o just_a punishment_n and_o lawful_a judgement_n neither_o command_v he_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o proceed_v in_o accuse_v of_o the_o woman_n who_o they_o have_v take_v in_o adultery_n he_o himself_o be_v no_o magistrate_n but_o the_o most_o high_a preacher_n of_o god_n wherefore_o that_o which_o be_v his_o office_n to_o do_v he_o execute_v in_o persuade_v those_o hypocrite_n to_o repentance_n and_o he_o will_v first_o have_v have_v they_o provide_v that_o by_o a_o livelie_a faith_n and_o repentance_n they_o shall_v first_o have_v rid_v themselves_o from_o the_o sin_n whereunto_o they_o be_v bind_v neither_o forbid_v he_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v execute_v that_o which_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n command_v he_o see_v that_o these_o wicked_a man_n in_o these_o punishment_n be_v infect_v with_o two_o manner_n of_o fault_n first_o in_o asmuch_o as_o the_o punishment_n and_o pain_n which_o their_o neighbour_n be_v put_v unto_o be_v pleasant_a unto_o they_o for_o by_o accuse_v he_o before_o the_o magistrate_n and_o judge_n they_o privily_o fulfil_v upon_o he_o their_o hatred_n and_o enmity_n an_o other_o fault_n be_v their_o hypocrisy_n for_o that_o when_o as_o they_o themselves_o otherwise_o abstain_v not_o from_o the_o selfsame_o wicked_a act_n yet_o by_o accuse_v of_o offender_n they_o make_v a_o show_n as_o though_o they_o have_v be_v zealous_a of_o the_o law_n these_o thing_n christ_n endeavour_v to_o correct_v he_o condemn_v not_o the_o woman_n because_o he_o be_v no_o political_a magistrate_n he_o accuse_v she_o not_o to_o the_o magistrate_n because_o he_o find_v she_o not_o in_o adultery_n wherefore_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v not_o a_o meet_a witness_n he_o be_v not_o bind_v by_o the_o law_n to_o prosecute_v such_o a_o accusation_n but_o that_o which_o pertain_v to_o his_o function_n he_o leave_v not_o undo_v since_o he_o admonish_v she_o that_o she_o shall_v afterward_o abstain_v from_o sin_n likewise_o neighbour_n what_o we_o be_v to_o do_v when_o we_o see_v any_o fault_n of_o our_o neighbour_n when_o we_o see_v any_o wicked_a act_n do_v by_o our_o neighbour_n god_n require_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o judge_v of_o it_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n thereof_o for_o woe_n be_v unto_o we_o as_o the_o prophet_n say_v if_o we_o shall_v call_v evil_a good_a 20._o esa_n 5._o 20._o that_o which_o be_v evil_a aught_o to_o be_v judge_v according_a as_o it_o be_v neither_o ought_v we_o either_o to_o suspend_v our_o judgement_n or_o to_o turn_v away_o our_o eye_n from_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o very_a deed_n evil_a but_o if_o we_o shall_v feel_v ourselves_o to_o be_v infect_v in_o like_a manner_n with_o the_o selfsame_o fault_n let_v we_o descend_v into_o ourselves_o and_o with_o a_o due_a chastisement_n reproove_v ourselves_o and_o thereby_o shall_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o ourselves_o be_v by_o repentance_n correct_v may_v the_o more_o fit_o and_o fruitfullie_o admonish_v our_o brother_n when_o he_o sin_v neither_o against_o this_o be_v that_o sentence_n in_o the_o 7._o of_o matthew_n judge_v not_o and_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v judge_v understand_v matt._n 7._o 1._o how_o that_o say_n judge_v not_o &c_n &c_n must_v be_v understand_v because_o in_o that_o place_n be_v not_o entreat_v of_o the_o take_v away_o of_o brotherlie_a admonition_n but_o only_o the_o curiosity_n of_o the_o ungodlie_a be_v there_o reproove_v who_o when_o themselves_o abound_v in_o all_o manner_n of_o sin_n do_v most_o diligent_o search_v out_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o man_n not_o to_o the_o intent_n they_o will_v amend_v they_o but_o because_o they_o delight_v themselves_o in_o the_o multitude_n of_o sinner_n and_o think_v that_o by_o fellowship_n their_o offence_n be_v lighten_v the_o godly_a be_v not_o infect_v with_o this_o curiosity_n as_o they_o which_o continual_o have_v their_o eye_n fire_v upon_o their_o own_o sin_n and_o daily_a revolting_n so_o that_o they_o have_v no_o leisure_n to_o consider_v of_o other_o man_n fault_n unless_o they_o be_v offer_v unto_o they_o moreover_o they_o rejoice_v not_o
howbeit_o augustine_n desire_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v whole_o forgive_v but_o only_o that_o their_o blood_n may_v not_o be_v shed_v yet_o howsoever_o it_o be_v augustine_n the_o example_n of_o augustine_n the_o example_n of_o augustine_n ought_v not_o to_o prejudice_n any_o man_n opinion_n since_o we_o live_v by_o law_n not_o by_o example_n at_o this_o day_n if_o a_o man_n have_v kill_v a_o minister_n or_o do_v a_o robbery_n who_o will_v entreat_v for_o he_o but_o there_o be_v a_o refuge_n unto_o the_o church_n for_o such_o as_o be_v guilty_a admit_v it_o be_v so_o and_o we_o also_o do_v not_o take_v away_o sanctuary_n for_o god_n permit_v they_o for_o if_o the_o cause_n be_v obscure_a they_o may_v better_o be_v there_o than_o in_o prison_n while_o the_o same_o be_v know_v nevertheless_o the_o cause_n be_v manifest_a god_n himself_o command_v that_o the_o wicked_a man_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o very_a altar_n and_o be_v slay_v these_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o move_v i_o to_o think_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o prince_n to_o forgive_v the_o punishment_n of_o offender_n and_o assure_o the_o wise_a man_n have_v always_o hold_v that_o commonweal_n to_o be_v well_o order_v where_o very_o few_o thing_n be_v leave_v to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o judge_n but_o few_o such_o thing_n have_v the_o commonwealth_n of_o the_o israelite_n yet_o have_v it_o some_o that_o which_o be_v define_v by_o the_o law_n 8._o deut._n 13._o 8._o be_v in_o no_o wise_a to_o be_v remit_v let_v not_o thy_o eye_n say_v god_n spare_v thy_o own_o wife_n that_o sleep_v in_o thy_o bosom_n what_o be_v the_o office_n of_o a_o king_n in_o promotion_n of_o godliness_n look_v the_o epistle_n 18._o and_o 36._o at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o book_n of_o executioner_n or_o hangman_n enemy_n in_o jud._n 8._o ver_fw-la 10._o why_o gideon_n stir_v up_o his_o son_n to_o kill_v the_o enemy_n 30_o moreover_o gideon_n do_v for_o this_o cause_n perhaps_o drive_v his_o son_n to_o slay_v the_o king_n that_o he_o may_v inflame_v his_o heart_n from_o tender_a year_n against_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n people_n as_o it_o be_v write_v of_o hannibal_n who_o from_o a_o child_n vow_v himself_o against_o the_o roman_n or_o else_o he_o do_v it_o to_o learn_v he_o from_o his_o youth_n to_o obey_v the_o law_n of_o god_n 17_o deut._n 19_o 17_o wherein_o be_v command_v that_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o next_o of_o the_o kin_n be_v shed_v shall_v be_v revenge_v but_o may_v not_o this_o have_v be_v commit_v to_o a_o executioner_n why_o will_v he_o so_o urge_v his_o son_n to_o this_o we_o may_v answer_v two_o way_n first_o that_o in_o the_o old_a time_n it_o be_v not_o dishonourable_a to_o slay_v the_o guilty_a executioner_n the_o hebrew_n have_v no_o executioner_n further_o that_o it_o can_v be_v perceive_v that_o the_o ancient_a hebrew_n have_v executioner_n and_o that_o this_o for_o a_o certainty_n be_v no_o office_n among_o the_o hebrew_n that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n testify_v namely_o that_o a_o blasphemour_n be_v take_v 7._o deut._n 13_o 9_o &_o 17._o 7._o be_v so_o stone_v to_o death_n as_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o witness_n do_v throw_v the_o first_o stone_n at_o he_o neither_o be_v put_v to_o death_n commit_v to_o any_o particular_a executioner_n and_o there_o be_v many_o example_n which_o testify_v that_o it_o be_v not_o ignominious_a to_o slay_v the_o guilty_a 17._o 1._o sam._n 22._o ver_fw-la 17._o saul_n when_o he_o will_v have_v the_o priest_n slay_v do_v not_o call_v executioner_n to_o do_v it_o but_o turn_v to_o the_o noble_a man_n which_o be_v with_o he_o and_o command_v they_o to_o assail_v the_o priest_n who_o reverence_v their_o ministry_n and_o dignity_n dare_v not_o obey_v only_a doeg_n the_o edomite_n be_v bold_a to_o execute_v so_o horrible_a a_o act_n who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o least_o estimation_n with_o the_o king_n 33._o 1._o sa._n 15._o 33._o also_o samuel_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n slay_v king_n agag_n the_o prisoner_n in_o like_a manner_n joab_n when_o he_o have_v catch_v hold_n of_o the_o horn_n of_o the_o altar_n 34._o 1._o king_n 2._o 34._o be_v slay_v of_o banaia_n the_o chief_a captain_n of_o the_o host_n wherefore_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o hebrew_n in_o those_o ancient_a time_n have_v no_o executioner_n but_o as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v gather_v by_o the_o history_n of_o the_o ethnic_n the_o officer_n of_o punishment_n call_v lictores_fw-la plutarch_n plutarch_n begin_v at_o rome_n under_o romulus_n who_o as_o plutarch_n write_v in_o the_o life_n of_o romulus_n be_v call_v so_o either_o of_o ligando_fw-la that_o be_v of_o bind_v or_o else_o because_o the_o grecian_n call_v they_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d or_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d for_o that_o they_o execute_v a_o public_a office_n romulus_n give_v they_o rod_n bind_v together_o to_o carry_v and_o with_o they_o be_v join_v a_o axe_n they_o have_v also_o cord_n therewith_o to_o bind_v the_o citizen_n who_o be_v bind_v they_o may_v either_o beat_v they_o with_o rod_n or_o strike_v they_o with_o the_o axe_n but_o the_o man_n of_o more_o ancient_a time_n want_v this_o office_n every_o man_n execute_v the_o same_o according_a as_o it_o be_v command_v of_o the_o magistrate_n without_o any_o infamy_n unto_o he_o and_o in_o very_a deed_n that_o work_n of_o punish_v malefactor_n have_v in_o it_o no_o dishonesty_n or_o uncomelinesse_n for_o if_o it_o be_v honest_a for_o a_o judge_n or_o prince_n to_o give_v sentence_n of_o death_n against_o evil_a doer_n why_o then_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v just_a and_o honest_a to_o execute_v the_o same_o sentence_n yea_o and_o god_n himself_o in_o punish_v use_v not_o only_o evil_a spirit_n but_o good_a spirit_n 31_o but_o thou_o will_v say_v report_n why_o the_o officer_n of_o execution_n have_v common_o ill_a report_n why_o be_v officer_n of_o punishment_n and_o executioner_n common_o so_o evil_o speak_v of_o first_o because_o the_o common_a people_n be_v great_o afraid_a of_o they_o neither_o will_v any_o man_n be_v punish_v for_o his_o wicked_a fact_n hereby_o it_o come_v that_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o executioner_n drive_v a_o certain_a horror_n into_o they_o and_o that_o the_o people_n be_v so_o affect_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o public_a weal_n of_o rome_n declare_v where_o when_o ambitious_a man_n flatter_v the_o people_n more_o than_o be_v meet_v they_o banish_v the_o executioner_n from_o the_o judgement_n place_n from_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n and_o from_o the_o chief_a house_n in_o rome_n as_o even_o the_o oration_n of_o cicero_n for_o rabirius_n do_v testify_v crime_n the_o citizen_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o put_v to_o death_n for_o any_o crime_n the_o citizen_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o beat_v with_o rod_n nor_o put_v to_o death_n their_o extreme_a punishment_n be_v banishment_n they_o be_v carry_v into_o island_n and_o at_o the_o length_n condemn_v to_o the_o mine_n but_o the_o latter_a roman_a law_n which_o be_v in_o the_o digest_v do_v quite_o disannul_v this_o exemption_n for_o in_o very_a deed_n it_o be_v unjust_a for_o a_o fault_n worthy_a of_o death_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v wink_v at_o whatsoever_o citizen_n of_o rome_n be_v author_n of_o it_o and_o there_o be_v two_o principal_a law_n whereby_o the_o back_n and_o the_o head_n of_o the_o citizen_n be_v provide_v for_o 25_o the_o law_n portia_n and_o sempronia_n acts._n 22._o 25_o i_o mean_v the_o law_n portia_n and_o sempronia_n who_o power_n and_o protection_n paul_n as_o we_o have_v it_o in_o the_o act_n use_v and_o by_o that_o mean_v escape_v both_o rod_n and_o bond_n this_o be_v one_o cause_n why_o the_o officer_n of_o punishment_n and_o executioner_n be_v so_o odious_a 32_o a_o other_o cause_n hereof_o be_v the_o papistical_a opinion_n of_o irregularity_n canonist_n the_o irregularity_n of_o the_o canonist_n which_o as_o the_o canoniste_n will_v have_v it_o be_v gather_v of_o every_o manslaughter_n these_o man_n think_v that_o a_o man_n can_v so_o justly_o kill_v any_o man_n but_o that_o the_o same_o will_v let_v he_o from_o be_v promote_v to_o the_o holy_a ministry_n whereas_o nevertheless_o the_o inquisitor_n of_o heretical_a lewdness_n as_o they_o call_v it_o do_v daily_o cause_v a_o infinite_a number_n and_o those_o innocent_n to_o be_v kill_v the_o pope_n legate_n also_o in_o govern_v of_o city_n and_o province_n and_o make_v of_o war_n although_o they_o be_v cardinal_n and_o bishop_n do_v still_o continual_o cause_n blood_n to_o be_v shed_v but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n with_o great_a hypocrisy_n they_o provide_v that_o the_o sentence_n be_v give_v by_o a_o lie_v judge_n as_o they_o call_v he_o and_o so_o they_o wrap_v themselves_o out_o of_o that_o irregularity_n
be_v retain_v and_o in_o deed_n some_o of_o the_o father_n and_o some_o counsel_n do_v seem_v to_o be_v on_o their_o side_n of_o basil_n and_o chrysostome_n we_o have_v already_o speak_v before_o augustine_n in_o his_o 1._o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o 7._o chapter_n compare_v the_o sanctuary_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o romulus_n with_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n in_o which_o in_o the_o time_n of_o alaricus_n a_o barbarous_a king_n the_o christian_n have_v immunity_n for_o when_o he_o have_v take_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n by_o force_n he_o will_v have_v they_o all_o to_o be_v safe_a which_o flee_v for_o succour_v unto_o the_o temple_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n romulus_n say_v he_o open_v a_o sanctuary_n to_o increase_v the_o number_n of_o citizen_n alaricus_n to_o preserve_v a_o multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n which_o be_v more_o to_o be_v praise_v and_o in_o the_o same_o book_n the_o 4._o chapter_n he_o say_v that_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o christian_n be_v of_o far_o great_a power_n than_o those_o of_o the_o ethnic_n and_o again_o he_o use_v the_o example_n already_o allege_v and_o he_o add_v that_o the_o christian_a sanctuary_n be_v able_a to_o defend_v the_o roman_n be_v now_o captive_n but_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o juno_n which_o be_v at_o troy_n be_v not_o able_a to_o defend_v the_o trojan_n from_o the_o greek_n as_o virgil_n utter_v in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o his_o aeneidos_n the_o temple_n great_a be_v spoil_v and_o juno_n holy_a door_n be_v brace_v both_o phoenix_n and_o ulysses_n false_a with_o they_o their_o train_n about_o the_o pray_v do_v keep_v and_o greek_n to_o they_o the_o trojan_a riches_n bring_v yea_o moreover_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o same_o alaricus_n restore_v much_o of_o the_o gold_n which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o vatican_n when_o boniface_n the_o earl_n which_o under_o the_o roman_n govern_v africa_n have_v take_v one_o by_o force_n out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o augustine_n augustine_n in_o his_o 187._o epistle_n to_o the_o same_o boniface_n write_v that_o he_o wonder_v very_o much_o that_o he_o pluck_v a_o man_n from_o they_o and_o he_o will_v he_o safe_o to_o restore_v the_o party_n with_o all_o convenient_a speed_n and_o he_o add_v that_o he_o command_v his_o clergy_n man_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o take_v any_o offering_n out_o of_o his_o house_n and_o that_o he_o have_v now_o excommunicate_v he_o this_o also_o we_o have_v in_o the_o decree_v 17._o quest_n 4._o in_o the_o canon_n miror_fw-la and_o in_o the_o 188._o epistle_n the_o same_o earl_n make_v a_o very_a lowly_a answer_n unto_o augustine_n who_o he_o very_o much_o love_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o have_v gréevouslie_o sin_v behold_v say_v he_o i_o now_o restore_v the_o man_n who_o i_o take_v away_o yet_o let_v it_o be_v know_v to_o thou_o that_o he_o be_v most_o worthy_a of_o death_n wherefore_o we_o see_v that_o gréevous_a offence_n in_o the_o church_n have_v defence_n in_o right_a of_o the_o sanctuary_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o counsel_n great_o favour_v sanctuary_n the_o council_n of_o arausicanum_n chapt._n the_o 5._o decree_v that_o none_o shall_v be_v pluck_v away_o from_o the_o church_n the_o 4._o council_n of_o aurelianensis_fw-la chapt._n the_o 21._o not_o only_o command_v that_o this_o rite_n shall_v be_v retain_v by_o the_o bishop_n but_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v excommunicate_v which_o shall_v neglect_v to_o do_v it_o the_o 12._o council_n of_o toletanus_n chapter_n the_o 10._o give_v for_o sanctuary_n thirty_o pace_n about_o church_n which_o be_v of_o the_o lesser_a sort_n but_o unto_o the_o metropolitan_o it_o give_v forty_o the_o counsel_n of_o ilerdenum_n &_o triburiensis_n decree_v in_o a_o manner_n the_o same_o thing_n 41_o what_o shall_v we_o then_o judge_v sanctuary_n whether_o it_o be_v expedient_a to_o have_v sanctuary_n must_v sanctuary_n be_v retain_v or_o abrogate_a i_o forasmuch_o as_o i_o perceive_v that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n retain_v sanctuary_n but_o yet_o of_o very_o straight_a liberty_n and_o do_v see_v also_o that_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n institute_v they_o and_o that_o otherwhiles_o there_o may_v be_v just_a cause_n of_o they_o therefore_o i_o will_v determine_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v retain_v have_v with_o these_o caution_n they_o may_v be_v have_v certain_a caution_n be_v observe_v first_o that_o no_o private_a or_o public_a thing_n be_v hurt_v by_o that_o liberty_n secondlie_o that_o no_o injury_n be_v do_v to_o any_o man_n or_o else_o vice_n nourish_v and_o maintain_v through_o the_o hope_n of_o pardon_n and_o impunity_n further_o it_o seem_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o take_v heed_n that_o they_o be_v not_o open_a unto_o all_o kind_n of_o crime_n but_o that_o they_o be_v grant_v for_o some_o certain_a man_n as_o when_o one_o man_n have_v kill_v a_o other_o neither_o witting_o nor_o willing_o or_o else_o if_o a_o good_a man_n without_o his_o own_o fault_n by_o the_o injury_n of_o fortune_n shall_v be_v burden_v with_o debt_n or_o in_o such_o like_a thing_n but_o to_o grant_v sanctuary_n for_o all_o crime_n it_o be_v far_o from_o godliness_n again_o it_o be_v good_a to_o be_v decree_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v many_o and_o much_o frequent_v that_o man_n may_v behave_v themselves_o the_o more_o circumspect_o and_o gravelie_o in_o their_o dangerous_a action_n 13._o numb_a 35._o 13._o the_o old_a law_n have_v only_o six_o in_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o israel_n but_o in_o our_o region_n there_o be_v always_o many_o for_o the_o canoniste_n have_v marvellous_o indevor_v to_o enlarge_v that_o liberty_n notwithstanding_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o part_n of_o a_o good_a magistrate_n to_o restrain_v the_o number_n of_o they_o also_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v provide_v that_o they_o which_o be_v detain_v in_o sanctuary_n when_o by_o judgement_n they_o be_v find_v guilty_a may_v not_o easy_o escape_v away_o and_o that_o the_o priest_n or_o monk_n if_o they_o make_v a_o way_n for_o they_o to_o escape_v shall_v undergo_v certain_a punishment_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d howbeit_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o themselves_o also_o be_v sanctuary_n as_o be_v man_n that_o have_v extort_a and_o usurp_a sundry_a form_n of_o exemption_n the_o fifteen_o chapter_n of_o exile_n or_o banishment_n end_n in_o 1._o king_n 2_o at_o the_o end_n forsomuch_o as_o abiathar_n be_v banish_v to_o the_o territory_n of_o his_o father_n and_o semei_n command_v to_o keep_v himself_o at_o jerusalem_n the_o which_o be_v kind_n of_o banishmente_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o speak_v somewhat_o of_o exile_n or_o banishment_n place_n the_o order_n observe_v in_o the_o treatise_n of_o this_o common_a place_n first_o we_o will_v inquire_v out_o the_o definition_n of_o exile_n second_o we_o will_v search_v which_o be_v the_o kind_n thereof_o and_o three_o shall_v be_v dispute_v whether_o this_o kind_n of_o punishment_n ought_v to_o be_v use_v in_o commonweal_n namely_o for_o expel_v of_o a_o hurtful_a man_n out_o of_o their_o dominion_n when_o they_o may_v punish_v he_o and_o to_o keep_v a_o right_a method_n we_o will_v begin_v at_o the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v call_v makalash_n exile_n the_o etymology_n of_o exile_n for_o the_o verb_n kalash_n be_v to_o gather_v or_o bind_v together_o therefore_o do_v they_o call_v city_n of_o refuge_n by_o this_o name_n because_o they_o gather_v themselves_o unto_o they_o and_o thither_o be_v the_o fugitive_n draw_v together_o and_o it_o may_v also_o be_v call_v magnahash_n of_o fly_v or_o escape_v away_o the_o grecian_n also_o call_v exile_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d a_o fugiendo_fw-la of_o fly_v away_o the_o latin_n if_o we_o may_v believe_v nonius_n marcellus_n call_v it_o exilium_fw-la because_o they_o that_o so_o fly_v away_o be_v without_o country_n or_o land_n namely_o of_o their_o own_o and_o man_n be_v say_v to_o go_v from_o one_o soil_n to_o a_o other_o when_o they_o flee_v from_o any_o hurt_n or_o punishment_n which_o remain_v for_o they_o at_o home_n but_o they_o which_o study_n to_o comfort_v exile_v man_n do_v call_v their_o exile_n peregrination_n when_o as_o nevertheless_o there_o be_v perceive_v no_o small_a difference_n between_o these_o thing_n for_o peregrination_n be_v take_v in_o hand_n willing_o and_o for_o sundry_a cause_n peregrination_n the_o difference_n between_o exile_n and_o peregrination_n not_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o punishment_n which_o shall_v be_v lay_v upon_o they_o at_o home_n but_o so_o man_n speak_v that_o they_o by_o a_o more_o mild_a word_n may_v extenuate_v that_o punishment_n exhort_v their_o friend_n by_o that_o manner_n of_o speech_n to_o take_v that_o upon_o they_o as_o voluntary_o which_o they_o suffer_v against_o their_o will_n and_o undoubted_o that_o fly_v
differ_v among_o themselves_o so_o as_o some_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v advise_v other_o unaduised_a some_o witty_a other_o foolish_a other_o slow_v and_o idle_a and_o other_o industrious_a and_o apt_a to_o every_o thing_n 22_o the_o unspeakable_a lesses_z which_o unto_o the_o king_n himself_o and_o also_o unto_o all_o the_o people_n be_v bring_v by_o war_n 1â_n in_o 2._o king_n 14._o ver_fw-la 1â_n aught_o to_o warn_v even_o private_a man_n to_o pray_v unto_o god_n that_o he_o will_v set_v over_o they_o such_o prince_n as_o be_v godly_a wise_a modest_a and_o favourer_n of_o peace_n and_o that_o by_o their_o travel_n and_o endeavour_n he_o will_v keep_v and_o maintain_v they_o in_o a_o peaceable_a and_o quiet_a state_n and_o see_v it_o so_o great_o behoove_v we_o to_o have_v good_a and_o godly_a prince_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o shall_v be_v no_o less_o careful_a of_o their_o safety_n than_o of_o our_o own_o and_o we_o must_v take_v special_a regard_n that_o neither_o we_o ourselves_o do_v stir_v up_o new_a matter_n nor_o yet_o that_o we_o soothe_v prince_n when_o they_o go_v about_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n covetouslie_o or_o ambitious_o much_o less_o to_o encourage_v they_o thereunto_o by_o flattery_n but_o if_o by_o dissuade_v from_o unjust_a and_o unnecessary_a war_n we_o shall_v nothing_o prevail_v yet_o at_o the_o leastwise_o let_v we_o keep_v our_o own_o conscience_n safe_a and_o sound_a for_o even_o as_o the_o beniamite_n with_o their_o fornicator_n and_o the_o trojan_n with_o their_o adulterous_a paris_n be_v punish_v together_o so_o in_o a_o manner_n all_o mortal_a man_n be_v wont_v miserable_o to_o be_v punish_v with_o they_o with_o who_o they_o have_v commit_v sin_n undoubted_o prince_n be_v man_n and_o all_o man_n general_o which_o bear_v rule_v in_o any_o place_n aught_o to_o look_v into_o these_o glass_n namely_o that_o they_o consider_v what_o and_o how_o great_a calamity_n be_v bring_v by_o unnecessary_a war_n stir_v up_o either_o rash_o or_o covetouslie_o or_o uniustlie_o and_o for_o that_o cause_n may_v after_o some_o manner_n prefer_v peace_n before_o war_n this_o peace_n which_o both_o god_n and_o man_n make_v such_o a_o account_n of_o joas_n be_v destitute_a of_o 20._o in_o 2._o king_n 12._o ver_fw-la 20._o can_v not_o choose_v have_v lose_v so_o great_a and_o notable_a a_o good_a thing_n but_o judge_v himself_o to_o be_v miserable_a and_o unhappy_a and_o herein_o be_v that_o misery_n the_o great_a because_o in_o stead_n of_o that_o good_a thing_n lose_v he_o receive_v a_o very_a great_a &_o gréevous_a evil_a for_o war_n be_v give_v in_o the_o stead_n of_o peace_n may_v take_v away_o all_o the_o good_a thing_n that_o be_v get_v war_n the_o discommodity_n of_o war_n because_o thereby_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o all_o religion_n vanish_v away_o good_a law_n and_o custom_n be_v abolish_v good_a manner_n be_v corrupt_v art_n be_v overwhelm_v by_o oblivion_n city_n and_o town_n be_v overthrow_v the_o field_n which_o be_v husband_v with_o great_a charge_n and_o labour_n be_v destroy_v treasure_n be_v forcible_o take_v away_o &_o unmeasurablie_o spend_v man_n be_v slay_v or_o bring_v into_o servitude_n woman_n be_v defile_v or_o else_o enter_v into_o the_o yoke_n of_o bondage_n or_o else_o have_v both_o evil_n do_v unto_o they_o but_o what_o evil_n war_n may_v bring_v with_o it_o the_o poet_n have_v represent_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o attribute_v unto_o mars_n and_o bellona_n for_o they_o call_v they_o both_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v as_o servius_n interprete_v common_a god_n or_o else_o as_o it_o may_v aswell_o be_v expound_v unquiet_a or_o dissolute_a that_o be_v loose_v and_o unbridled_a from_o all_o bond_n of_o religion_n right_a shamefastness_n and_o law_n since_o in_o war_n man_n think_v that_o whatsoever_o they_o lust_n be_v lawful_a doubtless_o they_o call_v he_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v féerce_a or_o violent_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d a_o rejoicer_n in_o blood_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o destruction_n of_o mankind_n that_o bellona_n his_o sister_n and_o spouse_n be_v in_o like_a manner_n delight_v with_o the_o effusion_n of_o man_n blood_n it_o be_v prove_v in_o that_o tertullian_n in_o apologetico_fw-la write_v that_o his_o priest_n lance_v themselves_o with_o knife_n and_o with_o their_o own_o blood_n accustom_v to_o pacify_v he_o all_o which_o thing_n teach_v that_o war_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a forge_n of_o all_o evil_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o most_o cruel_a sort_n of_o punishment_n wherewith_o god_n punish_v the_o wicked_a 14._o in_o 2._o king_n 14._o 23_o moreover_o war_n when_o it_o be_v once_o take_v in_o hand_n require_v infinite_a courage_n power_n and_o charge_n for_o the_o maintenance_n thereof_o otherwise_o all_o the_o end_n thereof_o depend_v of_o the_o will_n of_o the_o conqueror_n for_o which_o cause_n before_o it_o be_v take_v in_o hand_n there_o must_v be_v a_o consideration_n have_v of_o all_o these_o thing_n and_o in_o any_o wise_a consider_v as_o the_o lord_n have_v persuade_v in_o the_o gospel_n whether_o our_o power_n be_v equal_a with_o the_o power_n of_o our_o enemy_n 11._o mat._n 12._o 29_o &_o luk._n 11._o which_o be_v so_o 9_o 2._o king_n 14._o 9_o joas_n take_v a_o argument_n as_o it_o be_v from_o the_o less_o and_o more_o easy_a affair_n unto_o the_o great_a and_o more_o difficult_a to_o this_o effect_n to_o wit_n that_o if_o amazias_n may_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v equal_a no_o not_o in_o join_v matrimony_n with_o his_o child_n much_o less_o he_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o sustain_v war_n begin_v against_o he_o the_o thing_n here_o be_v compare_v one_o with_o a_o other_o than_o he_o compare_v together_o the_o evente_n themselves_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o thistle_n be_v tread_v down_o by_o a_o beast_n that_o pass_v by_o and_o this_o comparison_n be_v very_o apt_a for_o the_o purpose_n see_v in_o this_o beast_n be_v notable_o represent_v soldier_n army_n weapon_n instrument_n and_o ordinance_n of_o war_n and_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v wont_v to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o war_n beast_n war_n compare_v to_o a_o beast_n for_o even_o as_o a_o beast_n be_v by_o no_o reason_n but_o by_o a_o rash_a violence_n carry_v to_o every_o thing_n that_o it_o méete_v and_o as_o neither_o a_o mind_n nor_o reason_n but_o thirst_n hunger_n anger_n and_o lust_n be_v his_o guide_n so_o the_o enemy_n dart_n ordinance_n and_o instrument_n of_o war_n be_v not_o by_o their_o own_o proper_a motion_n but_o by_o a_o certain_a motion_n of_o a_o other_o stir_v up_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o all_o man_n yea_o and_o the_o soldier_n themselves_o according_a as_o they_o be_v a_o lawless_a multitude_n and_o at_o large_a from_o the_o bond_n of_o discipline_n they_o be_v become_v dissolute_a and_o unrulie_a in_o the_o household_n of_o mars_n be_v lead_v much_o rather_o by_o wrath_n lust_n covetousness_n and_o other_o affection_n than_o by_o any_o right_a and_o reason_n here_o now_o do_v i_o end_v but_o yet_o so_o end_n in_o 2._o sa._n 2._o at_o the_o end_n as_o that_o which_o we_o shall_v speak_v afterward_o when_o we_o entreat_v of_o the_o battle_n of_o cupple_v the_o same_o will_v i_o here_o make_v mention_n of_o to_o wit_n that_o we_o must_v call_v to_o mind_n that_o we_o be_v to_o war_n with_o the_o devil_n in_o which_o war_n there_o never_o ought_v any_o truce_n to_o be_v make_v for_o he_o go_v always_o about_o roar_a and_o seek_v who_o he_o may_v devour_v whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o godly_a to_o have_v peace_n with_o the_o ungodlie_a 24_o this_o question_n be_v now_o to_o be_v discuss_v and_o define_v 17._o in_o jud._n 4._o 17._o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o godly_a man_n to_o make_v peace_n and_o to_o keep_v it_o with_o the_o ungodlie_a and_o i_o think_v we_o may_v say_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a especial_o if_o it_o be_v conclude_v for_o the_o peaceable_a defend_n and_o keep_v of_o the_o bound_n and_o border_n on_o either_o side_n paul_n say_v as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o you_o 18._o ro._n 22._o 18._o have_v peace_n with_o all_o man_n so_o do_v the_o most_o christian_a prince_n with_o the_o barbarous_a infidel_n in_o make_v peace_n sometime_o with_o they_o so_o jacob_n in_o the_o old_a time_n make_v a_o league_n with_o laban_n so_o also_o do_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n with_o their_o other_o neighbour_n except_v the_o seven_o nation_n for_o god_n command_v they_o not_o to_o make_v war_n with_o all_o those_o nation_n that_o dwell_v about_o they_o but_o if_o thou_o will_v demand_v whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o godly_a when_o they_o take_v a_o common_a expedition_n in_o hand_n to_o join_v their_o army_n and_o power_n
12_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o father_n which_o do_v eat_v manna_n in_o the_o wilderness_n be_v dead_a this_o he_o mean_v touch_v they_o which_o do_v unworthilie_o eat_v the_o same_o proposition_n 13_o among_o the_o father_n which_o do_v eat_v manna_n in_o the_o desert_n some_o of_o they_o which_o do_v spiritual_o and_o worthy_o eat_v be_v not_o dead_a everlastinglie_o proposition_n 14_o manna_n which_o be_v a_o outward_a meat_n can_v not_o give_v eternal_a life_n but_o in_o respect_n that_o it_o have_v christ_n join_v therewith_o proposition_n 15_o we_o must_v beware_v that_o we_o attribute_v not_o unto_o element_n or_o sign_n be_v consider_v apart_o from_o christ_n those_o thing_n which_o agree_v to_o christ_n himself_o but_o when_o as_o well_o christ_n as_o the_o sign_n be_v receive_v joint_o together_o then_o be_v the_o property_n communicate_v probable_a proposition_n 1_o when_o the_o people_n be_v command_v by_o moses_n &_o aaron_n to_o come_v unto_o the_o lord_n i_o understand_v it_o not_o to_o be_v unto_o the_o cloud_n but_o unto_o the_o holy_a assembly_n proposition_n 2_o quail_n be_v therefore_o give_v in_o the_o evening_n because_o in_o the_o day_n time_n they_o fly_v over_o the_o sea_n and_o be_v accustom_v at_o the_o evening_n tide_v to_o light_n on_o the_o shore_n and_o manna_n be_v command_v to_o be_v eat_v in_o the_o morning_n when_o it_o come_v down_o with_o the_o dew_n proposition_n 3_o when_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n have_v herd_n and_o flock_n of_o cattle_n they_o desire_v flesh_n either_o because_o their_o beast_n will_v not_o have_v suffice_v so_o great_a a_o multitude_n or_o else_o because_o they_o desire_v delicate_a and_o dainty_a flesh_n proposition_n 4_o manna_n mention_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v like_a unto_o that_o which_o the_o arabian_a physician_n do_v use_v but_o not_o to_o that_o which_o galen_n and_o the_o greek_a physician_n call_v manna_n proposition_n 5_o since_o god_n describe_v to_o every_o particular_a man_n a_o certain_a measure_n of_o gather_v manna_n he_o show_v that_o in_o policy_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o great_a inequality_n of_o live_v proposition_n out_o of_o the_o xvij_o and_o xviij_o chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la necessary_a proposition_n 1_o have_v be_v not_o forbid_v unto_o christian_n so_o they_o be_v take_v in_o hand_n for_o a_o just_a cause_n and_o by_o they_o which_o have_v the_o right_n of_o the_o sword_n proposition_n 2_o a_o magistrate_n be_v a_o public_a power_n institute_v by_o god_n to_o help_v the_o good_a and_o punish_v she_o evil_a by_o distribute_v punishment_n and_o reward_n as_o the_o law_n do_v appoint_v proposition_n 3_o war_n must_v not_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v make_v that_o when_o victory_n be_v get_v the_o subject_n shall_v live_v in_o idleness_n or_o give_v themselves_o to_o pleasure_n but_o to_o advance_v and_o restore_v religion_n and_o civil_a discipline_n proposition_n 4_o in_o the_o make_n of_o war_n albeit_o that_o we_o be_v principal_o to_o put_v our_o trust_n in_o god_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o mean_n and_o way_n agreeable_a to_o the_o art_n of_o war_n to_o be_v contemn_v proposition_n 5_o they_o which_o do_v war_n in_o the_o camp_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o people_n although_o of_o the_o whole_a people_n they_o must_v be_v assist_v by_o prayer_n yet_o do_v this_o special_o belong_v unto_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n who_o duty_n of_o calling_n be_v not_o to_o fight_v with_o weapon_n but_o with_o prayer_n proposition_n 6_o although_o there_o be_v a_o convenient_a secret_a place_n for_o prayer_n yet_o must_v not_o the_o holy_a assembly_n of_o the_o church_n under_o that_o pretence_n be_v omit_v for_o the_o prayer_n be_v most_o effectual_a which_o procee_v from_o many_o join_v together_o proposition_n 7_o when_o god_n command_v that_o victory_n obtain_v shall_v be_v write_v even_o so_o in_o like_a sort_n he_o command_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v read_v even_o as_o when_o he_o command_v that_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v preach_v he_o will_v that_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v hear_v proposition_n 8_o it_o be_v lawful_a not_o only_o to_o give_v unto_o god_n sign_n of_o reverence_n as_o to_o uncover_v the_o head_n to_o bow_v the_o body_n and_o such_o like_a but_o also_o to_o those_o man_n which_o excel_v in_o public_a authority_n holiness_n doctrine_n or_o excellent_a gift_n of_o god_n reserve_v nevertheless_o a_o difference_n of_o the_o honour_n due_a to_o god_n and_o to_o man_n proposition_n 9_o it_o be_v no_o sound_a argument_n to_o say_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o give_v these_o sign_n of_o reverence_n unto_o noble_a man_n therefore_o also_o unto_o image_n &_o dead_a saint_n proposition_n 10_o they_o which_o contend_v in_o judgement_n ought_v so_o to_o settle_v their_o mind_n as_o to_o inquire_v of_o judge_n the_o will_n of_o god_n take_v out_o of_o the_o law_n and_o to_o rest_v therein_o when_o they_o hear_v the_o same_o proposition_n 11_o judge_n likewise_o since_o they_o be_v minister_n of_o law_n shall_v so_o behave_v themselves_o as_o though_o they_o be_v to_o give_v answer_n concern_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o not_o according_a to_o their_o own_o affection_n proposition_n 12_o the_o high_a sort_n in_o the_o church_n and_o commonweal_n do_v not_o always_o see_v the_o better_a thing_n whereof_o it_o come_v that_o in_o more_o difficult_a cause_n man_n shall_v also_o ask_v counsel_n of_o the_o mean_a sort_n proposition_n 13_o christian_a man_n ought_v not_o to_o neglect_v those_o profitable_a and_o sound_a thing_n which_o be_v teach_v of_o the_o ethnic_a author_n since_o they_o procee_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proposition_n 14_o it_o be_v not_o profitable_a for_o the_o commonweal_n or_o the_o church_n that_o one_o by_o himself_o shall_v take_v all_o office_n upon_o he_o probable_a proposition_n 1_o amaleck_n be_v the_o first_o enemy_n that_o come_v out_o against_o israel_n because_o he_o be_v of_o the_o posterity_n of_o esau_n and_o fear_v least_o the_o israelite_n will_v challenge_v to_o themselves_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o first_o birthright_n proposition_n 2_o moses_n will_v pray_v upon_o the_o mountain_n his_o hand_n be_v lift_v up_o with_o the_o rod_n that_o he_o may_v be_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o people_n while_o they_o fight_v and_o to_o be_v in_o the_o stead_n of_o a_o ensign_n at_o who_o sight_n they_o may_v call_v to_o mind_n how_o many_o and_o great_a benefit_n they_o have_v before_o time_n obtain_v by_o he_o and_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o rod_n and_o so_o their_o faith_n to_o be_v make_v the_o strong_a proposition_n 3_o hand_n lift_v up_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o earnest_a prayer_n proposition_n 4_o the_o lift_n up_o of_o hand_n do_v well_o agree_v with_o prayer_n as_o who_o shall_v say_v the_o body_n be_v draw_v thither_o that_o be_v to_o wit_n into_o heaven_n whither_o the_o mind_n be_v carry_v and_o by_o a_o outward_a sign_n be_v show_v that_o we_o do_v desire_n help_v of_o our_o father_n out_o of_o heaven_n proposition_n out_o of_o the_o xviij_o and_o nineteeen_o chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la necessary_a proposition_n 1_o it_o be_v not_o profitable_a in_o a_o commonweal_n that_o one_o shall_v bear_v rule_n altogether_o but_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o more_o shall_v govern_v the_o same_o proposition_n 2_o kingdom_n and_o magistrate_n as_o they_o be_v ordain_v by_o god_n so_o be_v they_o in_o such_o wise_a preserve_v of_o he_o as_o they_o can_v be_v so_o great_o confound_v and_o corrupt_v by_o the_o wicked_a which_o invade_v they_o and_o rule_v they_o as_o there_o shall_v remain_v no_o good_a thing_n in_o they_o proposition_n 3_o this_o be_v a_o strong_a argument_n god_n make_v law_n therefore_o he_o will_v also_o have_v magistrate_n proposition_n 4_o we_o ought_v to_o abstain_v as_o much_o as_o we_o can_v from_o contention_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o forbid_v we_o but_o that_o we_o may_v sometime_o try_v our_o cause_n by_o law_n proposition_n 5_o no_o godly_a man_n ought_v as_o touch_v himself_o to_o refuse_v the_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n if_o he_o can_v obtain_v the_o same_o proposition_n 6_o it_o be_v a_o good_a provocation_n for_o a_o man_n to_o receive_v the_o law_n and_o to_o obey_v the_o same_o to_o be_v persuade_v that_o god_n do_v so_o by_o his_o providence_n rule_v humane_a thing_n as_o he_o do_v good_a to_o they_o that_o obey_v he_o and_o punish_v they_o that_o be_v disobedient_a proposition_n 7_o the_o promise_n which_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v first_o of_o all_o place_n in_o christ_n and_o afterward_o they_o be_v derive_v through_o he_o unto_o the_o saint_n proposition_n 8_o god_n be_v infinite_a do_v occupy_v all_o thing_n yet_o nevertheless_o he_o be_v say_v to_o come_v or_o descend_v to_o any_o place_n when_o he_o declare_v himself_o there_o after_o a_o
2_o 464_o a_o ae._n aer_fw-la diverse_a region_n of_o the_o aer_fw-la 3_o 371_o ab_fw-la quiet_o in_o the_o night_n than_o in_o the_o day_n and_o why_o 1_n 34_o b_o how_o for_o our_o sake_n it_o be_v become_v unwholesome_a 2_o 247_o b_o the_o word_n heaven_n take_v for_o it_o 3_o 371_o b_o it_o be_v no_o place_n for_o god_n saint_n and_o why_o 3_o 371_o b_o af._n affect_v what_o a_o affect_n be_v both_o in_o man_n and_o other_o live_v creature_n 2_o 405_o b_o affect_v how_o and_o by_o what_o mean_v the_o affect_v be_v govern_v 2_o 408_o b_o whether_o they_o be_v voluntary_a or_o not_o voluntary_a 2_o 281_o a_o the_o manichy_n affirm_v that_o god_n create_v they_o evil_n 2_o 258_o b_o some_z be_v both_o honest_a and_o profitable_a 2_o 408_o a_o two_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v touch_v they_o that_o follow_v feel_v 2_o 406_o b_o the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o they_o what_o it_o be_v 2_o 407_o a_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o predicament_n of_o quality_n 2_o 411_o a_o compare_v to_o sinew_n and_o how_o 2_o 408_o a_o why_o they_o be_v in_o some_o more_o feeble_a and_o in_o some_o more_o vehement_a 2_o 407_o a_o their_o nature_n must_v be_v distinguish_v by_o their_o use_n 2_o 410_o b_o whether_o they_o be_v to_o be_v reckon_v among_o evil_a or_o good_a thing_n 2_o 411_o b_o in_o all_o though_o never_o so_o bad_a there_o be_v something_o good_a 2_o 409_o a_o the_o evil_a be_v repugnant_a to_o right_a reason_n 2_o 408_o a_o which_o do_v spring_n from_o the_o cogitation_n 2_o 405_o b_o how_o they_o be_v praise_v and_o dispraise_v and_o contrariwise_o 2_o 412_o a_o attribute_v even_o unto_o god_n himself_o and_o why_o 2_o 411_o b_o whether_o they_o be_v opinion_n as_o the_o stoic_n think_v two_o 407_o b_o of_o some_o which_o follow_v knowledge_n and_o of_o their_o effect_n 2_o 411_o a_o they_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o that_o he_o require_v they_o of_o us._n two_o 408_o a_o how_o rhetoritian_n frame_v themselves_o in_o the_o move_n of_o they_o 2_o 410b_n which_o do_v follow_v touch_v 2_o 405_o b_o whether_o all_o be_v to_o be_v condemn_v as_o evil_n 2_o 407_o b_o whether_o they_o be_v violent_a motion_n of_o the_o heart_n 2_o 407_o a_o whence_o it_o come_v that_o there_o be_v a_o dissent_v of_o they_o from_o right_a reason_n two_o 408_o b_o they_o be_v natural_o good_a but_o accidental_o evil_a 2_o 408_o b_o 409_o a_o three_o thing_n to_o be_v note_v in_o move_v they_o 2_o 410_o b_o in_o who_o the_o moderate_a sort_n though_o seem_v virtuous_a be_v sin_n 2_o 408_o b_o some_o simple_a and_o some_o compound_v 2_o 405_o b_o 406_o a_o after_o what_o order_n the_o will_n rule_v they_o and_o whether_o they_o be_v move_v against_o the_o will_n 2_o 406_o b_o how_o the_o natural_a sort_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o heart_n 2_o 406_o b_o of_o tower_n sort_n of_o man_n in_o who_o they_o be_v contrary_a 2_o 409_o a_o the_o organ_n or_o place_n of_o they_o what_o they_o be_v 2_o 406_o a_o 409_o ab_fw-la of_o four_o which_o have_v their_o original_n from_o grief_n 2_o 411_o ab_fw-la what_o the_o holy_a scripture_n determine_v of_o they_o in_o general_n 2_o 411_o b_o affection_n after_o what_o affection_n tear_n do_v follow_v 3_o 246_o a_o in_o who_o the_o true_a for_o do_v most_o abound_v 3_o 298_o b_o they_o be_v sin_n say_v augustine_n after_o baptism_n 2_o 217_o b_o of_o which_o god_n will_v and_o will_v not_o have_v we_o void_a 3_o 179_o a_o 186_o a_o what_o they_o of_o the_o member_n be_v 3_o 104_o a_o contrary_a in_o one_o will_n of_o the_o godly_a at_o once_o 2_o 400_o b_o 401_o a_o 3_o 278_o b_o the_o wicked_a abuse_n the_o good_a natural_a sort_n 2_o 268_o a_o the_o stoike_v endeavour_v to_o take_v away_o they_o quite_o from_o man_n 3_o 296_o b_o a_o distinction_n of_o they_o and_o of_o passion_n 3_o 359_o a_o which_o augustine_n call_v vice_n 1_n 1_o b_o it_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o evil_a one_o as_o pighuis_n do_v 2_o 217_o ab_fw-la of_o the_o mind_n communicate_v by_o the_o parent_n unto_o their_o child_n the_o schoolman_n confute_v 2_o 241_o a_o see_v evil_a one_o shall_v be_v mortify_v in_o we_o they_o be_v sin_n 2_o 217_o b_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o bless_a endue_v with_o felicity_n be_v not_o void_a of_o they_o 2_o 249_o a_o whether_o the_o saint_n be_v inferior_a to_o the_o ethnik_n in_o repress_v of_o they_o 3_o 296_o a_o the_o scripture_n commend_v they_o unto_o us._n 3_o 297_o ab_fw-la how_o they_o fall_v in_o god_n himself_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o felicity_n 2_o 249_o ab_fw-la 3_o 296_o b_o 1_n 109_o ab_fw-la how_o they_o be_v in_o christ_n since_o his_o soul_n be_v bless_v 3_o 297_o b_o how_o hylarie_n speak_v of_o the_o same_o in_o christ_n 3_o 297b_n why_o christ_n call_v they_o his_o will_n 3_o 298_o b_o the_o difference_n between_o christ_n and_o we_o 3_o 298_o a_o the_o bless_a angel_n shall_v not_o be_v utter_o rid_v of_o they_o all_o in_o their_o felicity_n 2_o 249_o a_o affliction_n affliction_n set_v forth_o by_o a_o artificial_a compare_v of_o word_n together_o 3_o 281a_o the_o doctrine_n of_o resurrection_n comfortable_a therein_o 3_o 341_o b_o affliction_n the_o difficulty_n of_o suffer_a affliction_n 3_o 276_o a_o of_o what_o happy_a thing_n to_o come_v they_o be_v token_n 3_o 274_o a_o god_n use_v they_o as_o medicine_n and_o to_o who_o they_o be_v not_o proper_o punishment_n 2_o 366_o ab_fw-la cause_n why_o we_o shall_v patient_o suffer_v they_o 3_o 275_o b_o 276_o a_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o same_o 3_o 273_o ab_fw-la 274_o ab_fw-la 276_o ab_fw-la 282_o ab_fw-la 3_o 240_o b_o what_o voluntary_a one_o belong_v not_o to_o christ_n cross_n 3_o 274_o a_o cause_n why_o god_n will_v lay_v they_o upon_o he_o 3_o 273_o a_o the_o end_n why_o god_n send_v they_o 3_o 129_o b_o 2_o 235_o a_o 637_o ab_fw-la how_o the_o godly_a both_o sigh_n and_o rejoice_v in_o they_o 3_o 278_o ab_fw-la the_o diverse_a effect_n of_o they_o in_o the_o good_a and_o the_o bad_a 3_o 278_o b_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o godly_a therein_o 3_o 85_o a_o 279_o b_o 351_o b_o 352_o a_o 250_o b_o 348_o ab_fw-la strive_v with_o they_o signify_v by_o the_o shrink_n of_o jacobs_n sinewe_n in_o wrestle_v 3_o 283_o b_o why_o man_n think_v they_o to_o be_v token_n of_o god_n wrath_n 3_o 280_o b_o 281_o ab_fw-la why_o the_o ethnik_n give_v over_o therein_o and_o the_o saint_n persevere_v 3_o 279_o b_o of_o the_o jew_n under_o nabuchadnezar_n and_o antiochus_n 3_o 352_o b_o 353_o a_o we_o proceed_v from_o sin_n 3_o 129_o b_o how_o to_o behave_v ourselves_o therein_o 2_o 620_o ab_fw-la christ_n our_o forerunner_n in_o the_o same_o 2_o 620_o a_o 617_o b_o how_o we_o may_v wish_v the_o temporal_a unto_o sinner_n 2_o 399_o a_o how_o they_o though_o never_o so_o grievous_a be_v extenuate_v 3_o 276_o b_o of_o the_o godly_a be_v not_o punishment_n 3_o 237_o a_o whether_o they_o do_v natural_o work_v patience_n 3_o 279_o a_o how_o god_n assi_v we_o in_o the_o same_o 3_o 283ab_n ¶_o look_v punishment_n ag._n age_n a_o division_n of_o man_n age_n into_o four_o degree_n 1_n 127_o b_o our_o age_n prove_v to_o be_v the_o last_o age_n 3_o 341_o a_o the_o last_o hour_n speak_v of_o by_o john_n 3_o 385_o b_o 386_o a_o the_o common_a stature_n of_o man_n in_o this_o age._n 1_o 130_o b_o what_o some_o have_v think_v touch_v the_o age_n of_o they_o that_o shall_v rise_v again_o 3_o 359_o b_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n be_v a_o remedy_n against_o old_a age._n 2_o 246_o b_o whether_o old_a age_n be_v to_o be_v forbid_v or_o keep_v from_o marriage_n 2_o 467_o ab_fw-la al._n alcoran_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o turkish_a alcoran_n touch_v resurrection_n 3_o 357_o b_o 358_o a_o all._n this_o general_a word_n all_n be_v to_o be_v restrain_v 3_o 26_o b_o 27_o a_o 31._o 32._o 132_o b_o 133_o a_o 397_o b_o 398_o a_o 389_o a.b_fw-la 1_n 193_o b_o allegory_n a_o allegory_n of_o building_n and_o fire_n 3_o 239._o 240._o 241._o 242_o allegory_n allegory_n be_v reject_v for_o that_o they_o have_v no_o certainty_n 2_o 363_o b_o nothing_o can_v be_v certain_o gather_v by_o they_o 3_o 239_o ab_fw-la with_o what_o condition_n they_o be_v to_o be_v admit_v 3_o 170_o a_o alm_n redeem_v thy_o sin_n with_o alm_n expound_v 3_o 237_o a_o 114_o b_o why_o paul_n choose_v for_o alm_n the_o day_n of_o the_o holy_a congregation_n 2_o 376_o a_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n live_v thereupon_o 4_o 29_o ab_fw-la to_o who_o the_o distribution_n thereof_o in_o the_o church_n pertain_v 4_o 8_o a_o it_o must_v
1_n 98_o b_o in_o thing_n indifferent_a and_o not_o much_o weighty_a it_o may_v be_v retain_v as_o how_o 1_n 97_o b_o many_o lead_v thereby_o to_o do_v good_a and_o whether_o the_o same_o be_v certain_a 1_n 52_o b_o a_o custom_n of_o tthe_a soldier_n in_o a_o case_n of_o offence_n 2_o 365_o a_o of_o what_o thing_n payinge_n of_o custom_n consist_v 4_o 239_o b_o curse_n of_o the_o vow_n cherem_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o curse_n &_o whereto_o apply_v 2_o 403_o ab_fw-la 404_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o curse_n tyrant_n 2_o 405_o a_o whether_o no_o man_n must_v be_v punish_v with_o a_o curse_n 59_o b_o how_o all_o creature_n be_v subject_a thereunto_o for_o man_n sake_n 2_o 251_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a always_o to_o curse_n enemy_n 1_n 402_o a_o why_o a_o priest_n of_o athens_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v move_v to_o curse_n alcibiades_n 2_o 398_o b_o the_o curse_n of_o cham_n transfer_v to_o chanaan_n his_o son_n 2_o 363_o b_o 366_o a_o if_o we_o may_v not_o curse_v our_o enemy_n much_o less_o other_o 2_o 401_o b_o whether_o in_o god_n cause_n or_o our_o own_o cause_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o to_o curse_n 2_o 398_o b_o curse_n from_o what_o affection_n the_o curse_n of_o the_o godly_a do_v proceed_v as_o say_v gregory_n 2_o 399_o b_o curse_n in_o the_o prophet_n be_v prophecy_n 2_o 397_o b_o curse_v the_o auncientnesse_n of_o curse_v and_o who_o first_o use_v the_o same_o 2_o 397_o a_o example_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o such_o as_o use_v it_o 2_o 399_o b_o augustine_n opinion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a 2_o 397b_n admonition_n touch_v the_o use_n thereof_o 2_o 40â_n a_o use_v among_o the_o ethnike_n example_n 2_o 397_o b_o dae_n daemon_n what_o daemon_n be_v and_o whereof_o they_o take_v their_o name_n 1_n 77_o a_o they_o have_v no_o body_n but_o be_v spirit_n only_o prove_v 1_n 81_o a_o they_o signify_v spirit_n both_o good_a and_o bad_a 1_n 77_o a_o some_o will_v that_o they_o be_v in_o this_o life_n and_o why_o 1_n 78_o a_o of_o some_o which_o think_v that_o soul_n become_v daemon_n 1._o 77_o a_o of_o some_o that_o say_v they_o be_v spirit_n in_o comparison_n of_o we_o &_o how_o 1_n 81_o a_o of_o some_o which_o think_v there_o be_v none_o 1_o 77_o a_o of_o who_o they_o which_v walk_v about_o the_o earth_n to_o our_o great_a harm_n be_v beget_v as_o say_v lactantius_n and_o other_o â_o 128_o b_o 129_o a_o ¶_o look_n spirit_n dam_fw-la damnation_n the_o cause_n of_o our_o damnation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v for_o in_o god_n 3_o 20_o b_o it_o extend_v even_o to_o very_a infant_n 3_o 96_o b_o original_a sin_n go_v before_o every_o man_n birth_n &_o damnation_n 3_o 24_o b_o how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o some_o christian_n be_v judge_v to_o damnation_n and_o some_o to_o salvation_n 2_o 626_o b_o daniel_n daniel_n dissemble_v not_o the_o worship_v of_o nabuchadnezars_n image_n 2_o 320_o a_o danger_n all_o thing_n that_o bring_v danger_n through_o our_o own_o default_n must_v not_o be_v shun_v 3_o 177_o a_o dance_v what_o the_o ethnike_v think_v of_o wanton_a dance_a 2_o 906_o b_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o same_o 2_o 505_o b_o of_o man_n and_o woman_n together_o be_v evil_a 2_o 502_o b_o the_o hurt_n thereof_o 2_o 514_o b_o or_o it_o own_o nature_n not_o evil_a two_o 50â_n ab_fw-la against_o their_o reason_n which_o maintain_v it_o 2_o 504_o b_o 505_o a_o diverse_a opinion_n touch_v the_o original_a thereof_o 2_o 503_o b_o when_o it_o be_v institute_v 2_o 504_o a_o honest_a dance_a use_v and_o therefore_o lawful_a 2_o 505_o ab_fw-la in_o old_a time_n not_o against_o religion_n 2_o 503_o b_o use_v of_o christian_n in_o syria_n on_o holy_a day_n 2_o 506_o b_o in_o armour_n and_o why_o it_o be_v ordain_v two_o 503_o b_o 504a_o of_o the_o mimicall_a dance_a whereat_o demetrius_n woonder_v 2_o 504_o a_o the_o opinion_n of_o father_n and_o decree_n of_o counsel_n touch_v the_o lascivious_a kind_n of_o dance_a 2_o 505_o b_o 506_o a_o darkness_n whether_o darkness_n be_v make_v by_o god_n 3_o 370b_n 371_o a_o 1_n 188_o a_o how_o the_o sun_n after_o some_o manner_n may_v be_v lay_v to_o make_v it_o 1_n 181_o ab_fw-la david_n by_o who_o david_n rule_v the_o common_a weal_n 4_o 247b_n notable_a point_n for_o we_o to_o learn_v by_o his_o combat_n with_o goliath_n 3_o 284_o b_o 285_o a_o day_n how_o some_o understande_v the_o aduerbe_n hodie_fw-la today_o and_o of_o augustine_n interpretation_n thereof_o 1_n 73_o a_o diverslie_o take_v in_o respect_n of_o time_n 3_o 324_o b_o what_o paul_n understand_v by_o these_o word_n the_o day_n 3_o 240_o b_o it_o signify_v tryalâ_n 241_o a_o what_o and_o when_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n be_v 3_o 388_o b_o christ_n yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n how_o it_o be_v expound_v 3_o 325a_n day_n when_o day_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o year_n the_o scripture_n teach_v 3_o 324_o b_o 325_o a_o de._n deacon_n the_o office_n of_o deacon_n in_o the_o church_n 4_o 8_o a_o ¶_o look_v church_n &_o ministerâ_n dead_a the_o dead_a be_v partaker_n of_o the_o good_a and_o evil_a thing_n of_o this_o life_n and_o how_o 1_o 159_o b_o they_o know_v not_o what_o be_v do_v in_o this_o life_n 1_n 75_o ab_fw-la 3_o 320_o ab_fw-la appearing_n of_o they_o prove_v partly_o by_o reason_n and_o example_n 1_n 75_o ab_fw-la of_o pray_v for_o they_o speak_v to_o and_o fro_o 3_o 244b_v 245_o a_o 322_o b_o what_o arrius_n think_v of_o oblation_n for_o they_o 3_o 251_o b_o why_o bury_v of_o they_o must_v not_o be_v neglect_v 3_o 322a_o b_o how_o they_o be_v say_v to_o live_v unto_o god_n 3_o 338_o b_o 339_o ab_fw-la how_o be_v âust_z be_v affect_v towards_o they_o 3_o 244_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o mourn_v for_o they_o 3_o 315_o a_o 179a_n whether_o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o they_o to_o be_v bury_v 3_o 319_o b_o how_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v god_n both_o of_o live_v and_o dead_a 3_o 338_o b_o 339_o ab_fw-la why_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o they_o do_v sleep_n 3_o 326_o b_o how_o they_o praise_v the_o lord_n 3_o 367_o b_o whether_o their_o spirit_n wander_v up_o and_o down_o 3_o 326_o b_o the_o good_a thing_n of_o this_o life_n belong_v not_o to_o they_o &_o why_o 1_n 160_o a_o what_o we_o have_v to_o judge_v of_o apollonius_n thyancus_n his_o raise_n up_o of_o the_o dead_a maid_n 1_n 72_o b_o of_o a_o dead_a bishop_n that_o appear_v alive_a 1_n 75_o b_o the_o dead_a have_v be_v raise_v up_o and_o by_o who_o 3_o 336_o a_o 1_n 72_o b_o whether_o the_o first_o parent_n be_v dead_a straightway_o after_o sin_n 3_o 325_o a_o death_n death_n in_o it_o own_o nature_n be_v evil_a and_o why_o 2_o 391_o a_o therein_o be_v a_o feel_v of_o god_n wrath_n 2_o 247_o a_o sin_n and_o it_o be_v compare_v together_o as_o the_o cause_n and_o the_o effect_n 2_o 244_o a_o in_o what_o respect_n god_n make_v it_o not_o 3_o 44_o a_o 43_o a_o it_o come_v of_o the_o original_n of_o nature_n 2_o 216_o a_o two_o sort_n of_o life_n both_o which_o it_o take_v away_o 2_o 247_o b_o chrysostom_n similitude_n that_o our_o first_o parent_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o have_v sin_v be_v subject_a thereunto_o 2_o 247_o a_o bring_v in_o by_o sin_n can_v be_v allegoricallie_o understand_v as_o the_o pelagian_o say_v 2_o 246_o b_o how_o soon_o after_o sin_n have_v enter_v it_o take_v place_n 2_o 247_o a_o pighius_fw-la and_o other_o confute_v for_o say_v that_o it_o come_v unto_o man_n by_o nature_n 2_o 239_o a_o 247_o a_o it_o have_v no_o right_a where_o there_o be_v no_o sin_n 2_o 217_o a_o the_o pelagian_n and_o anabaptist_n say_v that_o it_o come_v not_o of_o sin_n but_o of_o natural_a cause_n 2_o 214_o a_o how_o and_o in_o what_o respect_v it_o be_v call_v a_o end_n 1_n 5_o a_o 580_o a_o three_o kind_n thereof_o appoint_v in_o god_n law_n for_o offender_n 2_o 414_o b_o how_o it_o be_v conquer_v since_o it_o strike_v all_o man_n still_o 3_o 318_o a_o see_v we_o be_v justify_v wherefore_o be_v we_o subject_a thereunto_o 3_o 315_o a_o death_n of_o the_o godly_a count_v but_o a_o sleep_n 3_o 348_o a_o how_o sleep_n be_v the_o image_n thereof_o 3_o 335_o b_o the_o power_n of_o the_o same_o be_v limit_v 2_o 636_o b_o in_o what_o sense_n it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v good_a 3_o 28_n b_o a_o necessary_a evil_n 3_o 316_o a_o why_o be_v evil_a it_o be_v wish_v as_o if_o it_o be_v good_a 2_o â91_n ab_fw-la the_o fruit_n or_o benefit_n that_o it_o bring_v 3_o 318_o b_o what_o detestable_a thing_n be_v and_o
fault_n 4_o 259_o b_o nemesis_n a_o definition_n of_o nemesis_n call_v of_o some_o indignation_n 2_o 413_o a_o a_o difference_n between_o it_o and_o cruelty_n 3_o 21_o b_o we_o must_v seldom_o give_v place_n thereto_o and_o why_o 2_o 413_o b_o the_o object_n of_o that_o affect_v 2_o 413_o b_o it_o be_v a_o mean_a between_o envy_n &_o mercy_n 2_o 413_o b_o the_o agreement_n &_o difference_n between_o mercy_n &_o nemesis_n 2_o 413_o b_o it_o be_v in_o the_o just_a &_o godly_a 2_o 413_o a_o ¶_o look_v affect_v ni._n night_n the_o night_n divide_v into_o four_o watch_n 3_o 256_o a_o ¶_o look_v watches_n nilus_n nilus_n thought_n to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o river_n of_o paradise_n 1_n 126_o a_o a_o very_a old_a ruier_n and_o of_o the_o uncerteine_a original_n thereof_o 1_n 126_o a_o nimbleness_n of_o the_o nimbleness_n of_o our_o body_n at_o our_o resurrection_n 3_o 359_o a_o ¶_o look_v resurrection_n no._n nobility_n wherein_o nobility_n consist_v 4_o 311_o b_o 312_o a_o 313a_o the_o lack_n thereof_o be_v no_o hindrance_n unto_o felicity_n 1_n 149_o a_o require_v thereto_o and_o why_o 1_n 148_o a_o in_o what_o estimation_n the_o people_n of_o god_n have_v their_o nobility_n 1_n 148_o b_o 4_o 312_o ab_fw-la argument_n against_o nobility_n by_o birth_n 4_o 312_o b_o 313_o a_o unto_o who_o christ_n nobility_n be_v communicate_v 4_o 313_o b_o number_n a_o number_n definite_a or_o certain_a put_v for_o a_o number_n indefinite_a or_o uncertein_a 3_o 358b_n 3â2b_fw-la 396_o b_o 2_o 237_o a_o of_o the_o number_n of_o seven_o and_o how_o the_o same_o comprise_v all_o former_a number_n 1_n 3_o a_o and_o betoken_v a_o complete_a number_n 2_o 362_o b_o number_n why_o error_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v commit_v in_o number_n 1_o 51_o b_o ob._n obedience_n obedience_n be_v the_o chief_a fruit_n of_o faith_n 1_o 70_o b_o in_o what_o respect_v it_o be_v to_o be_v do_v to_o prince_n 4_o 285_o a_o to_o god_n it_o be_v not_o condicionall_a but_o to_o man_n it_o be_v 2_o 342_o b_o why_o it_o be_v better_a than_o sacrifice_n 4_o 44_o ab_fw-la 45_o a_o of_o obedience_n to_o a_o wicked_a king_n 4_o 35_o b_o obedience_n of_o two_o sort_n 3_o 175_o b_o whether_o we_o ought_v by_o reward_n to_o be_v move_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o god_n 2_o 573_o a_o wherein_o the_o obedience_n of_o pope_n gregory_n to_o the_o emperor_n mauricius_n be_v blame_v 2_o 327_o a_o a_o example_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o magistrate_n in_o the_o jew_n 4_o 226_o b_o how_o far_o forth_o it_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v of_o the_o inferior_a power_n to_o the_o superior_a power_n 2_o 326_o b_o proof_n that_o perfect_a obedience_n may_v be_v do_v unto_o god_n 2_o 562_o a_o by_o a_o obedience_n begin_v we_o obey_v god_n law_n 3_o 50_o a_o it_o be_v in_o the_o regenerate_a thereof_o read_v two_o 242_o a_o 562_o ab_fw-la 569_o a_o 570._o 3_o 47b_n 113._o 236_o b_o object_n of_o certainty_n as_o touch_v object_n and_o subject_n 3_o 84_o a_o in_o all_o art_n the_o object_n be_v before_o the_o science_n 4_o 246_o a_o how_o by_o object_n action_n be_v know_v 4_o 320_o b_o oblation_n three_o manner_n of_o use_n of_o the_o oblation_n of_o communicant_n 4_o 218._o what_o arrius_n think_v of_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a 3_o 251_o b_o ¶_o look_n offering_n and_o sacrifice_n oblivion_n plato_n opinion_n of_o oblivion_n and_o the_o hurt_n which_o it_o bring_v 1_n 53_o b_o ¶_o look_v forgetfulness_n oc._n occasion_n wherein_o cause_n and_o occasion_n do_v differ_v 2_o 516_o a_o 509_o b_o 510_o a_o two_o sort_n thereof_o the_o one_o give_v the_o other_o take_v 2_o 516_o a_o 1_o 185_o a_o occasion_n occasion_n be_v not_o remote_a cause_n but_o immediate_a which_o stir_v up_o our_o desire_n 1_n 196._o aeschylus_n the_o poet_n excuse_v in_o say_v that_o god_n if_o he_o will_v destroy_v and_o take_v away_o any_o give_v the_o cause_n and_o occasion_n 1_n 198_o a_o what_o the_o civil_a law_n determine_v touch_v they_o 2_o 515_o b_o 516_o a_o what_o great_a account_n god_n make_v of_o they_o 2_o 515b_fw-ge example_n of_o occasion_n of_o sin_v 1_o 185_o a_o how_o god_n offer_v such_o 1_n 184_o b_o 185_o a_o good_a thing_n unto_o the_o wicked_a be_v occasion_n of_o sin_v as_o how_o 1_n 185_o a_o of._n offend_v how_o to_o behave_v ourselves_o towards_o our_o brethren_n when_o they_o offend_v us._n 3_o 387_o a_o if_o thy_o eye_n offend_v thou_o etc._n etc._n expound_v 2_o 88_o a_o offender_n whether_o magistrate_n may_v let_v offender_n pass_v unpunished_a 4_o 248._o 249._o 250._o 251._o 252._o 353._o 254_o 255._o 256._o 257._o etc._n etc._n whether_o to_o be_v execute_v with_o death_n 4_o 291_o a_o release_v in_o the_o holy_a weak_a of_o easter_n 4_o 263_o b_o cause_n for_o the_o which_o they_o be_v not_o present_o to_o be_v execute_v 4_o 257_o b_o three_o kind_n of_o death_n appoint_v in_o god_n law_n for_o they_o 2_o 414._o try_v very_o strange_o in_o some_o place_n 4_o 309_o b_o how_o their_o repentance_n may_v be_v provide_v for_o 4_o 250_o b_o against_o what_o offender_n the_o church_n and_o civil_a power_n be_v to_o execute_v justice_n two_o 414ab_v offence_n what_o scandalum_fw-la or_o offence_n be_v 3_o 163_o a_o of_o two_o sort_n the_o one_o give_v the_o other_o take_v 2_o 516_o a_o 1_o 185_o a_o 3_o 163_o b_o of_o life_n &_o of_o doctrine_n 3_o 163_o a_o do_v against_o the_o weak_a three_o manner_n of_o way_n against_o christ_n 3_o 16âa_v in_o what_o crime_n the_o will_n be_v estââ¦med_v as_o the_o offence_n 2_o 385_o b_o 386_o a_o in_o what_o thing_n we_o must_v pass_v &_o not_o pass_v for_o offence_n 3_o 166_o b_o 167_o a_o howe_n christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o work_n of_o offence_n 3_o 163_o b_o offence_n what_o offence_n must_v be_v avoid_v 3_o 163_o b_o two_o 321_o a_o offence_n compare_v and_o their_o difference_n and_o more_o or_o less_o heynousnesse_n 2_o 553_o ab_fw-la offering_n what_o offering_n we_o must_v bring_v unto_o god_n 3_o 176_o a_o doove_n at_o the_o lord_n supper_n 4_o 19_o a_o free_a will_n offering_n of_o the_o jew_n 4_o 220_o b_o what_o be_v meet_v to_o be_v observe_v therein_o 4_o 215_o a_o ¶_o look_n sacrifice_n office_n what_o we_o must_v have_v respect_n unto_o in_o commit_v a_o office_n unto_o any_o man_n 3_o 20_o b_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o christian_a godly_a man_n to_o bear_v office_n 4_o 276_o b_o office_n what_o personal_a office_n be_v 4_o 34_o a_o for_o three_o cause_n man_n be_v lead_v to_o take_v office_n say_v plato_n 4_o 23_o ab_fw-la whether_o two_o office_n may_v be_v excute_v by_o one_o man_n 4_o 327_o b_o why_o not_o 4_o 286_o b_o omnes_n omen_n of_o forespeaking_a or_o foretell_v call_v omen_n 1_n 61a_o omen_n be_v so_o call_v as_o it_o be_v oreman_n say_v festus_n and_o why_o 1_n 62_o a_o ¶_o look_v foretell_v oi_o oil_n the_o ceremony_n of_o oil_n use_v in_o election_n what_o it_o signify_v 4_o 14_o a_o of_o heal_v the_o sick_a 3_o 211_o ab_fw-la papistical_a and_o of_o their_o unction_n 2_o 606_o a_o solemnity_n use_v at_o the_o make_v thereof_o 4_o 139_o a_o two_o sort_n of_o the_o same_o in_o their_o popish_a religion_n 4_o 15_o a_o add_v to_o baptism_n and_o why_o 4_o 127_o a_o the_o superstitious_a use_n thereof_o to_o sundry_a purpose_n 4_o 15_o b_o of_o the_o holy_a oil_n of_o s._n remigins_n 4_o 15_o a_o on._n one_o in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n one_o signify_v the_o first_o proof_n 2_o 375_o b_o 376._o â_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n these_o three_o be_v unto_o one_o make_v not_o for_o the_o arrian_n against_o the_o trinity_n 1_n 105_o b_o 106_o a_o only_a of_o the_o word_n only_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n &_o institution_n 3_o 154_o b_o 155_o a_o op._n opinion_n the_o nature_n of_o opinion_n 3_o 234_o b_o it_o be_v doubtful_a 3_o 57_o b_o the_o difference_n between_o it_o and_o faith_n 3_o 69_o b_o 2_o 296b_n what_o affect_n do_v accompany_v it_o 2_o 405_o b_o aristotle_n proof_n that_o it_o be_v of_o all_o kind_n of_o thing_n yea_o of_o thing_n eternal_a 2_o 296_o b_o wherein_o it_o and_o knowledge_n do_v differ_v 2._o 296_o a_o that_o no_o kind_n thereof_o be_v all_o one_o with_o choice_n two_o 297_o a_o define_v 2_o 296_o a_o it_o be_v a_o quality_n 2_o 297_o a_o neither_o evil_a nor_o good_a and_o why_o 2_o 296_o b_o 297_o a_o of_o what_o thing_n it_o be_v not_o neither_o have_v to_o do_v 2_o 296_o b_o a_o reason_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v choice_n and_o the_o same_o answer_v two_o 296_o b_o 297_o a_o no_o antiquity_n of_o opinion_n can_v prescribe_v against_o the_o truth_n 3_o 244_o a_o
sufficient_a to_o instruct_v the_o ignorant_a 2_o 355_o a_o the_o truth_n of_o they_o have_v a_o everlasting_a continuance_n 1_n 40_o a_o se._n secret_n we_o must_v reverence_v the_o secret_n of_o god_n and_o not_o carp_v at_o they_o example_n of_o cato_n 2_o 221_o a_o why_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o secret_n of_o salvation_n be_v hide_v from_o man_n furnish_v with_o art_n 1_n 3_o b_o sect_n diverse_a sect_n among_o the_o jew_n 3_o 336_o b_o 337_o a_o sect_n of_o schoolman_n diverse_a 4_o 50_o a_o security_n security_n define_v and_o whence_o it_o spring_v 3_o 68_o a_o two_o kind_n thereof_o and_o of_o their_o difference_n 3_o 67_o b_o a_o good_a and_o a_o bad_a 3_o 68_o b_o the_o effect_n thereof_o 3_o 88_o a_o 68_o a_o whereunto_o it_o be_v contrary_a 3_o 68_o a_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o impiety_n 3_o 6â_n a_o what_o be_v the_o true_a &_o laudable_a security_n 3_o 69_o b_o sedition_n sedition_n define_v 4_o 320_o a_o 322_o a_o how_o great_a a_o crime_n it_o be_v 4_o 322_o b_o 323_o a_o the_o kind_n thereof_o 4_o 320_o b_o the_o ground_n thereof_o 4_o 322_o b_o what_o noble_a thing_n it_o take_v away_o 4_o 320b_n 321_o a_o cause_n thereof_o 4_o 321_o b_o 322a_o christ_n and_o his_o faithful_a one_o charge_v therewith_o 4_o 319_o a_o the_o crymon_n of_o the_o word_n 4_o 320_o a_o whether_o all_o that_o contend_v therein_o must_v be_v accuse_v 4_o 323_o a_o the_o end_n thereof_o 4_o 322_o a_o those_o that_o strive_v against_o the_o magistrate_n be_v guilty_a thereof_o 4_o 323_o b_o severe_a punishment_n for_o it_o 4_o 322_o b_o 323_o a_o ¶_o look_v trouble_n selfelove_n selfelove_n a_o common_a disease_n and_o how_o it_o deceive_v man_n 1_o 144_o a_o sense_n of_o the_o sense_n compound_v and_o the_o sense_n divide_v 3_o 35_o ab_fw-la what_o affect_v do_v follow_v the_o sense_n of_o touch_v 2_o 405_o b_o two_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v touch_v the_o affect_n that_o follow_v the_o sense_n of_o feel_v 2_o 406_o b_o the_o scripture_n do_v often_o time_n feign_v sense_n &_o motion_n unto_o thing_n without_o life_n 2_o 251_o b_o sense_n of_o the_o illusion_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o how_o many_o way_n they_o may_v be_v deceive_v 1_n 88_o b_o 89_o a_o 114_o ab_fw-la the_o power_n of_o understanding_n can_v do_v nothing_o without_o they_o and_o the_o similitude_n that_o we_o contemplate_v 1_n 147_o ab_fw-la how_o they_o be_v destroy_v and_o preserve_v by_o their_o object_n 2_o 407_o a_o they_o may_v take_v pleasure_n though_o they_o have_v not_o be_v offend_v or_o remove_v from_o their_o natural_a state_n as_o how_o 1_n 137_o a_o of_o the_o mean_n whereby_o they_o work_v and_o how_o 1_n 137_o a_o they_o be_v the_o gross_a part_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o by_o it_o we_o communicate_v with_o beast_n 1_n 134_o b_o from_o whence_o the_o pleasure_n of_o they_o spring_v as_o plato_n think_v 1_n 135_o a_o of_o what_o thing_n they_o do_v judge_v and_o not_o judge_v 1_n 117_o a_o the_o sense_n of_o touch_v and_o taste_v be_v very_o near_a one_o another_o 2_o 412_o a_o galens_n opinion_n of_o grief_n and_o pleasure_n in_o they_o all_o and_o how_o 1_n 136_o b_o 137_o a_o they_o be_v not_o deceive_v in_o the_o eucharist_n as_o the_o papist_n say_v 1_o 114_o ab_fw-la the_o quickenesse_n of_o they_o at_o our_o resurrection_n 3_o 359_o b_o christ_n prove_v it_o by_o they_o 4_o 153_o b_o lie_v sense_n minister_v to_o the_o soul_n by_o the_o body_n 3_o 3â6_n b_o separation_n cause_n of_o our_o separation_n from_o the_o popish_a church_n 4_o 94_o ab_fw-la 95_o a_o 68_o 69._o 86._o 87._o 88_o 89._o 69_o ab_fw-la it_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o 4_o 90b_fw-ge whether_o the_o lewd_a life_n of_o minister_n be_v no_o cause_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n 4_o 85_o b_o a_o separation_n even_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n between_o the_o good_a and_o bad_a 4_o 89_o a_o what_o kind_n of_o separation_n be_v a_o confess_v of_o the_o evangelicall_a truth_n 4_o 88_o a_o whether_o any_o man_n have_v authority_n of_o himself_o to_o use_v separation_n from_o his_o neighbour_n 4_o 63_o a_o of_o separation_n from_o god_n &_o whether_o excommunication_n be_v a_o token_n thereof_o 4_o 60_o a_o ¶_o look_v excommunication_n sepulcher_n watch_n at_o dead_a man_n sepulcher_n to_o receive_v oracle_n from_o they_o 1_n 73_o b_o ¶_o look_v grave_n seraphim_n of_o seraphim_n the_o name_n of_o a_o angel_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o same_o 1_n 111_o b_o come_v fly_v unto_o esaie_n 1_n 113_o a_o ¶_o look_v cherubin_n &_o seraphin_n sermon_n how_o it_o come_v that_o at_o one_o very_a sermon_n part_n of_o the_o hearer_n believe_v and_o part_v not_o 3_o 141_o a_o sermon_n the_o diverse_a hear_n of_o sermon_n &_o that_o therein_o paul_n rule_n must_v be_v follow_v 1_n 22_o a_o of_o vain_a and_o trifle_a sermon_n 2_o 633_o a_o ¶_o look_v preach_v servant_n a_o servant_n define_v 4_o 316_o a_o the_o property_n and_o duty_n of_o a_o servant_n 3_o 162_o ab_fw-la servant_n how_o servant_n must_v be_v handle_v of_o their_o master_n 4_o 314_o b_o what_o the_o law_n of_o god_n decree_v for_o they_o in_o the_o jew_n time_n 4_o 316_o b_o how_o they_o be_v equal_a and_o unequal_a to_o their_o master_n 4_o 314_o b_o child_n and_o they_o compare_v 3_o 143._o whether_o we_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n 3_o 162_o ab_fw-la 163_o a_o a_o difference_n between_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o world_n 3_o 276_o b_o what_o kind_n of_o servant_n the_o father_n under_o the_o law_n be_v 2_o 595_o b_o service_n what_o be_v say_v too_o and_o fro_o of_o the_o service_n in_o the_o church_n in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n 3_o 309_o b_o 310._o 311._o 2_o 317_o b_o 318_o a_o the_o ancient_a church_n have_v it_o in_o the_o mothertoong_a 3_o 310_o b_o no_o strange_a tongue_n use_v therein_o of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a 3_o 311_o a_o of_o comeliness_n require_v therein_o 4_o 65_o b_o how_o defective_a we_o be_v therein_o be_v show_v by_o a_o proper_a analogy_n 3_o 162_o ab_fw-la solomon_n make_v a_o division_n thereof_o and_o of_o his_o punishment_n of_o like_a for_o like_v 2_o 324_o a_o how_o all_o creature_n do_v service_n unto_o the_o godly_a 2_o 251_o b_o 252_o a_o servitude_n servitude_n distinguish_v 4_o 316_o a_o 3_o 163_o a_o the_o original_a and_o cause_n thereof_o 4_o 314_o a_o from_o whence_o the_o name_n spring_v 4_o 313_o b_o voluntary_a &_o religious_a 4_o 315_o a_o ¶_o look_v bondage_n seven_o the_o number_n of_o seven_o put_v for_o any_o other_o number_n 2_o 237_o a_o it_o comprise_v all_o the_o former_a number_n 1_n 3a_o it_o betoken_v a_o complete_a number_n in_o scripture_n and_o how_o 2_o 362_o b_o it_o be_v mystical_a and_o it_o be_v a_o number_n wherewith_o god_n be_v delight_v &_o why_o 2_o 374_o b_o by_o it_o be_v express_v the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 2_o 368_o a_o seven_o day_n why_o the_o seven_o day_n be_v name_v to_o have_v neither_o morning_n nor_o evening_n 2_o 375_o a_o of_o the_o sanctification_n thereof_o 2_o 374_o ab_fw-la etc._n etc._n what_o thing_n god_n have_v give_v we_o by_o it_o 2_o 374_o b_o how_o god_n rest_v thereon_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v 2_o 374_o b_o ¶_o look_v sabbath_n day_n sh._n shadowe_n how_o the_o shadow_n accompany_v not_o the_o body_n always_o after_o one_o manner_n 1_n 142_o b_o 143_o a_o shame_n shame_n take_v sometime_o for_o frustration_n 3_o 82_o b_o in_o what_o thing_n the_o flesh_n reckon_v it_o 3_o 261_o ab_fw-la who_o be_v say_v to_o be_v put_v to_o shame_n or_o make_v ashamed_a 3_o 227_o ab_fw-la shamefastness_n shamefastness_n be_v no_o virtue_n &_o yet_o commend_v 2_o 412_o a_o of_o the_o excess_n and_o defect_n which_o make_v it_o commendable_a 2_o 412_o a_o sheep_n a_o distinction_n of_o sheep_n 3_o 281_o b_o shepherds_z watch_n of_o shepherd_n 3_o 256_o b_o their_o troublesome_a life_n describe_v 4_o 29_o b_o 30_o a_o shewbread_n the_o use_n and_o end_n of_o the_o shewbread_n 4_o 162_o ab_fw-la shrove_n tide_n the_o abuse_n that_o man_n use_v at_o shrove_n tide_n 3_o 255_o b_o si._n sibyl_n of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o sibyl_n and_o what_o authentical_a writer_n have_v think_v of_o they_o 1_n 21_o a_o the_o french_a sibyl_n do_v geld_v themselves_o 1_n 21_o b_o sicera_fw-la what_o kind_n of_o drink_n sicera_fw-la be_v 3_o 178_o b_o 179_o a_o sickness_n sickness_n of_o the_o mind_n 3_o 69_o a_o sight_n dishonest_a sight_n must_v be_v avoid_v and_o why_o 2_o 481_o b_o sign_n what_o a_o sign_n be_v and_o the_o same_o distinguish_v 4_o 97_o b_o a_o analogy_n must_v be_v keep_v between_o
how_o god_n do_v punish_v those_o of_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o child_n 2_o 236_o b_o sin_z as_o they_o be_v punishment_n they_o belong_v unto_o justice_n and_o in_o what_o respect_n be_v good_a 1_n 206_o a_o of_o omission_n or_o negligence_n and_o what_o be_v determine_v of_o they_o touch_v the_o will_n 1_o 189_o a_o how_o they_o depend_v upon_o god_n will_n 3_o 36_o b_o he_o do_v rule_v and_o govern_v they_o and_o how_o 1_n 206_o a_o and_o make_v a_o remedy_n for_o they_o 1_n 187_o b_o whether_o those_o of_o the_o next_o parent_n be_v derive_v to_o the_o posterity_n mark_v the_o schoolman_n opinion_n and_o the_o father_n 2_o 239_o b_o of_o eat_v the_o people_n sin_n and_o how_o the_o priest_n do_v it_o 4_o 169_o a_o see_v evil_a affection_n shall_v be_v mortify_v in_o we_o they_o be_v sin_n 2_o 217_o b_o how_o all_o creature_n do_v suffer_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n 2_o 249._o 250._o 251._o and_o whether_o they_o have_v any_o wrong_n do_v they_o in_o that_o case_n 252_o a_o two_o subtle_a pelagian_n argument_n the_o one_o touch_v sin_n impute_v the_o other_o sin_n original_a answer_v by_o augustine_n 2_o 221_o a_o of_o small_a or_o venial_a sin_n &_o what_o they_o be_v 2_o 272_o ab_fw-la that_o no_o just_a man_n can_v live_v without_o they_o 3_o 153_o a_o all_o sin_n in_o their_o own_o nature_n must_v be_v call_v mortal_a 2_o 247_o b_o what_o sin_n be_v common_o call_v mortal_a sin_n 2_o 272_o ab_fw-la wherein_o original_a and_o actual_a do_v differ_v 2_o 243_o a_o the_o difference_n between_o sin_n and_o crime_n 3_o 298_o b_o sinner_n whether_o god_n will_v the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n 3_o 42_o ab_fw-la none_o be_v so_o call_v but_o either_o he_o have_v sin_n in_o act_n or_o else_o he_o have_v commit_v sin_n where_o note_n pighius_fw-la shift_n 2_o 218_o b_o in_o what_o respect_n paul_n call_v himself_o the_o first_o or_o principal_a sinner_n 2_o 548_o a_o sinner_n a_o distinction_n of_o sinner_n 4_o 224_o b_o 43_o ab_fw-la who_o be_v sinner_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o whether_o such_o be_v to_o be_v exclude_v from_o hear_v god_n word_n 1_o 57_o b_o 58_o a_o whether_o god_n hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o sinner_n 4_o 224_o b_o of_o what_o sort_n of_o sinner_n the_o publican_n be_v 4_o 224_o b_o sin_v of_o a_o necessity_n of_o sin_v which_o have_v no_o compulsion_n join_v therewith_o 2_o 256_o b_o not_o absolute_a in_o the_o wicked_a 2_o 257_o a_o sl._n slave_n whereupon_o rise_v the_o say_n of_o eusebuis_n that_o democritus_n make_v man_n slave_n but_o chrysippus_n half_a slave_n 1_n 172_o a_o sleep_n how_o sleep_n be_v the_o image_n of_o death_n 3_o 335_o b_o the_o death_n of_o the_o godly_a so_o count_v 3_o 348_o a_o limit_v by_o watch_v 3_o 369_o a_o whether_o soul_n do_v sleep_n when_o they_o be_v lose_a from_o the_o body_n 3_o 323b_v 324_o ab_fw-la why_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o the_o dead_a do_v sleep_n 3_o 326_o b_o sling_n the_o dexterity_n of_o the_o beniamit_n at_o throw_v with_o a_o sling_n 2_o 242_o a_o so._n soldier_n the_o duty_n of_o a_o soldier_n and_o what_o it_o teach_v us._n 3_o 259_o b_o why_o he_o be_v call_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 3_o 91_o a_o soldier_n a_o custom_n of_o tthe_a soldier_n in_o a_o case_n of_o offence_n two_o 365_o a_o why_o they_o do_v go_v on_o warfare_n two_o 573_o b_o how_o hardly_o they_o have_v get_v the_o victory_n be_v restrain_v from_o the_o spoil_n 2_o 403_o b_o the_o punishment_n inflict_v upon_o soldier_n for_o adultery_n 2_o 485_o b_o 486_o a_o permit_v to_o play_v at_o vice_n 2_o 525_o b_o that_o among_o they_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n ought_v to_o be_v in_o camp_n 4_o 328_o a_o 287a_o whether_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v privy_a to_o the_o cause_n of_o war_n 4_o 304_o b_o 305_o a_o a_o lawless_a multitude_n 4_o 294_o b_o fight_v in_o war_n they_o be_v not_o guilty_a of_o manslaughter_n though_o they_o ââ¦ll_v and_o slay_v 2_o 385b_n they_o may_v not_o forsake_v their_o station_n uncommaund_v 2_o 392b_n out_o of_o what_o kind_n of_o man_n they_o be_v take_v 3_o 188_o b_o against_o mercenary_a soldier_n 4_o 304_o a_o 305_o a_o cause_n why_o they_o be_v blame_v 4_o 287b_n 288_o a_o what_o they_o do_v not_o respect_v 4_o 284_o the_o whole_a seventéeth_n chapter_n of_o the_o four_o part_n will_v be_v read_v of_o soldier_n concern_v war_n 4_o 2â0_n ab_fw-la etc._n etc._n when_o minister_n may_v be_v soldier_n 4_o 328_o a_o solitariness_n whether_o solitariness_n be_v absolute_o to_o be_v allow_v or_o disallow_v 3_o 187_o ab_fw-la commend_v and_o discommend_v 1_n 149_o b_o 150_o a_o the_o right_a use_n and_o profit_n thereof_o 3_o 179_o b_o use_v of_o the_o wise_a ethnic_n of_o christ_n john_n baptist_n elias_n and_o other_o &_o why_o 1_o 150_o ab_fw-la song_n a_o great_a use_n of_o holy_a song_n among_o the_o godly_a 3_o 312_o ab_fw-la of_o thanksgiving_n for_o benefit_n receive_v 3_o 308b_n 309_o a_o how_o the_o song_n of_o hanna_n and_o marie_n do_v agree_v 3_o 309_o a_o ¶_o look_v singing_n son_n of_o god_n the_o son_n of_o god_n appear_v in_o very_o humane_a flesh_n 3_o 26_o b_o how_o and_o after_o what_o manner_n he_o take_v flesh_n upon_o he_o â_o 117_o b_o he_o be_v not_o create_v or_o make_v say_v augustine_n and_o how_o he_o proove_v it_o 1_n 101_o b_o why_o he_o be_v call_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v the_o worde_n 1_n 26_o b_o the_o angel_n that_o speak_v to_o moses_n in_o the_o bush_n be_v he_o 1_n 28_o a_o ¶_o look_v christ_n son_n whether_o son_n be_v place_v as_o magistrate_n aught_o to_o give_v place_n to_o their_o father_n be_v private_a man_n 2_o 377_o b_o who_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o who_o be_v not_o 2_o 248_o ab_fw-la our_o certainty_n thereof_o 3_o 81_o b_o ¶_o look_v adoption_n &_o child_n sorcerer_n apuleius_n be_v a_o sorcerer_n dare_v not_o acknowledge_v himself_o such_o a_o one_o when_o he_o be_v summon_v to_o answer_v thereunto_o 1_n 92_o a_o sorcerer_n woman_n and_o man_n sorcerer_n in_o their_o sleep_n receive_v many_o pleasure_n of_o the_o devil_n 1_n 90_o ah_o of_o the_o miracle_n that_o they_o of_o egypt_n and_o other_o work_n 1_n 65._o 66._o 67_o tertullians_n judgement_n of_o the_o rod_n of_o pharaoes_n 1_n 73_o b_o law_n against_o sorcerer_n &_o such_o as_o repair_v to_o they_o 1_n 84_o b_o 85_o a_o ¶_o look_n enchanter_n and_o magician_n sorrow_n the_o effect_n of_o sorrow_n in_o the_o body_n 3_o 246_o a_o of_o that_o which_o be_v join_v with_o hope_n 3_o 86_o a_o whether_o we_o sorrow_n and_o rejoice_v both_o at_o once_o 3_o 212_o b_o why_o sorrow_n for_o sin_n be_v more_o frequent_a in_o the_o old_a testament_n than_o in_o the_o new_a 3_o 299b_fw-ge thing_n not_o voluntary_a or_o do_v against_o the_o will_n have_v sorrow_n join_v with_o they_o 2_o 293b_fw-ge why_o david_n do_v sorrow_n though_o his_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o 3_o 299b_n ¶_o look_v affect_v &_o grief_n school_n of_o man_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o the_o faculty_n or_o power_n of_o the_o same_o wherein_o we_o resemble_v god_n 1_o 12_o b_o whether_o the_o soul_n be_v hurtful_a to_o the_o body_n 3_o 316_o ab_fw-la without_o faith_n it_o be_v dead_a 2_o 262_o b_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o same_o 3_o 114_o b_o a_o fable_n of_o the_o rabbin_n touch_v the_o conjunction_n thereof_o with_o the_o body_n 3_o 329_o b_o the_o soul_n be_v say_v to_o rise_v again_o in_o two_o respect_n 3_o 332b_n take_v in_o diverse_a sense_n 3_o 344_o a_o why_o it_o be_v join_v to_o the_o body_n 3_o 334_o a_o the_o immortality_n thereof_o prove_v 3_o 334_o ab_fw-la 1_o 73_o a_o 3_o 350_o a_o how_o it_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n contain_v in_o the_o blood_n 1_n 123_o ab_fw-la from_o whence_o it_o do_v proceed_v and_o come_v 1_n 122_o a_o why_o it_o be_v call_v carnal_a 4_o 186_o a_o it_o do_v oftentimes_o follow_v the_o affection_n and_o perturbation_n of_o the_o body_n 1_n 123_o b_o the_o chief_a effect_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v move_v and_o sense_n 2_o 122_o b_o by_o it_o be_v the_o chief_a part_n of_o man_n be_v understand_v the_o body_n 2_o 244_o b_o a_o reason_n of_o the_o father_n why_o the_o body_n be_v make_v before_o it_o 1_n 122_o b_o at_o the_o beginning_n the_o body_n be_v not_o give_v to_o the_o soul_n as_o a_o grave_n or_o prison_n as_o some_o do_v fable_n 2_o 251_o a_o whether_o god_n breathe_v a_o soul_n into_o eve_n as_o he_o do_v unto_o adam_n 2_o 244_o b_o the_o soul_n invisible_a and_o indivisible_a and_o how_o it_o work_v in_o the_o body_n
that_o the_o ethnik_n no_o doubt_n know_v god_n but_o they_o glorify_v he_o not_o as_o god_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n he_o add_v 24._o verse_n 24._o that_o they_o be_v deliver_v up_o unto_o wicked_a desire_n be_v fill_v with_o all_o corruption_n and_o covetousness_n etc._n etc._n and_o at_o last_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o condemnation_n of_o hell_n fire_n say_v but_o thou_o 5._o rom._n 2_o 5._o according_a to_o thy_o hardness_n and_o unrepentant_a hart_n heap_a up_o to_o thyself_o wrath_n against_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n and_o of_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n wherein_o he_o shall_v render_v to_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n but_o there_o be_v many_o which_o think_v not_o that_o these_o sin_n be_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n because_o of_o they_o man_n take_v no_o small_a pleasure_n howbeit_o unless_o they_o be_v blind_a they_o may_v easy_o understand_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o be_v punishment_n and_o such_o indeed_o as_o be_v most_o gréevous_a for_o he_o say_v that_o their_o hart_n be_v blind_v 2d_o rom._n 1_o 2d_o and_o that_o they_o be_v make_v fool_n although_o they_o boast_v that_o they_o be_v wise_a man_n and_o be_v give_v over_o by_o god_n unto_o a_o reprobate_a sense_n to_o defile_v their_o body_n with_o shamefulnes_n and_o what_o be_v all_o these_o but_o most_o gréevous_a punishment_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n if_o when_o one_o have_v commit_v theft_n his_o hand_n shall_v straitwaie_o be_v cut_v off_o or_o his_o eye_n pluck_v out_o we_o will_v say_v that_o he_o be_v gréevouslie_o punish_v by_o god_n paul_n say_v that_o these_o man_n be_v deprive_v of_o their_o mind_n that_o their_o heart_n be_v make_v foolish_a and_o that_o their_o body_n be_v most_o shameful_o defile_v and_o shall_v not_o these_o seem_v to_o be_v punishment_n how_o can_v we_o esteem_v our_o mind_n to_o be_v safe_a sound_a and_o uncorrupt_a if_o sin_n do_v reign_v therein_o solomon_n say_v 27._o prou._n 6_o 27._o can_v any_o man_n nourish_v fire_n in_o his_o bosom_n and_o not_o burn_v his_o garment_n or_o can_v a_o man_n go_v upon_o hot_a burn_a coal_n and_o yet_o not_o burn_v his_o own_o foot_n and_o therefore_o sin_n be_v call_v a_o punishment_n punishment_n why_o sin_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o punishment_n because_o it_o hurt_v and_o corrupt_v nature_n for_o the_o unhappiness_n of_o original_a sin_n have_v so_o mar_v the_o same_o as_o it_o can_v scarce_o seem_v to_o be_v half_a on_o live_v and_o the_o corrupt_a motion_n and_o violent_a rage_n which_o often_o time_n spring_v out_o of_o that_o unhappiness_n unless_o they_o be_v keep_v short_a and_o mortify_v do_v make_v it_o the_o more_o rage_a final_o if_o thou_o yield_v or_o give_v thy_o consent_n to_o they_o they_o evermore_o become_v stronster_n and_o strong_a and_o so_o nature_n run_v evermore_o headlong_o to_o the_o worse_a 28_o all_o these_o thing_n have_v respect_n hereunto_o that_o we_o may_v understand_v that_o lust_n graff_v in_o we_o and_o corrupt_a motion_n which_o still_o remain_v in_o our_o mind_n belong_v to_o this_o kind_n of_o sin_n but_o yet_o so_o as_o they_o be_v punishment_n of_o a_o other_o sin_n go_v before_o namely_o of_o original_a sin_n if_o it_o be_v not_o of_o some_o other_o sin_n that_o be_v more_o gréevous_a yet_o nevertheless_o this_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o the_o first_o fall_v away_o also_o be_v in_o such_o sort_n sin_n sin_n fall_v from_o faith_n may_v be_v call_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n as_o it_o be_v also_o a_o punishment_n for_o as_o we_o have_v say_v there_o be_v no_o sin_n which_o do_v not_o most_o gréevouslie_o hurt_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n and_o so_o at_o the_o lest_o wise_a it_o have_v a_o punishment_n of_o itself_o join_v with_o it_o but_o every_o sin_n be_v not_o the_o punishment_n of_o a_o other_o sin_n go_v before_o it_o but_o those_o whereof_o we_o now_o entreat_v we_o affirm_v to_o be_v punishment_n of_o sin_n go_v before_o yea_o and_o we_o abide_v by_o it_o that_o they_o be_v sin_n but_o it_o seem_v a_o wonder_n unto_o many_o that_o see_v these_o be_v of_o necessity_n how_o they_o can_v be_v sin_n but_o touch_v this_o matter_n let_v we_o hear_v what_o augustine_n say_v in_o his_o three_o book_n de_fw-fr libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la and_o 18._o chapter_n some_o thing_n also_o say_v he_o do_v of_o necessity_n be_v not_o to_o be_v allow_v as_o when_o a_o man_n will_v do_v well_o and_o can_v not_o for_o otherwise_o why_o be_v these_o word_n speak_v 18._o rom._n 7_o 15_o and_o 18._o the_o good_a that_o i_o will_v i_o do_v not_o but_o the_o evil_n which_o i_o will_v not_o that_o i_o do_v to_o will_n be_v ready_a with_o i_o but_o to_o perform_v the_o good_a i_o find_v no_o ability_n 17._o gal._n 5_o 17._o and_o this_o the_o flesh_n lu_v against_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o spirit_n against_o the_o flesh_n for_o these_o word_n be_v one_o repugnant_a to_o the_o other_o that_o the_o thing_n which_o you_o will_v not_o do_v those_o you_o do_v but_o all_o these_o thing_n belong_v unto_o man_n &_o proceed_v from_o that_o condemnation_n of_o death_n for_o if_o they_o be_v not_o a_o punishment_n of_o man_n but_o nature_n in_o man_n then_o be_v they_o no_o sin_n make_v the_o first_o motion_n be_v sin_n because_o we_o depart_v from_o the_o state_n wherein_o we_o be_v make_v for_o if_o we_o depart_v not_o from_o that_o state_n wherein_o man_n be_v natural_o make_v so_o that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v better_o then_o when_o he_o do_v these_o thing_n he_o do_v what_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v but_o if_o a_o man_n be_v good_a it_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o but_o now_o since_o it_o be_v thus_o he_o be_v not_o good_a nor_o yet_o be_v it_o in_o his_o power_n to_o be_v good_a either_o for_o that_o he_o see_v not_o what_o manner_n of_o one_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v or_o else_o in_o that_o he_o see_v the_o same_o and_o be_v not_o able_a to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o he_o perceive_v he_o shall_v be_v thus_o much_o augustine_n in_o which_o word_n many_o thing_n be_v most_o worthy_a the_o note_n first_o of_o all_o he_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n which_o necessary_o happen_v be_v to_o be_v disallow_v secondlie_o he_o allege_v a_o reason_n why_o they_o be_v call_v sin_n because_o we_o depart_v from_o that_o state_n wherein_o we_o be_v natural_o make_v good_a why_o it_o be_v not_o in_o man_n power_n to_o be_v good_a thirdlie_o he_o say_v that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o good_a neither_o have_v it_o in_o his_o power_n to_o be_v good_a fourthlie_o he_o bring_v two_o reason_n why_o he_o can_v be_v good_a either_o because_o he_o see_v not_o what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v or_o else_o for_o that_o he_o see_v it_o but_o by_o reason_n of_o infirmity_n be_v not_o able_a to_o perform_v it_o regenerate_v these_o thing_n be_v speak_v even_o of_o the_o regenerate_v last_o this_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o he_o mean_v these_o thing_n of_o man_n which_o be_v regenerate_v for_o he_o cit_v the_o word_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o galathian_o and_o those_o place_n which_o we_o have_v now_o allege_v which_o thing_n we_o have_v declare_v can_v be_v understand_v otherwise_o than_o of_o the_o regenerate_a but_o against_o this_o say_n of_o augustine_n that_o seem_v to_o be_v which_o jerom_n write_v in_o his_o interpretation_n of_o faith_n we_o say_v that_o they_o do_v err_v which_o say_v with_o manichaeus_n that_o a_o man_n can_v not_o eschew_v evil_a state_n he_o speak_v of_o nature_n in_o perfect_a state_n 29_o but_o these_o thing_n may_v be_v reconcile_v easy_o enough_o for_o jerom_n speak_v of_o nature_n as_o it_o be_v institute_v by_o god_n for_o he_o write_v against_o the_o manicheis_n which_o teach_v that_o we_o therefore_o can_v resist_v sin_n for_o that_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n create_v evil_a by_o a_o evil_a god_n yet_o there_o be_v none_o of_o we_o which_o doubt_v but_o that_o man_n when_o he_o be_v create_v at_o the_o beginning_n be_v most_o free_a but_o that_o augustine_n speak_v of_o nature_n after_o the_o fall_n it_o sufficient_o appear_v in_o that_o he_o say_v all_o these_o thing_n perteine_a to_o man_n and_o come_v from_o the_o condemnation_n of_o death_n beside_o he_o confess_v that_o this_o be_v the_o punishment_n of_o man_n be_v fall_v moreover_o if_o these_o thing_n be_v refer_v unto_o the_o regenerate_a we_o may_v say_v that_o the_o say_n of_o jerom_n have_v a_o respect_n only_o to_o the_o grosser_n kind_n of_o sin_n sin_n the_o regenerate_a can_v abstain_v from_o the_o grosser_n kind_n of_o sin_n which_o do_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n from_o which_o sin_n we_o doubt_v not_o but_o man_n bear_v anew_o
their_o parent_n they_o may_v imitate_v their_o sin_n or_o else_o revenge_v their_o death_n the_o which_o in_o daughter_n be_v not_o to_o be_v fear_v but_o yet_o it_o must_v not_o therefore_o be_v conclude_v that_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n as_o touch_v the_o crime_n brief_o i_o allow_v well_o enough_o that_o distinction_n of_o the_o schoolman_n that_o if_o the_o faith_n of_o matrimony_n be_v consider_v the_o sin_n be_v of_o like_a equality_n both_o in_o the_o adulterer_n and_o adulteress_n if_o the_o state_n of_o the_o party_n be_n consider_v the_o man_n sin_v more_o gréevouslie_o but_o if_o we_o regard_v the_o harm_n that_o be_v do_v unto_o the_o family_n it_o be_v to_o be_v lay_v to_o the_o woman_n charge_n and_o that_o man_n sin_v more_o gréevouslie_o in_o respect_n of_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o his_o state_n and_o degree_n it_o be_v manifest_a not_o only_o by_o this_o that_o he_o be_v of_o a_o great_a judgement_n but_o we_o may_v also_o perceive_v it_o even_o by_o the_o holy_a history_n nathan_n be_v not_o send_v unto_o bethsabe_n but_o unto_o david_n intermit_v punishment_n of_o death_n for_o adultery_n be_v not_o well_o intermit_v 36_o and_o thus_o much_o have_v we_o say_v concern_v the_o second_o question_n now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o three_o namely_o what_o we_o be_v to_o determine_v of_o these_o punishment_n intermit_v very_o if_o i_o shall_v speak_v free_o what_o i_o think_v it_o be_v not_o well_o order_v that_o the_o punishment_n of_o death_n be_v not_o in_o use_n see_v the_o same_o agree_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o with_o divine_a law_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v of_o great_a importance_n with_o us._n in_o leviticus_fw-la and_o in_o deuteronomie_n 22_o levi._n 20_o 10._o deut._n 22_o 22_o god_n ordain_v that_o both_o the_o adulterer_n &_o adulteress_n shall_v be_v slay_v secondlie_o i_o prove_v this_o by_o the_o very_a order_n itself_o of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n let_v we_o lay_v before_o our_o eye_n the_o ten_o commandment_n as_o touch_v the_o worship_v of_o the_o true_a god_n it_o pertain_v to_o the_o first_o commandment_n he_o that_o shall_v do_v otherwise_o be_v to_o suffer_v death_n of_o take_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o vain_a it_o be_v say_v if_o there_o be_v any_o blasphemer_n let_v he_o die_v the_o death_n of_o keep_v holy_a the_o sabbath_n day_n we_o read_v that_o he_o which_o do_v gather_v stick_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n be_v command_v to_o be_v slay_v of_o the_o five_o precept_n it_o be_v decree_v that_o if_o any_o man_n be_v rebellious_a against_o his_o parent_n he_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o judge_n and_o slay_v of_o the_o sixth_o precept_n he_o that_o have_v slay_v a_o other_o man_n let_v he_o perish_v and_o let_v he_o be_v pluck_v even_o from_o the_o altar_n then_o follow_v the_o precept_n of_o adultery_n there_o the_o sword_n stay_v his_o execution_n and_o proceed_v no_o further_a unto_o steal_v and_o false-witnesse-bearing_a there_o be_v no_o punishment_n of_o death_n appoint_v neither_o have_v concupiscence_n any_o punishment_n of_o blood_n belong_v thereunto_o see_v the_o order_n be_v on_o this_o wise_a i_o will_v know_v why_o the_o man_n of_o our_o time_n invert_v the_o same_o but_o they_o say_v that_o the_o commonweal_n be_v more_o disturb_v by_o thief_n than_o by_o adulterer_n for_o we_o must_v have_v a_o consideration_n unto_o the_o commodity_n of_o the_o commonweal_n but_o i_o deny_v that_o thief_n do_v more_o disturb_v the_o commonweal_n if_o they_o rob_v and_o slay_v by_o the_o high_a way_n in_o the_o night_n and_o lie_v in_o wait_n for_o man_n life_n i_o may_v easy_o grant_v it_o but_o absolute_o of_o steal_v i_o can_v say_v so_o doubtless_o if_o our_o judgement_n be_v right_a who_o have_v not_o rather_o loose_v somewhat_o of_o his_o good_n and_o substance_n than_o that_o his_o wife_n shall_v be_v dishonest_v howbeit_o such_o a_o covetousness_n there_o be_v at_o this_o day_n ingraff_v in_o man_n that_o they_o make_v more_o account_n of_o their_o money_n than_o of_o their_o wife_n honesty_n wherefore_o i_o say_v that_o there_o be_v some_o injury_n do_v unto_o thief_n in_o so_o much_o as_o they_o be_v hang_v and_o adulterer_n who_o sin_n more_o gréevouslie_o be_v suffer_v to_o live_v the_o four_o reason_n be_v that_o in_o suffer_a adulterer_n to_o live_v they_o intricate_a we_o with_o very_o hard_a question_n first_o there_o be_v bring_v in_o by_o the_o papist_n a_o divorce_n from_o the_o marriage_n bed_n but_o not_o from_o the_o bond_n of_o matrimony_n moreover_o there_o be_v disputation_n whether_o the_o innocent_a party_n may_v contract_v matrimony_n while_o the_o other_o party_n live_v and_o there_o be_v a_o controversy_n whether_o the_o adulteress_n which_o suruive_v may_v marry_v again_o with_o a_o other_o further_o they_o dispute_v of_o reconciliation_n between_o adulterer_n and_o by_o this_o easy_a mean_n city_n be_v fill_v with_o uncleanness_n and_o adultery_n and_o man_n will_v after_o a_o sort_n be_v more_o pitiful_a than_o god_n himself_o 37_o it_o be_v object_v 6._o the_o history_n of_o the_o adulteress_n in_o the_o 8._o of_o john_n ver_fw-la 6._o that_o christ_n suffer_v not_o the_o adulterous_a woman_n to_o be_v stone_v the_o eight_o of_o john_n whereby_o they_o gather_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o have_v this_o to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o adulterer_n be_v to_o be_v spare_v in_o these_o day_n they_o say_v also_o that_o joseph_n be_v accuse_v of_o this_o crime_n be_v not_o put_v to_o death_n to_o these_o two_o example_n we_o must_v answer_v first_o i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o same_o story_n in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n of_o john_n have_v be_v reject_v by_o some_o because_o it_o rather_o seem_v to_o be_v put_v in_o of_o other_o than_o to_o be_v write_v by_o john_n jerom_n in_o his_o second_o book_n against_o pelagius_n write_v of_o this_o matter_n the_o same_o do_v eusebius_n caesariensis_n touch_n in_o his_o three_o book_n who_o say_v that_o he_o do_v think_v it_o to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o nazarit_n augustine_n in_o his_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr adulterinâs_fw-la coniugijs_fw-la ad_fw-la pollentium_fw-la think_v that_o it_o be_v the_o very_a story_n of_o john_n in_o deed_n but_o devise_v by_o cruel_a husband_n to_o be_v wipe_v out_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o adulterous_a wife_n may_v be_v put_v to_o death_n hereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o in_o some_o copy_n it_o be_v find_v and_o in_o some_o not_z how_o likely_a a_o thing_n this_o be_v let_v other_o man_n judge_v what_o so_o ever_o it_o be_v whether_o it_o be_v of_o johns_n writing_n or_o no_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o great_a for_o it_o contain_v nothing_o against_o the_o sentence_n which_o i_o have_v propose_v which_o thing_n i_o will_v somewhat_o more_o large_o declare_v you_o must_v think_v with_o yourselves_o that_o the_o pharisy_n do_v not_o bring_v the_o adulteress_n unto_o christ_n as_o unto_o a_o judge_n or_o king_n for_o they_o never_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o neither_o do_v christ_n ever_o usurp_v such_o a_o office_n unto_o himself_o 15._o john_n 6._o 15._o he_o withdrue_v himself_o when_o they_o will_v have_v make_v he_o a_o king_n neither_o will_v he_o divide_v the_o heritage_n 13_o luke_n 12_o 13_o and_o he_o pronounce_v his_o kingdom_n not_o to_o be_v of_o this_o world_n why_o then_o do_v they_o bring_v she_o to_o he_o 36_o john_n 18_o 36_o even_o to_o lay_v a_o bait_n for_o he_o and_o as_o they_o say_v to_o take_v he_o in_o a_o trip_n he_o be_v praise_v among_o the_o common_a sort_n for_o his_o clemency_n he_o be_v love_v of_o the_o people_n then_o do_v these_o pharisy_n devise_n among_o themselves_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o she_o must_v be_v put_v to_o death_n this_o favour_n of_o the_o people_n will_v fall_v from_o he_o as_o be_v one_o that_o will_v bring_v in_o again_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n but_o if_o he_o say_v that_o she_o must_v be_v let_v go_v he_o shall_v do_v against_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n yea_o &_o of_o god_n himself_o but_o christ_n very_o well_o repel_v their_o wiliness_n he_o do_v neither_o of_o both_o which_o they_o hope_v he_o will_v do_v yet_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o do_v his_o part_n very_o worthy_o he_o be_v no_o civil_a magistrate_n but_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v his_o office_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o repentance_n both_o which_o he_o do_v wherefore_o he_o say_v to_o the_o pharisy_n he_o that_o among_o you_o be_v free_a from_o sin_n let_v he_o throw_v the_o first_o stone_n at_o she_o he_o say_v not_o let_v she_o not_o be_v put_v to_o death_n but_o take_v heed_n what_o you_o
he_o say_v there_o may_v appear_v to_o be_v a_o full_a observation_n of_o the_o law_n but_o he_o answer_v that_o they_o have_v no_o more_o in_o they_o than_o paul_n have_v who_o deny_v himself_o to_o be_v perfect_a indeed_o they_o be_v just_a before_o god_n even_o as_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v serve_v god_n from_o his_o forefather_n with_o a_o pure_a conscience_n that_o be_v with_o a_o unfeigned_a and_o undissemble_a hart_n but_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o do_v from_o the_o hart_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o do_v with_o all_o the_o hart_n and_o they_o be_v say_v to_o walk_v in_o all_o the_o precept_n of_o god_n because_o they_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n show_v the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n by_o live_v according_a to_o the_o law_n which_o fruit_n nevertheless_o while_o they_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n they_o utter_v not_o perfect_o and_o absolute_o and_o whereas_o it_o be_v add_v that_o they_o be_v without_o reproof_n the_o same_o father_n in_o his_o first_o book_n and_o 48._o chapter_n de_fw-fr gratia_fw-la christi_fw-la against_o pelagius_n and_o coelestinus_n expound_v the_o same_o to_o be_v mean_v as_o touch_v their_o honest_a and_o laudable_a conversation_n among_o man_n the_o which_o no_o man_n can_v justly_o quarrel_v at_o as_o a_o crime_n for_o there_o be_v some_o very_a gréevous_a crime_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n say_v 10_o 1._o cor._n 6_o 10_o that_o they_o which_o commit_v such_o thing_n shall_v not_o possess_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o assure_o the_o person_n regenerate_v may_v beware_v of_o these_o sin_n and_o it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o be_v so_o without_o reproof_n before_o god_n because_o god_n allow_v they_o to_o be_v such_o as_o before_o man_n they_o be_v account_v undoubted_o the_o praise_n of_o this_o couple_n man_n and_o wife_n be_v very_o great_a because_o they_o do_v not_o execute_v the_o tradition_n of_o man_n but_o the_o work_n which_o be_v prescribe_v in_o the_o law_n they_o be_v first_o therefore_o justify_v by_o faith_n do_v then_o add_v honest_a and_o godly_a life_n to_o be_v join_v with_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o god_n vouchsafe_v to_o extol_v their_o work_n with_o these_o praise_n and_o commendation_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o they_o perfect_o fulfil_v the_o law_n of_o god_n augustine_n also_o expound_v that_o say_n which_o paul_n speak_v of_o himself_o namely_o 7._o 2._o tim._n 4_o 7._o i_o have_v fight_v a_o good_a fight_n i_o have_v run_v my_o course_n i_o have_v keep_v the_o faith_n etc._n etc._n course_n how_o paul_n perform_v his_o course_n the_o last_o fight_n say_v he_o remain_v for_o when_o he_o do_v write_v these_o word_n he_o be_v not_o yet_o dead_a but_o because_o he_o remain_v in_o hope_n of_o steadfast_a die_v in_o the_o faith_n therefore_o he_o write_v so_o bold_o he_o finish_v his_o course_n howbeit_o not_o full_o &_o perfect_o but_o in_o a_o obedience_n that_o be_v more_o than_o begoone_o neither_o do_v he_o write_v that_o he_o sin_v not_o but_o if_o he_o have_v so_o write_v yet_o will_v we_o have_v say_v that_o the_o same_o have_v be_v do_v in_o respect_n of_o his_o hope_n for_o that_o which_o be_v certeinlie_o look_v for_o be_v reckon_v as_o if_o it_o be_v do_v and_o it_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o at_o that_o time_n he_o have_v need_n as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o pray_v according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n as_o we_o forgive_v they_o that_o trespass_n against_o us._n 11_o our_o adversary_n also_o teach_v that_o those_o impediment_n which_o we_o have_v rehearse_v namely_o corrupt_a affection_n and_o naughty_a motion_n unto_o evil_n be_v no_o sin_n unless_o there_o be_v add_v a_o consent_n thereunto_o which_o opinion_n of_o they_o must_v be_v utterlie_o repel_v true_a indeed_o it_o be_v that_o augustine_n in_o define_v of_o sin_n declare_v the_o same_o to_o be_v a_o thing_n speak_v do_v or_o lust_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n albeit_o that_o be_v a_o doubtful_a definition_n for_o if_o lust_a be_v mean_v according_a to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o will_n only_o actual_a sin_n as_o they_o term_v they_o be_v comprehend_v therein_o but_o original_a corruption_n and_o naughty_a motion_n of_o the_o mind_n be_v exclude_v from_o thence_o wherefore_o peter_n lombard_n in_o his_o second_o book_n distinction_n the_o 25._o bring_v in_o this_o definition_n what_o time_n as_o he_o step_v from_o the_o treat_v of_o original_a sin_n to_o treat_v of_o actual_a sin_n nevertheless_o lust_a what_o be_v mean_v by_o lust_a if_o by_o the_o word_n lust_a he_o comprehend_v both_o original_a sin_n and_o also_o naughty_a motion_n the_o definition_n will_v be_v general_a but_o ambrose_n say_v be_v ambrose_n declare_v what_o sin_n be_v that_o sin_n be_v a_o transgress_v of_o the_o law_n or_o a_o disobedience_n of_o the_o heavenly_a commandment_n howbeit_o let_v these_o thing_n go_v we_o must_v give_v ear_n unto_o the_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o john_n the_o three_o chapter_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 4._o verse_n 4._o that_o be_v sin_n be_v the_o transgression_n of_o the_o law_n signify_v what_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d signify_v the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d as_o all_o man_n know_v be_v compound_v of_o the_o privative_a particle_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o have_v a_o strength_n of_o deprive_v and_o of_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o signify_v law_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o that_o righteousness_n which_o the_o law_n do_v require_v be_v sin_n but_o shall_v we_o stand_v in_o contention_n whether_o our_o corrupt_a motion_n and_o naughty_a passion_n do_v impugn_v the_o law_n of_o god_n certeinelie_o paul_n affirm_v that_o they_o do_v strive_v against_o it_o when_o he_o write_v 23._o rom._n 7_o 23._o that_o he_o feel_v another_o law_n in_o the_o member_n strive_v against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o mind_n whereunto_o if_o it_o be_v repugnant_a it_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v transgression_n of_o the_o law_n neither_o do_v he_o otherwise_o judge_v when_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o i_o that_o work_n that_o but_o it_o be_v sin_n 17._o ibidem_fw-la 17._o which_o dwell_v in_o i_o and_o we_o do_v not_o only_o deal_v now_o as_o concern_v those_o first_o motion_n of_o the_o lust_a and_o wrathful_a faculty_n but_o also_o of_o those_o motion_n of_o reason_n which_o provoke_v unto_o sin_n for_o it_o be_v say_v that_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v enmity_n against_o god_n undoubted_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v sin_n and_o deface_v the_o image_n of_o god_n man_n be_v not_o make_v to_o the_o intent_n he_o shall_v be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o that_o all_o the_o motion_n of_o his_o mind_n shall_v be_v a_o spur_n to_o provoke_v he_o to_o godliness_n tertullian_n say_v that_o herein_o consist_v god_n image_n even_o to_o have_v the_o motion_n of_o our_o mind_n and_o our_o will_n all_o one_o with_o god_n yea_o and_o paul_n himself_o teach_v this_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o philippian_n 5._o phil._n 2_o 2_o and_o 5._o let_v the_o same_o mind_n be_v even_o in_o you_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n wherefore_o see_v these_o evil_n deface_v and_o corrupt_v this_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o our_o mind_n they_o can_v be_v otherwise_o call_v than_o sin_n 12_o but_o perhaps_o some_o will_v ask_v mind_n how_o adam_n fall_v have_v have_v not_o the_o naughty_a motion_n of_o the_o mind_n that_o see_v adam_n at_o his_o creation_n have_v no_o corrupt_a motion_n and_o affection_n how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o so_o gréevouslie_o fall_v this_o be_v demand_v as_o though_o sin_n may_v not_o be_v commit_v by_o his_o own_o will_n assure_o the_o angel_n do_v fall_v who_o be_v without_o any_o such_o perturbation_n truth_n it_o be_v that_o we_o be_v compel_v more_o often_o and_o more_o vehementlie_o unto_o sin_n than_o adam_n be_v we_o have_v many_o naughty_a persuasion_n and_o provocation_n unto_o sin_n the_o which_o he_o have_v not_o till_o such_o time_n as_o he_o transgress_v but_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o some_o of_o the_o father_n now_o and_o then_o do_v deny_v that_o these_o motion_n whereof_o we_o entreat_v be_v sin_n because_o they_o have_v no_o bond_n join_v with_o they_o unto_o everlasting_a punishment_n see_v christ_n have_v cancel_v the_o same_o yet_o can_v it_o not_o be_v deny_v by_o any_o man_n but_o that_o the_o deformity_n which_o be_v bring_v by_o they_o remain_v in_o the_o mind_n further_o it_o be_v so_o write_v of_o they_o by_o way_n of_o comparison_n for_o if_o so_o be_v that_o
by_o faith_n be_v unite_v unto_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n whereof_o it_o may_v be_v sound_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v a_o peculiar_a gift_n for_o they_o which_o be_v true_a member_n of_o this_o body_n under_o the_o head_n christ_n and_o this_o treatise_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n we_o will_v for_o the_o easy_a understanding_n divide_v into_o three_o point_n to_o be_v consider_v consider_v three_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v of_o which_o the_o first_o be_v that_o we_o by_o the_o grace_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n but_o here_o must_v we_o see_v by_o what_o way_n and_o mean_v the_o lord_n be_v wont_v to_o give_v this_o grace_n and_o spirit_n the_o which_o we_o can_v otherwise_o define_v than_o by_o faith_n for_o the_o benefit_n which_o god_n offer_v unto_o we_o be_v meet_a to_o be_v receive_v of_o he_o that_o will_v enjoy_v they_o and_o faith_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o receive_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o we_o by_o he_o whereunto_o there_o be_v two_o thing_n necessary_o require_v faith_n two_o thing_n necessary_o require_v in_o faith_n one_o be_v that_o that_o be_v offer_v to_o we_o which_o be_v good_a the_o other_o that_o we_o give_v our_o consent_n but_o to_o receive_v &_o consent_n we_o have_v need_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o shall_v inwardlie_o persuade_v the_o mind_n for_o otherwise_o a_o man_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o natural_a corruption_n will_v turn_v away_o himself_o as_o to_o who_o these_o promise_n of_o god_n these_o mercy_n offer_v and_o this_o remission_n of_o sin_n may_v natural_o seem_v not_o likely_a to_o be_v true_a and_o to_o be_v of_o no_o great_a weight_n and_o he_o will_v be_v far_o from_o the_o through_o consideration_n of_o they_o see_v as_o the_o philosopher_n themselves_o also_o say_v he_o will_v no_o less_o be_v blind_v unto_o divine_a thing_n than_o the_o mole_n be_v at_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n whereof_o there_o be_v a_o testimony_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o natural_a man_n say_v he_o understand_v not_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n unto_o he_o that_o we_o may_v have_v need_n of_o that_o inward_a move_n lest_o we_o shall_v refuse_v the_o benefit_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o us._n and_o indeed_o in_o this_o move_n there_o be_v two_o excellent_a gift_n the_o first_o be_v that_o we_o acknowledge_v the_o gift_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n offer_v unto_o us._n the_o second_o that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v offer_v shall_v be_v please_v unto_o we_o and_o that_o by_o give_v our_o assent_n we_o receive_v and_o embrace_v they_o which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v grant_v unto_o we_o none_o otherwise_o to_o be_v use_v but_o as_o it_o be_v set_v forth_o to_o we_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n how_o excellent_a and_o great_a soever_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v by_o the_o which_o he_o free_o forgive_v our_o sin_n 44._o act_n 10_o 44._o wherefore_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n while_o peter_n yet_o speak_v the_o holy_a ghost_n fall_v down_o upon_o they_o which_o hear_v he_o 17._o rom._n 10_o 17._o and_o by_o paul_n unto_o the_o roman_n it_o be_v say_v that_o faith_n be_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o as_o the_o church_n preach_v continual_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o her_o minister_n and_o in_o such_o sort_n offer_v in_o her_o sermon_n reconciliation_n by_o christ_n it_o give_v remission_n of_o sin_n in_o that_o by_o the_o outward_a ministry_n it_o pronounce_v the_o same_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o which_o through_o attentive_a ear_n as_o through_o a_o conduit_n both_o the_o grace_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n do_v slow_a in_o even_o unto_o our_o hart_n wherefore_o it_o be_v most_o firm_o conclude_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o the_o very_a same_o mean_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v be_v the_o original_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n which_o thing_n see_v it_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o church_n only_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o sin_n be_v forgive_v no_o where_o else_o word_n sacrament_n be_v visible_a word_n 45_o a_o other_o consideration_n we_o will_v add_v which_o concern_v the_o sacrament_n the_o which_o be_v visible_a word_n of_o this_o absolution_n for_o even_o as_o the_o word_n sound_v and_o be_v hear_v in_o the_o voice_n so_o in_o a_o visible_a and_o evident_a sign_n a_o sacrament_n do_v speak_v and_o admonish_v we_o unto_o the_o which_o we_o give_v credit_n obtain_v in_o very_a deed_n that_o which_o it_o do_v promise_n and_o signify_v neither_o do_v we_o otherwise_o give_v credit_n unto_o the_o signification_n hereof_o than_o by_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o christ_n which_o we_o have_v above_o declare_v but_o think_v you_o not_o that_o sin_n be_v forgive_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o work_n that_o be_v wrought_v through_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n see_v this_o we_o obtain_v by_o faith_n while_o we_o believe_v that_o which_o it_o visible_o teach_v we_o according_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_n that_o a_o sacrament_n may_v be_v of_o the_o same_o value_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v sacrament_n the_o same_o thing_n be_v offer_v by_o the_o word_n that_o be_v do_v by_o the_o sacrament_n for_o even_o as_o this_o word_n signify_v and_o give_v in_o very_a deed_n unto_o the_o beléever_n whatsoever_o it_o do_v promise_n so_o baptism_n be_v by_o faith_n receive_v both_o signify_v and_o give_v to_o the_o beléever_n remission_n of_o sin_n the_o which_o it_o promise_v by_o a_o visible_a speak_n but_o indeed_o it_o may_v be_v object_v unto_o i_o if_o so_o be_v that_o sin_n as_o it_o have_v be_v say_v be_v forgive_v unto_o they_o which_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n as_o by_o preach_v it_o be_v set_v forth_o to_o we_o how_o can_v they_o then_o again_o be_v forgive_v by_o baptism_n i_o answer_v that_o as_o touch_v god_n both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o absolution_n be_v all_o one_o and_o as_o concern_v our_o sin_n the_o remission_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o the_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v as_o often_o confirm_v and_o renew_v in_o we_o as_o we_o give_v credit_n unto_o the_o word_n whereby_o the_o same_o be_v signify_v unto_o we_o whether_o it_o be_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n or_o by_o visible_a sign_n it_o be_v all_o one_o so_o that_o how_o often_o soever_o we_o either_o hear_v the_o word_n or_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n in_o faith_n the_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v assure_v unto_o we_o whereby_o no_o small_a faith_n be_v inwardlie_o pour_v into_o us._n sacrament_n a_o benefit_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o it_o ought_v to_o seem_v no_o marvel_n unto_o any_o man_n wherefore_o the_o sacrament_n be_v ordain_v by_o christ_n see_v that_o by_o they_o his_o pleasure_n be_v that_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o spirit_n shall_v have_v recourse_n into_o the_o beléever_n no_o less_o than_o by_o the_o outward_a word_n of_o the_o scripture_n even_o as_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o daily_a experience_n but_o yet_o so_o as_o neither_o of_o these_o can_v profit_v any_o man_n without_o faith_n wherefore_o we_o have_v hitherto_o declare_v two_o mean_n by_o which_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v extant_a in_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o two_o way_n whereby_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v set_v forth_o unto_o they_o that_o believe_v but_o and_o if_o thou_o demand_v which_o of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o name_n signify_v this_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v baptism_n in_o the_o which_o we_o be_v wash_v with_o visible_a water_n be_v a_o sign_n that_o we_o by_o christ_n obtain_v spiritual_a cleanse_n and_o that_o be_v it_o which_o paul_n teach_v unto_o the_o ephesian_n that_o god_n have_v purge_v his_o church_n with_o the_o wash_n of_o water_n through_o the_o word_n of_o life_n 26._o ephe._n 5_o 26._o 46_o but_o now_o let_v we_o see_v excommunication_n of_o excommunication_n what_o be_v the_o three_o mean_v of_o this_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o church_n by_o the_o singular_a gift_n and_o grace_n of_o christ_n have_v right_a and_o authority_n as_o it_o have_v be_v already_o say_v to_o cut_v off_o from_o she_o by_o excommunication_n they_o that_o be_v obstinate_a the_o order_n whereof_o christ_n have_v describe_v and_o teach_v unto_o she_o in_o the_o gospel_n of_o matthew_n 17._o mat._n 18_o 17._o where_o he_o speak_v of_o brotherlie_a correction_n whereby_o man_n be_v admonish_v that_o unless_o they_o do_v repent_v it_o shall_v proceed_v even_o to_o the_o uttermost_a punishment_n of_o separation_n the_o which_o so_o long_o may_v stand_v in_o
send_v into_o galley_n that_o they_o may_v neither_o hurt_v themselves_o nor_o other_o and_o that_o they_o may_v labour_v with_o some_o profit_n to_o the_o commonweal_n by_o this_o mean_n may_v the_o inconvenience_n which_o come_v by_o banish_a man_n be_v take_v away_o these_o thing_n undoubted_o be_v not_o set_v down_o of_o we_o by_o reason_n demonstrative_a but_o confirm_v as_o i_o think_v by_o probable_a reason_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d this_o moreover_o i_o think_v good_a to_o add_v that_o if_o any_o through_o fear_n fly_v away_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n the_o city_n be_v not_o therefore_o to_o be_v blame_v because_o it_o can_v not_o let_v they_o but_o yet_o it_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v well_o advise_v if_o afterward_o it_o forbid_v they_o to_o return_v better_o it_o shall_v be_v to_o suffer_v they_o to_o return_v who_o be_v return_v they_o may_v send_v out_o unto_o such_o place_n as_o they_o shall_v think_v to_o be_v due_a unto_o their_o misdéede_n the_o sixteenth_o chapter_n whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o christian_a man_n to_o go_v to_o law_n here_o now_o the_o place_n put_v we_o in_o remembrance_n to_o see_v whether_o it_o be_v licence_v unto_o a_o christian_a man_n to_o try_v matter_n by_o law_n 6._o in_o 1._o cor._n 6._o of_o three_o thing_n to_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o which_o we_o will_v accomplish_v three_o thing_n first_o we_o will_v prove_v by_o firm_a and_o strong_a argument_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a second_o shall_v be_v set_v forth_o the_o form_n and_o way_n wherein_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v and_o final_o whereas_o there_o be_v certain_a place_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o seem_v to_o teach_v the_o contrary_a and_o that_o certain_a reason_n be_v wont_v to_o be_v bring_v which_o be_v think_v to_o be_v a_o let_v we_o will_v interpret_v the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o will_v confute_v the_o reason_n object_v 1._o the_o first_o place_n verse_n 1._o as_o touch_v the_o first_o the_o sentence_n of_o paul_n which_o we_o have_v in_o the_o 1._o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 6._o chapter_n plain_o persuade_v that_o to_o go_v to_o law_n be_v not_o forbid_v he_o reprove_v those_o only_o because_o they_o go_v unto_o infidel_n further_o because_o they_o be_v overcome_v with_o perturbation_n of_o the_o mind_n in_o that_o they_o can_v not_o bear_v injury_n final_o because_o themselves_o do_v injury_n remove_v thou_o those_o fault_n that_o be_v reproove_v and_o what_o will_v remain_v but_o that_o cause_n may_v be_v hear_v between_o faithful_a man_n in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o wise_a judge_n may_v be_v appoint_v to_o discern_v &_o pronounce_v just_o of_o cause_n cesar_n acts._n 15._o 20_o paul_n appeal_v unto_o cesar_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n appeal_v unto_o caesar_n for_o defence_n of_o his_o own_o life_n he_o will_v not_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o lieutenant_n of_o jury_n because_o he_o see_v that_o his_o tribunal_n seat_n be_v already_o corrupt_v by_o the_o head_n bishop_n and_o priest_n he_o choose_v caesar_n to_o be_v his_o judge_n with_o who_o his_o cause_n may_v be_v understand_v wherefore_o before_o the_o apostle_n be_v lay_v two_o unjust_a tribunal_n seat_n and_o both_o of_o infidel_n that_o he_o choose_v unto_o himself_o which_o seem_v to_o have_v least_o discommodity_n every_o godly_a man_n so_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a must_v escape_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o faithless_a and_o ungodly_a even_o as_o we_o at_o this_o day_n will_v not_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o pope_n who_o hold_v all_o for_o excommunicate_v even_o so_o many_o as_o will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o his_o tyranny_n and_o the_o very_a same_o apostle_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o same_o book_n of_o act_n send_v a_o young_a man_n his_o sister_n son_n unto_o the_o tribune_n 17_o acts._n 23_o 17_o tribune_n paul_n cause_v that_o the_o âaying_n in_o wait_n of_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v show_v unto_o the_o tribune_n who_o shall_v declare_v the_o conspiracy_n which_o the_o jew_n make_v against_o he_o and_o so_o be_v he_o save_v and_o send_v again_o by_o night_n unto_o caesarea_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v not_o forbid_v to_o implore_v the_o help_n of_o public_a power_n god_n judgement_n and_o magistrate_n be_v institute_v by_o god_n 2_o furthermore_n god_n do_v not_o institute_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v against_o charity_n but_o judgement_n and_o magistrate_n without_o all_o doubt_n be_v bring_v in_o by_o god_n so_o as_o they_o be_v not_o repugnant_a unto_o charity_n 6._o gen._n 9_o 6._o we_o read_v in_o genesis_n the_o 9_o 9_o exo._n 18._o 19_o deut._n 1._o 9_o in_o exodus_fw-la the_o 18._o and_o in_o deuteronomie_n the_o first_o that_o a_o magistrate_n and_o judgement_n be_v institute_v by_o god_n the_o anabaptist_n cry_v that_o in_o christianisme_n there_o be_v require_v a_o far_o great_a perfection_n than_o in_o the_o old_a law_n and_o therefore_o that_o argument_n must_v not_o be_v seek_v from_o thence_o these_o mad_a man_n under_o a_o colour_n of_o perfection_n endeavour_n to_o confound_v the_o world_n by_o a_o confuse_a order_n of_o thing_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d if_o we_o shall_v want_v magistrate_n will_v not_o murder_n robbery_n and_o other_o mischief_n every_o where_o abound_v there_o be_v no_o hope_n that_o any_o man_n may_v let_v offence_n to_o happen_v for_o as_o christ_n say_v they_o must_v of_o necessity_n happen_v what_o do_v these_o man_n mean_v 18â_n matt._n 18â_n will_v they_o have_v they_o punish_v or_o not_o punish_v if_o they_o will_v say_v unpunished_a what_o end_n or_o measure_n will_v there_o then_o be_v of_o calamity_n but_o if_o they_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v punish_v by_o who_o at_o the_o length_n shall_v punishment_n be_v execute_v doubtless_o magistrate_n be_v take_v away_o if_o every_o man_n punish_v and_o revenge_v at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n all_o thing_n will_v be_v fill_v with_o a_o confuse_a order_n and_o while_o they_o fain_o to_o follow_v perfection_n they_o will_v bring_v we_o into_o a_o utter_a confusion_n of_o thing_n 9_o verse_n 19_o verse_n 9_o beside_o this_o in_o the_o 18._o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la and_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o deuteronomie_n god_n provide_v with_o all_o diligence_n that_o the_o quality_n and_o virtue_n of_o they_o which_o shall_v be_v appoint_v judge_n may_v be_v express_v to_o the_o intent_n we_o may_v plain_o perceive_v that_o he_o have_v a_o singular_a care_n of_o judgement_n in_o esaie_n it_o be_v say_v 17._o esa_n 1._o 17._o seek_v you_o judgement_n help_v the_o fatherless_a judge_v the_o widow_n and_o the_o like_a place_n we_o meet_v withal_o every_o where_n in_o the_o prophet_n and_o in_o the_o psalm_n it_o be_v show_v that_o god_n have_v so_o great_a a_o care_n of_o judgement_n 1._o psal_n 82._o 1._o as_o he_o himself_o will_v sit_v with_o the_o judge_n wherefore_o it_o be_v say_v god_n stand_v in_o the_o synagogue_n or_o in_o the_o company_n of_o judge_n he_o be_v judge_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o 6._o 2._o par._n 19_o ver_fw-la 6._o and_o in_o paralipomenon_n the_o judge_n be_v admonish_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o business_n of_o man_n which_o they_o execute_v but_o the_o business_n of_o god_n the_o very_a which_o thing_n be_v write_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o deuteronomie_n 10._o deut._n 1._o 10._o 3_o but_o least_o these_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o a_o magistrate_n and_o judgement_n be_v assure_v only_o by_o the_o old_a law_n we_o hear_v that_o they_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n the_o 13._o chapter_n office_n rom._n 13._o 1._o 1._o pet._n 2._o 13._o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o godly_a man_n to_o bear_v office_n and_o also_o by_o peter_n in_o his_o epistle_n and_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o godly_a man_n to_o bear_v office_n the_o example_n of_o joseph_n david_n ezechias_n josias_n daniel_n and_o his_o fellow_n do_v plain_o declare_v and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n paul_n in_o the_o 16._o 23._o verse_n 23._o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n write_v erastus_n the_o chamberlain_n of_o the_o city_n salute_v you_o 1â_n acts._n 13._o 1â_n and_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o sergius_n paulus_n the_o proconsul_n be_v convert_v unto_o christ_n he_o renounce_v not_o his_o office_n and_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o a_o magistrate_n to_o judge_v cause_n and_o take_v away_o contention_n by_o punish_v and_o reward_v it_o be_v perceive_v by_o the_o definition_n thereof_o office_n the_o definition_n of_o a_o magistrate_n office_n for_o it_o be_v a_o power_n institute_v by_o god_n unto_o the_o safety_n of_o good_a man_n and_o reprehension_n of_o evil_a man_n by_o lay_v of_o punishment_n upon_o the_o one_o sort_n and_o give_v reward_n unto_o
the_o other_o yea_o and_o it_o be_v a_o most_o firm_a reason_n to_o say_v there_o be_v law_n therefore_o there_o be_v judge_n and_o if_o there_o be_v judge_n there_o shall_v also_o be_v action_n or_o plead_n of_o cause_n judgement_n if_o there_o be_v law_n there_o be_v also_o judge_n and_o judgement_n and_o we_o read_v that_o the_o israelite_n even_o at_o the_o very_a beginning_n have_v controversy_n which_o they_o bring_v unto_o moses_n whereupon_o judge_n be_v appoint_v when_o as_o moses_n alone_o be_v not_o able_a to_o sustain_v so_o great_a a_o labour_n and_o at_o the_o last_o be_v the_o law_n give_v upon_o mount_n syna_n as_o we_o have_v it_o in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la neither_o can_v the_o law_n in_o a_o manner_n bring_v any_o utility_n except_o that_o judge_n have_v be_v appoint_v which_o shall_v execute_v the_o same_o aristotle_n aristotle_n aristotle_n in_o his_o politics_n call_v judge_n a_o lively_a law_n see_v therefore_o judge_n as_o it_o have_v be_v say_v be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o by_o he_o be_v institute_v it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o godly_a man_n to_o set_v they_o forward_o and_o it_o come_v oftentimes_o to_o pass_v that_o thou_o be_v not_o able_a to_o help_v the_o poor_a the_o fatherless_a the_o widow_n and_o stranger_n and_o final_o they_o which_o be_v commit_v to_o thy_o trust_n and_o to_o deliver_v they_o from_o their_o oppressor_n unless_o thou_o shall_v implore_v the_o aid_n of_o public_a judgement_n and_o to_o forsake_v they_o thou_o may_v not_o with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n as_o touch_v the_o poor_a and_o oppress_v 21._o exo._n 22._o 21._o the_o law_n admonish_v everiewhere_o and_o how_o those_o which_o belong_v unto_o we_o must_v be_v holpen_v paul_n unto_o timothy_n write_v in_o these_o word_n 8._o 1._o tim._n 5._o 8._o he_o that_o have_v not_o a_o care_n of_o his_o own_o &_o especial_o of_o his_o family_n 13._o elisaeus_n 2._o king_n 4._o 13._o have_v renounce_v his_o faith_n and_o be_v worse_a than_o a_o infidel_n elisaeus_n the_o prophet_n offer_v himself_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n to_o entreat_v with_o the_o magistrate_n for_o the_o widow_n his_o hostess_n and_o that_o we_o must_v not_o straight_o way_n depart_v from_o our_o possession_n &_o father_n inheritance_n the_o example_n of_o naboth_n the_o jezraelite_n do_v testify_v 3_o naboth_n 1._o king_n 21._o 3_o who_o will_v not_o deliver_v his_o vineyard_n unto_o a_o tyrant_n and_o this_o he_o do_v not_o through_o a_o desire_n that_o he_o have_v of_o earthly_a thing_n but_o that_o he_o may_v obey_v the_o law_n of_o god_n who_o after_o a_o just_a manner_n divide_v the_o land_n among_o the_o tribe_n and_o family_n as_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o book_n of_o josua_n 7._o josua_n 13._o num._n 36._o 7._o &_o forbid_v by_o the_o law_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v transfer_v from_o one_o family_n unto_o another_o 4_o moreover_o if_o our_o neighbour_n can_v be_v bring_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o judge_n from_o detain_v of_o other_o man_n good_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v ungodly_a to_o law_n against_o he_o that_o he_o may_v at_o the_o leastwise_o be_v pull_v from_o sin_n and_o augustine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr sermone_fw-la domini_fw-la in_o monte_fw-fr say_v augustine_n augustine_n that_o a_o servant_n be_v convey_v away_o from_o a_o godly_a master_n if_o it_o be_v know_v that_o he_o will_v be_v mar_v under_o the_o government_n of_o he_o that_o intyse_v he_o and_o that_o he_o may_v be_v revoke_v from_o thence_o and_o recover_v by_o judgement_n he_o must_v not_o be_v forsake_v it_o also_o happen_v oftentimes_o that_o the_o pastor_n of_o church_n be_v hinder_v by_o the_o wicked_a from_o preach_v or_o from_o feed_n the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n and_o may_v be_v holpen_v by_o the_o public_a power_n to_o execute_v their_o office_n free_o then_o must_v they_o not_o delay_v to_o attempt_v by_o judgement_n for_o they_o then_o implore_v the_o help_n of_o god_n when_o they_o go_v unto_o the_o power_n appoint_v by_o he_o and_o unless_o they_o shall_v this_o do_v they_o may_v seem_v to_o tempt_v god_n sometime_o also_o there_o may_v happen_v a_o doubtful_a case_n and_o that_o between_o the_o godly_a for_o the_o just_a possession_n of_o some_o thing_n whereas_o either_o of_o they_o will_v yield_v to_o other_o and_o neither_o of_o they_o will_v have_v himself_o to_o be_v trust_v because_o he_o fear_v lest_o he_o do_v challenge_v that_o which_o be_v another_o man_n and_o therefore_o with_o one_o consent_n they_o covet_v to_o have_v that_o which_o be_v doubtful_a to_o be_v determine_v by_o judgement_n whereby_o they_o may_v with_o a_o more_o safe_a conscience_n possess_v that_o which_o they_o have_v and_o they_o which_o endeavour_n whole_o to_o take_v away_o judgement_n do_v give_v a_o occasion_n unto_o julian_n porphirius_fw-la and_o proclus_n who_o slander_v christianity_n that_o it_o be_v a_o adversary_n unto_o lawful_a common_a weal_n 5_o now_o see_v it_o be_v prove_v law_n under_o what_o caution_n we_o must_v go_v to_o law_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a sometime_o for_o godly_a man_n to_o go_v to_o law_n let_v we_o see_v as_o touch_v the_o other_o point_n with_o what_o caution_n this_o must_v be_v do_v first_o of_o all_o must_v be_v provide_v 3._o psal_n 146._o 3._o that_o we_o mistrust_v not_o god_n &_o that_o we_o put_v not_o confidence_n in_o prince_n and_o judge_n such_o man_n do_v the_o holy_a scripture_n plain_o detest_v which_o pronounce_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o put_v our_o trust_n in_o prince_n neither_o to_o put_v flesh_n for_o our_o arme._n beside_o this_o let_v charity_n be_v keep_v inviolate_a 5._o jer._n 17._o 5._o so_o as_o we_o account_v not_o for_o a_o enemy_n that_o adversary_n against_o who_o we_o have_v commence_v action_n moreover_o the_o power_n of_o our_o mind_n must_v be_v examine_v and_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o be_v not_o lead_v unto_o this_o by_o disturbation_n of_o the_o mind_n or_o corrupt_v affection_n for_o it_o be_v better_a to_o lose_v the_o thing_n than_o to_o make_v a_o wrack_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o lenity_n and_o christian_a gentleness_n neither_o yet_o ought_v we_o for_o this_o cause_n to_o go_v unto_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n that_o we_o may_v either_o increase_v our_o patrimony_n or_o revenue_n but_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n &_o safety_n of_o our_o neighbour_n must_v chief_o be_v respect_v also_o it_o be_v profitable_a that_o he_o which_o be_v to_o deal_v against_o any_o man_n in_o judgement_n do_v consider_v the_o imbecility_n of_o man_n and_o weigh_v how_o weak_a he_o himself_o also_o be_v for_o by_o that_o mean_n as_o augustine_n write_v unto_o macedonius_n the_o vehemency_n of_o accuse_v be_v assuage_v augustine_n augustine_n this_o do_v christ_n commend_v when_o he_o answer_v the_o accuser_n of_o the_o adulterous_a woman_n he_o among_o you_o that_o be_v without_o sin_n 7._o john_n 8._o 7._o let_v he_o cast_v the_o first_o stone_n at_o she_o and_o as_o judgement_n be_v at_o this_o day_n we_o be_v to_o take_v heed_n lest_o with_o the_o endeavour_n of_o contention_n we_o cast_v not_o both_o ourselves_o &_o our_o adversary_n into_o grievous_a and_o unprofitable_a expense_n for_o judgement_n be_v every_o where_o long_o differ_v sometime_o by_o the_o treachery_n &_o covetousness_n of_o judge_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o they_o which_o be_v adversary_n at_o law_n may_v be_v poll_v but_o yet_o the_o delay_n of_o judgement_n can_v all_o whole_o be_v condemn_v for_o oftentimes_o in_o the_o give_n of_o sentence_n there_o must_v be_v provision_n make_v against_o the_o manifold_a and_o subtle_a malice_n of_o man_n for_o the_o discovery_n whereof_o nothing_o be_v more_o worth_a than_o delay_n for_o in_o process_n of_o time_n many_o thing_n be_v open_v which_o by_o craft_n and_o subtlety_n be_v hide_v 6_o but_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o all_o mean_n must_v be_v assay_v before_o we_o come_v to_o suit_n of_o law_n even_o in_o like_a manner_n as_o before_o war_n be_v move_v all_o remedy_n shall_v be_v seek_v and_o this_o will_v be_v very_o decent_a for_o christian_n that_o controversy_n shall_v be_v take_v up_o by_o arbitrator_n &_o common_a friend_n which_o also_o shall_v not_o be_v whole_o leave_v unto_o magistrate_n for_o they_o shall_v be_v ease_v of_o very_o great_a and_o gréevous_a trouble_n see_v they_o be_v constrain_v oftentimes_o to_o sit_v all_o the_o day_n long_o to_o hear_v cause_n and_o the_o time_n which_o shall_v be_v employ_v about_o council_n matter_n for_o the_o commonweal_n lest_o it_o shall_v take_v any_o harm_n they_o be_v constrain_v to_o spend_v upon_o adversary_n at_o law_n in_o old_a time_n among_o the_o roman_n the_o degree_n of_o gentleman_n call_v equites_fw-la do_v execute_v judgement_n afterward_o judgement_n do_v fall_v to_o the_o senator_n